The Project Gutenberg EBook of St Ives, by Robert Louis Stevenson (#6 in our series by Robert Louis Stevenson) Copyright laws are changing all over the world. Be sure to check the copyright laws for your country before downloading or redistributing this or any other Project Gutenberg eBook. This header should be the first thing seen when viewing this Project Gutenberg file. Please do not remove it. Do not change or edit the header without written permission. Please read the "legal small print," and other information about the eBook and Project Gutenberg at the bottom of this file. Included is important information about your specific rights and restrictions in how the file may be used. You can also find out about how to make a donation to Project Gutenberg, and how to get involved. **Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts** **eBooks Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971** *****These eBooks Were Prepared By Thousands of Volunteers!***** Title: St Ives Author: Robert Louis Stevenson Release Date: September, 1995 [EBook #322] [This file was first posted on December 30, 1995] Edition: 10 Language: English Character set encoding: ASCII
Transcribed 1898 William Heinemann edition by David Price, email ccx074@coventry.ac.uk
ST. IVES
BEING
THE ADVENTURES OF A FRENCH PRISONER IN ENGLAND
CHAPTER I - A TALE OF A LION RAMPANT
It was in the month of May 1813 that I was so unlucky as to fall at
last into the hands of the enemy. My knowledge of the English
language had marked me out for a certain employment. Though I
cannot conceive a soldier refusing to incur the risk, yet to be hanged
for a spy is a disgusting business; and I was relieved to be held a
prisoner of war. Into the Castle of Edinburgh, standing in the
midst of that city on the summit of an extraordinary rock, I was cast
with several hundred fellow-sufferers, all privates like myself, and
the more part of them, by an accident, very ignorant, plain fellows.
My English, which had brought me into that scrape, now helped me very
materially to bear it. I had a thousand advantages. I was
often called to play the part of an interpreter, whether of orders or
complaints, and thus brought in relations, sometimes of mirth, sometimes
almost of friendship, with the officers in charge. A young lieutenant
singled me out to be his adversary at chess, a game in which I was extremely
proficient, and would reward me for my gambits with excellent cigars.
The major of the battalion took lessons of French from me while at breakfast,
and was sometimes so obliging as to have me join him at the meal.
Chevenix was his name. He was stiff as a drum-major and selfish
as an Englishman, but a fairly conscientious pupil and a fairly upright
man. Little did I suppose that his ramrod body and frozen face
would, in the end, step in between me and all my dearest wishes; that
upon this precise, regular, icy soldier-man my fortunes should so nearly
shipwreck! I never liked, but yet I trusted him; and though it
may seem but a trifle, I found his snuff-box with the bean in it come
very welcome.
For it is strange how grown men and seasoned soldiers can go back in
life; so that after but a little while in prison, which is after all
the next thing to being in the nursery, they grow absorbed in the most
pitiful, childish interests, and a sugar biscuit or a pinch of snuff
become things to follow after and scheme for!
We made but a poor show of prisoners. The officers had been all
offered their parole, and had taken it. They lived mostly in suburbs
of the city, lodging with modest families, and enjoyed their freedom
and supported the almost continual evil tidings of the Emperor as best
they might. It chanced I was the only gentleman among the privates
who remained. A great part were ignorant Italians, of a regiment
that had suffered heavily in Catalonia. The rest were mere diggers
of the soil, treaders of grapes or hewers of wood, who had been suddenly
and violently preferred to the glorious state of soldiers. We
had but the one interest in common: each of us who had any skill with
his fingers passed the hours of his captivity in the making of little
toys and articles of Paris; and the prison was daily visited
at certain hours by a concourse of people of the country, come to exult
over our distress, or - it is more tolerant to suppose - their own vicarious
triumph. Some moved among us with a decency of shame or sympathy.
Others were the most offensive personages in the world, gaped at us
as if we had been baboons, sought to evangelise us to their rustic,
northern religion, as though we had been savages, or tortured us with
intelligence of disasters to the arms of France. Good, bad, and
indifferent, there was one alleviation to the annoyance of these visitors;
for it was the practice of almost all to purchase some specimen of our
rude handiwork. This led, amongst the prisoners, to a strong spirit
of competition. Some were neat of hand, and (the genius of the
French being always distinguished) could place upon sale little miracles
of dexterity and taste. Some had a more engaging appearance; fine
features were found to do as well as fine merchandise, and an air of
youth in particular (as it appealed to the sentiment of pity in our
visitors) to be a source of profit. Others again enjoyed some
acquaintance with the language, and were able to recommend the more
agreeably to purchasers such trifles as they had to sell. To the
first of these advantages I could lay no claim, for my fingers were
all thumbs. Some at least of the others I possessed; and finding
much entertainment in our commerce, I did not suffer my advantages to
rust. I have never despised the social arts, in which it is a
national boast that every Frenchman should excel. For the approach
of particular sorts of visitors, I had a particular manner of address,
and even of appearance, which I could readily assume and change on the
occasion rising. I never lost an opportunity to flatter either
the person of my visitor, if it should be a lady, or, if it should be
a man, the greatness of his country in war. And in case my compliments
should miss their aim, I was always ready to cover my retreat with some
agreeable pleasantry, which would often earn me the name of an ‘oddity’
or a ‘droll fellow.’ In this way, although I was so
left-handed a toy-maker, I made out to be rather a successful merchant;
and found means to procure many little delicacies and alleviations,
such as children or prisoners desire.
I am scarcely drawing the portrait of a very melancholy man. It
is not indeed my character; and I had, in a comparison with my comrades,
many reasons for content. In the first place, I had no family:
I was an orphan and a bachelor; neither wife nor child awaited me in
France. In the second, I had never wholly forgot the emotions
with which I first found myself a prisoner; and although a military
prison be not altogether a garden of delights, it is still preferable
to a gallows. In the third, I am almost ashamed to say it, but
I found a certain pleasure in our place of residence: being an obsolete
and really mediaeval fortress, high placed and commanding extraordinary
prospects, not only over sea, mountain, and champaign but actually over
the thoroughfares of a capital city, which we could see blackened by
day with the moving crowd of the inhabitants, and at night shining with
lamps. And lastly, although I was not insensible to the restraints
of prison or the scantiness of our rations, I remembered I had sometimes
eaten quite as ill in Spain, and had to mount guard and march perhaps
a dozen leagues into the bargain. The first of my troubles, indeed,
was the costume we were obliged to wear. There is a horrible practice
in England to trick out in ridiculous uniforms, and as it were to brand
in mass, not only convicts but military prisoners, and even the children
in charity schools. I think some malignant genius had found his
masterpiece of irony in the dress which we were condemned to wear: jacket,
waistcoat, and trousers of a sulphur or mustard yellow, and a shirt
or blue-and-white striped cotton. It was conspicuous, it was cheap,
it pointed us out to laughter - we, who were old soldiers, used to arms,
and some of us showing noble scars, - like a set of lugubrious zanies
at a fair. The old name of that rock on which our prison stood
was (I have heard since then) the Painted Hill. Well, now
it was all painted a bright yellow with our costumes; and the dress
of the soldiers who guarded us being of course the essential British
red rag, we made up together the elements of a lively picture of hell.
I have again and again looked round upon my fellow-prisoners, and felt
my anger rise, and choked upon tears, to behold them thus parodied.
The more part, as I have said, were peasants, somewhat bettered perhaps
by the drill-sergeant, but for all that ungainly, loutish fellows, with
no more than a mere barrack-room smartness of address: indeed, you could
have seen our army nowhere more discreditably represented than in this
Castle of Edinburgh. And I used to see myself in fancy, and blush.
It seemed that my more elegant carriage would but point the insult of
the travesty. And I remembered the days when I wore the coarse
but honourable coat of a soldier; and remembered further back how many
of the noble, the fair, and the gracious had taken a delight to tend
my childhood. . . . But I must not recall these tender and sorrowful
memories twice; their place is further on, and I am now upon another
business. The perfidy of the Britannic Government stood nowhere
more openly confessed than in one particular of our discipline: that
we were shaved twice in the week. To a man who has loved all his
life to be fresh shaven, can a more irritating indignity be devised?
Monday and Thursday were the days. Take the Thursday, and conceive
the picture I must present by Sunday evening! And Saturday, which
was almost as bad, was the great day for visitors.
Those who came to our market were of all qualities, men and women, the
lean and the stout, the plain and the fairly pretty. Sure, if
people at all understood the power of beauty, there would be no prayers
addressed except to Venus; and the mere privilege of beholding a comely
woman is worth paying for. Our visitors, upon the whole, were
not much to boast of; and yet, sitting in a corner and very much ashamed
of myself and my absurd appearance, I have again and again tasted the
finest, the rarest, and the most ethereal pleasures in a glance of an
eye that I should never see again - and never wanted to. The flower
of the hedgerow and the star in heaven satisfy and delight us: how much
more the look of that exquisite being who was created to bear and rear,
to madden and rejoice, mankind!
There was one young lady in particular, about eighteen or nineteen,
tall, of a gallant carriage, and with a profusion of hair in which the
sun found threads of gold. As soon as she came in the courtyard
(and she was a rather frequent visitor) it seemed I was aware of it.
She had an air of angelic candour, yet of a high spirit; she stepped
like a Diana, every movement was noble and free. One day there
was a strong east wind; the banner was straining at the flagstaff; below
us the smoke of the city chimneys blew hither and thither in a thousand
crazy variations; and away out on the Forth we could see the ships lying
down to it and scudding. I was thinking what a vile day it was,
when she appeared. Her hair blew in the wind with changes of colour;
her garments moulded her with the accuracy of sculpture; the ends of
her shawl fluttered about her ear and were caught in again with an inimitable
deftness. You have seen a pool on a gusty day, how it suddenly
sparkles and flashes like a thing alive? So this lady’s
face had become animated and coloured; and as I saw her standing, somewhat
inclined, her lips parted, a divine trouble in her eyes, I could have
clapped my hands in applause, and was ready to acclaim her a genuine
daughter of the winds. What put it in my head, I know not: perhaps
because it was a Thursday and I was new from the razor; but I determined
to engage her attention no later than that day. She was approaching
that part of the court in which I sat with my merchandise, when I observed
her handkerchief to escape from her hands and fall to the ground; the
next moment the wind had taken it up and carried it within my reach.
I was on foot at once: I had forgot my mustard-coloured clothes, I had
forgot the private soldier and his salute. Bowing deeply, I offered
her the slip of cambric.
‘Madam,’ said I, ‘your handkerchief. The wind
brought it me.’
I met her eyes fully.
‘I thank you, sir,’ said she.
‘The wind brought it me,’ I repeated. ‘May I
not take it for an omen? You have an English proverb, “It’s
an ill wind that blows nobody good.”’
‘Well,’ she said, with a smile, ‘“One good turn
deserves another.” I will see what you have.’
She followed me to where my wares were spread out under lee of a piece
of cannon.
‘Alas, mademoiselle!’ said I, ‘I am no very perfect
craftsman. This is supposed to be a house, and you see the chimneys
are awry. You may call this a box if you are very indulgent; but
see where my tool slipped! Yes, I am afraid you may go from one
to another, and find a flaw in everything. Failures for Sale
should be on my signboard. I do not keep a shop; I keep a Humorous
Museum.’ I cast a smiling glance about my display, and then
at her, and instantly became grave. ‘Strange, is it not,’
I added, ‘that a grown man and a soldier should be engaged upon
such trash, and a sad heart produce anything so funny to look at?’
An unpleasant voice summoned her at this moment by the name of Flora,
and she made a hasty purchase and rejoined her party.
A few days after she came again. But I must first tell you how
she came to be so frequent. Her aunt was one of those terrible
British old maids, of which the world has heard much; and having nothing
whatever to do, and a word or two of French, she had taken what she
called an interest in the French prisoners. A big, bustling,
bold old lady, she flounced about our market-place with insufferable
airs of patronage and condescension. She bought, indeed, with
liberality, but her manner of studying us through a quizzing-glass,
and playing cicerone to her followers, acquitted us of any gratitude.
She had a tail behind her of heavy, obsequious old gentlemen, or dull,
giggling misses, to whom she appeared to be an oracle. ‘This
one can really carve prettily: is he not a quiz with his big whiskers?’
she would say. ‘And this one,’ indicating myself with
her gold eye-glass, ‘is, I assure you, quite an oddity.’
The oddity, you may be certain, ground his teeth. She had a way
of standing in our midst, nodding around, and addressing us in what
she imagined to be French: ‘Bienne, hommes! ça va bienne?’
I took the freedom to reply in the same lingo: Bienne, femme!
ça va couci-couci tout d’même, la bourgeoise!’
And at that, when we had all laughed with a little more heartiness than
was entirely civil, ‘I told you he was quite an oddity!’
says she in triumph. Needless to say, these passages were before
I had remarked the niece.
The aunt came on the day in question with a following rather more than
usually large, which she manoeuvred to and fro about the market and
lectured to at rather more than usual length, and with rather less than
her accustomed tact. I kept my eyes down, but they were ever fixed
in the same direction, quite in vain. The aunt came and went,
and pulled us out, and showed us off, like caged monkeys; but the niece
kept herself on the outskirts of the crowd and on the opposite side
of the courtyard, and departed at last as she had come, without a sign.
Closely as I had watched her, I could not say her eyes had ever rested
on me for an instant; and my heart was overwhelmed with bitterness and
blackness. I tore out her detested image; I felt I was done with
her for ever; I laughed at myself savagely, because I had thought to
please; when I lay down at night sleep forsook me, and I lay, and rolled,
and gloated on her charms, and cursed her insensibility, for half the
night. How trivial I thought her! and how trivial her sex!
A man might be an angel or an Apollo, and a mustard-coloured coat would
wholly blind them to his merits. I was a prisoner, a slave, a
contemned and despicable being, the butt of her sniggering countrymen.
I would take the lesson: no proud daughter of my foes should have the
chance to mock at me again; none in the future should have the chance
to think I had looked at her with admiration. You cannot imagine
any one of a more resolute and independent spirit, or whose bosom was
more wholly mailed with patriotic arrogance, than I. Before I
dropped asleep, I had remembered all the infamies of Britain, and debited
them in an overwhelming column to Flora.
The next day, as I sat in my place, I became conscious there was some
one standing near; and behold, it was herself! I kept my seat,
at first in the confusion of my mind, later on from policy; and she
stood, and leaned a little over me, as in pity. She was very still
and timid; her voice was low. Did I suffer in my captivity? she
asked me. Had I to complain of any hardship?
‘Mademoiselle, I have not learned to complain,’ said I.
‘I am a soldier of Napoleon.’
She sighed. ‘At least you must regret La France,’
said she, and coloured a little as she pronounced the words, which she
did with a pretty strangeness of accent.
‘What am I to say?’ I replied. ‘If you were
carried from this country, for which you seem so wholly suited, where
the very rains and winds seem to become you like ornaments, would you
regret, do you think? We must surely all regret! the son to his
mother, the man to his country; these are native feelings.’
‘You have a mother?’ she asked.
‘In heaven, mademoiselle,’ I answered. ‘She,
and my father also, went by the same road to heaven as so many others
of the fair and brave: they followed their queen upon the scaffold.
So, you see, I am not so much to be pitied in my prison,’ I continued:
‘there are none to wait for me; I am alone in the world.
’Tis a different case, for instance, with yon poor fellow in the
cloth cap. His bed is next to mine, and in the night I hear him
sobbing to himself. He has a tender character, full of tender
and pretty sentiments; and in the dark at night, and sometimes by day
when he can get me apart with him, he laments a mother and a sweetheart.
Do you know what made him take me for a confidant?’
She parted her lips with a look, but did not speak. The look burned
all through me with a sudden vital heat.
‘Because I had once seen, in marching by, the belfry of his village!’
I continued. ‘The circumstance is quaint enough. It
seems to bind up into one the whole bundle of those human instincts
that make life beautiful, and people and places dear - and from which
it would seem I am cut off!’
I rested my chin on my knee and looked before me on the ground.
I had been talking until then to hold her; but I was now not sorry she
should go: an impression is a thing so delicate to produce and so easy
to overthrow! Presently she seemed to make an effort.
‘I will take this toy,’ she said, laid a five-and-sixpenny
piece in my hand, and was gone ere I could thank her.
I retired to a place apart near the ramparts and behind a gun.
The beauty, the expression of her eyes, the tear that had trembled there,
the compassion in her voice, and a kind of wild elegance that consecrated
the freedom of her movements, all combined to enslave my imagination
and inflame my heart. What had she said? Nothing to signify;
but her eyes had met mine, and the fire they had kindled burned inextinguishably
in my veins. I loved her; and I did not fear to hope. Twice
I had spoken with her; and in both interviews I had been well inspired,
I had engaged her sympathies, I had found words that she must remember,
that would ring in her ears at night upon her bed. What mattered
if I were half shaved and my clothes a caricature? I was still
a man, and I had drawn my image on her memory. I was still a man,
and, as I trembled to realise, she was still a woman. Many waters
cannot quench love; and love, which is the law of the world, was on
my side. I closed my eyes, and she sprang up on the background
of the darkness, more beautiful than in life. ‘Ah!’
thought I, ‘and you too, my dear, you too must carry away with
you a picture, that you are still to behold again and still to embellish.
In the darkness of night, in the streets by day, still you are to have
my voice and face, whispering, making love for me, encroaching on your
shy heart. Shy as your heart is, it is lodged there - I
am lodged there; let the hours do their office - let time continue to
draw me ever in more lively, ever in more insidious colours.’
And then I had a vision of myself, and burst out laughing.
A likely thing, indeed, that a beggar-man, a private soldier, a prisoner
in a yellow travesty, was to awake the interest of this fair girl!
I would not despair; but I saw the game must be played fine and close.
It must be my policy to hold myself before her, always in a pathetic
or pleasing attitude; never to alarm or startle her; to keep my own
secret locked in my bosom like a story of disgrace, and let hers (if
she could be induced to have one) grow at its own rate; to move just
so fast, and not by a hair’s-breadth any faster, than the inclination
of her heart. I was the man, and yet I was passive, tied by the
foot in prison. I could not go to her; I must cast a spell upon
her at each visit, so that she should return to me; and this was a matter
of nice management. I had done it the last time - it seemed impossible
she should not come again after our interview; and for the next I had
speedily ripened a fresh plan. A prisoner, if he has one great
disability for a lover, has yet one considerable advantage: there is
nothing to distract him, and he can spend all his hours ripening his
love and preparing its manifestations. I had been then some days
upon a piece of carving, - no less than the emblem of Scotland, the
Lion Rampant. This I proceeded to finish with what skill I was
possessed of; and when at last I could do no more to it (and, you may
be sure, was already regretting I had done so much), added on the base
the following dedication. -
À LA BELLE FLORA
LE PRISONNIER RECONNAISSANT
A. D. ST. Y. D. K.
I put my heart into the carving of these letters. What was done
with so much ardour, it seemed scarce possible that any should behold
with indifference; and the initials would at least suggest to her my
noble birth. I thought it better to suggest: I felt that mystery
was my stock-in-trade; the contrast between my rank and manners, between
my speech and my clothing, and the fact that she could only think of
me by a combination of letters, must all tend to increase her interest
and engage her heart.
This done, there was nothing left for me but to wait and to hope.
And there is nothing further from my character: in love and in war,
I am all for the forward movement; and these days of waiting made my
purgatory. It is a fact that I loved her a great deal better at
the end of them, for love comes, like bread, from a perpetual rehandling.
And besides, I was fallen into a panic of fear. How, if she came
no more, how was I to continue to endure my empty days? how was I to
fall back and find my interest in the major’s lessons, the lieutenant’s
chess, in a twopenny sale in the market, or a halfpenny addition to
the prison fare?
Days went by, and weeks; I had not the courage to calculate, and to-day
I have not the courage to remember; but at last she was there.
At last I saw her approach me in the company of a boy about her own
age, and whom I divined at once to be her brother.
I rose and bowed in silence.
‘This is my brother, Mr. Ronald Gilchrist,’ said she.
‘I have told him of your sufferings. He is so sorry for
you!’
‘It is more than I have the right to ask,’ I replied; ‘but
among gentlefolk these generous sentiments are natural. If your
brother and I were to meet in the field, we should meet like tigers;
but when he sees me here disarmed and helpless, he forgets his animosity.’
(At which, as I had ventured to expect, this beardless champion coloured
to the ears for pleasure.) ‘Ah, my dear young lady,’
I continued, ‘there are many of your countrymen languishing in
my country, even as I do here. I can but hope there is found some
French lady to convey to each of them the priceless consolation of her
sympathy. You have given me alms; and more than alms - hope; and
while you were absent I was not forgetful. Suffer me to be able
to tell myself that I have at least tried to make a return; and for
the prisoner’s sake deign to accept this trifle.’
So saying, I offered her my lion, which she took, looked at in some
embarrassment, and then, catching sight of the dedication, broke out
with a cry.
‘Why, how did you know my name?’ she exclaimed.
‘When names are so appropriate, they should be easily guessed,’
said I, bowing. ‘But indeed, there was no magic in the matter.
A lady called you by name on the day I found your handkerchief, and
I was quick to remark and cherish it.’
‘It is very, very beautiful,’ said she, ‘and I shall
be always proud of the inscription. - Come, Ronald, we must be going.’
She bowed to me as a lady bows to her equal, and passed on (I could
have sworn) with a heightened colour.
I was overjoyed: my innocent ruse had succeeded; she had taken my gift
without a hint of payment, and she would scarce sleep in peace till
she had made it up to me. No greenhorn in matters of the heart,
I was besides aware that I had now a resident ambassador at the court
of my lady. The lion might be ill chiselled; it was mine.
My hands had made and held it; my knife - or, to speak more by the mark,
my rusty nail - had traced those letters; and simple as the words were,
they would keep repeating to her that I was grateful and that I found
her fair. The boy had looked like a gawky, and blushed at a compliment;
I could see besides that he regarded me with considerable suspicion;
yet he made so manly a figure of a lad, that I could not withhold from
him my sympathy. And as for the impulse that had made her bring
and introduce him, I could not sufficiently admire it. It seemed
to me finer than wit, and more tender than a caress. It said (plain
as language), ‘I do not and I cannot know you. Here is my
brother - you can know him; this is the way to me - follow it.’
CHAPTER II - A TALE OF A PAIR OF SCISSORS
I was still plunged in these thoughts when the bell was rung that discharged
our visitors into the street. Our little market was no sooner
closed than we were summoned to the distribution, and received our rations,
which we were then allowed to eat according to fancy in any part of
our quarters.
I have said the conduct of some of our visitors was unbearably offensive;
it was possibly more so than they dreamed - as the sight-seers at a
menagerie may offend in a thousand ways, and quite without meaning it,
the noble and unfortunate animals behind the bars; and there is no doubt
but some of my compatriots were susceptible beyond reason. Some
of these old whiskerandos, originally peasants, trained since boyhood
in victorious armies, and accustomed to move among subject and trembling
populations, could ill brook their change of circumstance. There
was one man of the name of Goguelat, a brute of the first water, who
had enjoyed no touch of civilisation beyond the military discipline,
and had risen by an extreme heroism of bravery to a grade for which
he was otherwise unfitted - that of maréchal des logis
in the 22nd of the line. In so far as a brute can be a good soldier,
he was a good soldier; the Cross was on his breast, and gallantly earned;
but in all things outside his line of duty the man was no other than
a brawling, bruising ignorant pillar of low pothouses. As a gentleman
by birth, and a scholar by taste and education, I was the type of all
that he least understood and most detested; and the mere view of our
visitors would leave him daily in a transport of annoyance, which he
would make haste to wreak on the nearest victim, and too often on myself.
It was so now. Our rations were scarce served out, and I had just
withdrawn into a corner of the yard, when I perceived him drawing near.
He wore an air of hateful mirth; a set of young fools, among whom he
passed for a wit, followed him with looks of expectation; and I saw
I was about to be the object of some of his insufferable pleasantries.
He took a place beside me, spread out his rations, drank to me derisively
from his measure of prison beer, and began. What he said it would
be impossible to print; but his admirers, who believed their wit to
have surpassed himself, actually rolled among the gravel. For
my part, I thought at first I should have died. I had not dreamed
the wretch was so observant; but hate sharpens the ears, and he had
counted our interviews and actually knew Flora by her name. Gradually
my coolness returned to me, accompanied by a volume of living anger
that surprised myself.
‘Are you nearly done?’ I asked. ‘Because if
you are, I am about to say a word or two myself.’
‘Oh, fair play!’ said he. ‘Turn about!
The Marquis of Carabas to the tribune.’
‘Very well,’ said I. ‘I have to inform you that
I am a gentleman. You do not know what that means, hey?
Well, I will tell you. It is a comical sort of animal; springs
from another strange set of creatures they call ancestors; and, in common
with toads and other vermin, has a thing that he calls feelings.
The lion is a gentleman; he will not touch carrion. I am a gentleman,
and I cannot bear to soil my fingers with such a lump of dirt.
Sit still, Philippe Goguelat! sit still and do not say a word, or I
shall know you are a coward; the eyes of our guards are upon us.
Here is your health!’ said I, and pledged him in the prison beer.
‘You have chosen to speak in a certain way of a young child,’
I continued, ‘who might be your daughter, and who was giving alms
to me and some others of us mendicants. If the Emperor’
- saluting - ‘if my Emperor could hear you, he would pluck off
the Cross from your gross body. I cannot do that; I cannot take
away what His Majesty has given; but one thing I promise you - I promise
you, Goguelat, you shall be dead to-night.’
I had borne so much from him in the past, I believe he thought there
was no end to my forbearance, and he was at first amazed. But
I have the pleasure to think that some of my expressions had pierced
through his thick hide; and besides, the brute was truly a hero of valour,
and loved fighting for itself. Whatever the cause, at least, he
had soon pulled himself together, and took the thing (to do him justice)
handsomely.
‘And I promise you, by the devil’s horns, that you shall
have the chance!’ said he, and pledged me again; and again I did
him scrupulous honour.
The news of this defiance spread from prisoner to prisoner with the
speed of wings; every face was seen to be illuminated like those of
the spectators at a horse-race; and indeed you must first have tasted
the active life of a soldier, and then mouldered for a while in the
tedium of a jail, in order to understand, perhaps even to excuse, the
delight of our companions. Goguelat and I slept in the same squad,
which greatly simplified the business; and a committee of honour was
accordingly formed of our shed-mates. They chose for president
a sergeant-major in the 4th Dragoons, a greybeard of the army, an excellent
military subject, and a good man. He took the most serious view
of his functions, visited us both, and reported our replies to the committee.
Mine was of a decent firmness. I told him the young lady of whom
Goguelat had spoken had on several occasions given me alms. I
reminded him that, if we were now reduced to hold out our hands and
sell pill-boxes for charity, it was something very new for soldiers
of the Empire. We had all seen bandits standing at a corner of
a wood truckling for copper halfpence, and after their benefactors were
gone spitting out injuries and curses. ‘But,’ said
I, ‘I trust that none of us will fall so low. As a Frenchman
and a soldier, I owe that young child gratitude, and am bound to protect
her character, and to support that of the army. You are my elder
and my superior: tell me if I am not right.’
He was a quiet-mannered old fellow, and patted me with three fingers
on the back. ‘C’est bien, mon enfant,’
says he, and returned to his committee.
Goguelat was no more accommodating than myself. ‘I do not
like apologies nor those that make them,’ was his only answer.
And there remained nothing but to arrange the details of the meeting.
So far as regards place and time we had no choice; we must settle the
dispute at night, in the dark, after a round had passed by, and in the
open middle of the shed under which we slept. The question of
arms was more obscure. We had a good many tools, indeed, which
we employed in the manufacture of our toys; but they were none of them
suited for a single combat between civilised men, and, being nondescript,
it was found extremely hard to equalise the chances of the combatants.
At length a pair of scissors was unscrewed; and a couple of tough wands
being found in a corner of the courtyard, one blade of the scissors
was lashed solidly to each with resined twine - the twine coming I know
not whence, but the resin from the green pillars of the shed, which
still sweated from the axe. It was a strange thing to feel in
one’s hand this weapon, which was no heavier than a riding-rod,
and which it was difficult to suppose would prove more dangerous.
A general oath was administered and taken, that no one should interfere
in the duel nor (suppose it to result seriously) betray the name of
the survivor. And with that, all being then ready, we composed
ourselves to await the moment.
The evening fell cloudy; not a star was to be seen when the first round
of the night passed through our shed and wound off along the ramparts;
and as we took our places, we could still hear, over the murmurs of
the surrounding city, the sentries challenging its further passage.
Leclos, the sergeant-major, set us in our stations, engaged our wands,
and left us. To avoid blood-stained clothing, my adversary and
I had stripped to the shoes; and the chill of the night enveloped our
bodies like a wet sheet. The man was better at fencing than myself;
he was vastly taller than I, being of a stature almost gigantic, and
proportionately strong. In the inky blackness of the shed, it
was impossible to see his eyes; and from the suppleness of the wands,
I did not like to trust to a parade. I made up my mind accordingly
to profit, if I might, by my defect; and as soon as the signal should
be given, to throw myself down and lunge at the same moment. It
was to play my life upon one card: should I not mortally wound him,
no defence would be left me; what was yet more appalling, I thus ran
the risk of bringing my own face against his scissor with the double
force of our assaults, and my face and eyes are not that part of me
that I would the most readily expose.
‘Allez!’ said the sergeant-major.
Both lunged in the same moment with an equal fury, and but for my manoeuvre
both had certainly been spitted. As it was, he did no more than
strike my shoulder, while my scissor plunged below the girdle into a
mortal part; and that great bulk of a man, falling from his whole height,
knocked me immediately senseless.
When I came to myself I was laid in my own sleeping-place, and could
make out in the darkness the outline of perhaps a dozen heads crowded
around me. I sat up. ‘What is it?’ I exclaimed.
‘Hush!’ said the sergeant-major. ‘Blessed be
God, all is well.’ I felt him clasp my hand, and there were
tears in his voice. ‘’Tis but a scratch, my child;
here is papa, who is taking good care of you. Your shoulder is
bound up; we have dressed you in your clothes again, and it will all
be well.’
At this I began to remember. ‘And Goguelat?’ I gasped.
‘He cannot bear to be moved; he has his bellyful; ’tis a
bad business,’ said the sergeant-major.
The idea of having killed a man with such an instrument as half a pair
of scissors seemed to turn my stomach. I am sure I might have
killed a dozen with a firelock, a sabre, a bayonet, or any accepted
weapon, and been visited by no such sickness of remorse. And to
this feeling every unusual circumstance of our rencounter, the darkness
in which we had fought, our nakedness, even the resin on the twine,
appeared to contribute. I ran to my fallen adversary, kneeled
by him, and could only sob his name.
He bade me compose myself. ‘You have given me the key of
the fields, comrade,’ said he. ‘Sans rancune!’
At this my horror redoubled. Here had we two expatriated Frenchmen
engaged in an ill-regulated combat like the battles of beasts.
Here was he, who had been all his life so great a ruffian, dying in
a foreign land of this ignoble injury, and meeting death with something
of the spirit of a Bayard. I insisted that the guards should be
summoned and a doctor brought. ‘It may still be possible
to save him,’ I cried.
The sergeant-major reminded me of our engagement. ‘If you
had been wounded,’ said he, ‘you must have lain there till
the patrol came by and found you. It happens to be Goguelat -
and so must he! Come, child, time to go to by-by.’
And as I still resisted, ‘Champdivers!’ he said, ‘this
is weakness. You pain me.’
‘Ay, off to your beds with you!’ said Goguelat, and named
us in a company with one of his jovial gross epithets.
Accordingly the squad lay down in the dark and simulated, what they
certainly were far from experiencing, sleep. It was not yet late.
The city, from far below, and all around us, sent up a sound of wheels
and feet and lively voices. Yet awhile, and the curtain of the
cloud was rent across, and in the space of sky between the eaves of
the shed and the irregular outline of the ramparts a multitude of stars
appeared. Meantime, in the midst of us lay Goguelat, and could
not always withhold himself from groaning.
We heard the round far off; heard it draw slowly nearer. Last
of all, it turned the corner and moved into our field of vision: two
file of men and a corporal with a lantern, which he swung to and fro,
so as to cast its light in the recesses of the yards and sheds.
‘Hullo!’ cried the corporal, pausing as he came by Goguelat.
He stooped with his lantern. All our hearts were flying.
‘What devil’s work is this?’ he cried, and with a
startling voice summoned the guard.
We were all afoot upon the instant; more lanterns and soldiers crowded
in front of the shed; an officer elbowed his way in. In the midst
was the big naked body, soiled with blood. Some one had covered
him with his blanket; but as he lay there in agony, he had partly thrown
it off.
‘This is murder!’ cried the officer. ‘You wild
beasts, you will hear of this to-morrow.’
As Goguelat was raised and laid upon a stretcher, he cried to us a cheerful
and blasphemous farewell.
CHAPTER III - MAJOR CHEVENIX COMES INTO THE STORY, AND GOGUELAT GOES
OUT
There was never any talk of a recovery, and no time was lost in getting
the man’s deposition. He gave but the one account of it:
that he had committed suicide because he was sick of seeing so many
Englishmen. The doctor vowed it was impossible, the nature and
direction of the wound forbidding it. Goguelat replied that he
was more ingenious than the other thought for, and had propped up the
weapon in the ground and fallen on the point - ‘just like Nebuchadnezzar,’
he added, winking to the assistants. The doctor, who was a little,
spruce, ruddy man of an impatient temper, pished and pshawed and swore
over his patient. ‘Nothing to be made of him!’ he
cried. ‘A perfect heathen. If we could only find the
weapon!’ But the weapon had ceased to exist. A little
resined twine was perhaps blowing about in the castle gutters; some
bits of broken stick may have trailed in corners; and behold, in the
pleasant air of the morning, a dandy prisoner trimming his nails with
a pair of scissors!
Finding the wounded man so firm, you may be sure the authorities did
not leave the rest of us in peace. No stone was left unturned.
We were had in again and again to be examined, now singly, now in twos
and threes. We were threatened with all sorts of impossible severities
and tempted with all manner of improbable rewards. I suppose I
was five times interrogated, and came off from each with flying colours.
I am like old Souvaroff, I cannot understand a soldier being taken aback
by any question; he should answer, as he marches on the fire, with an
instant briskness and gaiety. I may have been short of bread,
gold or grace; I was never yet found wanting in an answer. My
comrades, if they were not all so ready, were none of them less staunch;
and I may say here at once that the inquiry came to nothing at the time,
and the death of Goguelat remained a mystery of the prison. Such
were the veterans of France! And yet I should be disingenuous
if I did not own this was a case apart; in ordinary circumstances, some
one might have stumbled or been intimidated into an admission; and what
bound us together with a closeness beyond that of mere comrades was
a secret to which we were all committed and a design in which all were
equally engaged. No need to inquire as to its nature: there is
only one desire, and only one kind of design, that blooms in prisons.
And the fact that our tunnel was near done supported and inspired us.
I came off in public, as I have said, with flying colours; the sittings
of the court of inquiry died away like a tune that no one listens to;
and yet I was unmasked - I, whom my very adversary defended, as good
as confessed, as good as told the nature of the quarrel, and by so doing
prepared for myself in the future a most anxious, disagreeable adventure.
It was the third morning after the duel, and Goguelat was still in life,
when the time came round for me to give Major Chevenix a lesson.
I was fond of this occupation; not that he paid me much - no more, indeed,
than eighteenpence a month, the customary figure, being a miser in the
grain; but because I liked his breakfasts and (to some extent) himself.
At least, he was a man of education; and of the others with whom I had
any opportunity of speech, those that would not have held a book upsidedown
would have torn the pages out for pipe-lights. For I must repeat
again that our body of prisoners was exceptional: there was in Edinburgh
Castle none of that educational busyness that distinguished some of
the other prisons, so that men entered them unable to read, and left
them fit for high employments. Chevenix was handsome, and surprisingly
young to be a major: six feet in his stockings, well set up, with regular
features and very clear grey eyes. It was impossible to pick a
fault in him, and yet the sum-total was displeasing. Perhaps he
was too clean; he seemed to bear about with him the smell of soap.
Cleanliness is good, but I cannot bear a man’s nails to seem japanned.
And certainly he was too self-possessed and cold. There was none
of the fire of youth, none of the swiftness of the soldier, in this
young officer. His kindness was cold, and cruel cold; his deliberation
exasperating. And perhaps it was from this character, which is
very much the opposite of my own, that even in these days, when he was
of service to me, I approached him with suspicion and reserve.
I looked over his exercise in the usual form, and marked six faults.
‘H’m. Six,’ says he, looking at the paper.
‘Very annoying! I can never get it right.’
‘Oh, but you make excellent progress!’ I said. I would
not discourage him, you understand, but he was congenitally unable to
learn French. Some fire, I think, is needful, and he had quenched
his fire in soapsuds.
He put the exercise down, leaned his chin upon his hand, and looked
at me with clear, severe eyes.
‘I think we must have a little talk,’ said he.
‘I am entirely at your disposition,’ I replied; but I quaked,
for I knew what subject to expect.
‘You have been some time giving me these lessons,’ he went
on, ‘and I am tempted to think rather well of you. I believe
you are a gentleman.’
‘I have that honour, sir,’ said I.
‘You have seen me for the same period. I do not know how
I strike you; but perhaps you will be prepared to believe that I also
am a man of honour,’ said he.
‘I require no assurances; the thing is manifest,’ and I
bowed.
‘Very well, then,’ said he. ‘What about this
Goguelat?’
‘You heard me yesterday before the court,’ I began.
‘I was awakened only - ’
‘Oh yes; I “heard you yesterday before the court,”
no doubt,’ he interrupted, ‘and I remember perfectly that
you were “awakened only.” I could repeat the most
of it by rote, indeed. But do you suppose that I believed you
for a moment?’
‘Neither would you believe me if I were to repeat it here,’
said I.
‘I may be wrong - we shall soon see,’ says he; ‘but
my impression is that you will not “repeat it here.”
My impression is that you have come into this room, and that you will
tell me something before you go out.’
I shrugged my shoulders.
‘Let me explain,’ he continued. ‘Your evidence,
of course, is nonsense. I put it by, and the court put it by.’
‘My compliments and thanks!’ said I.
‘You must know - that’s the short and the long,’
he proceeded. ‘All of you in shed B are bound to know.
And I want to ask you where is the common-sense of keeping up this farce,
and maintaining this cock-and-bull story between friends. Come,
come, my good fellow, own yourself beaten, and laugh at it yourself.’
‘Well, I hear you, go ahead,’ said I. ‘You put
your heart in it.’
He crossed his legs slowly. ‘I can very well understand,’
he began, ‘that precautions have had to be taken. I dare
say an oath was administered. I can comprehend that perfectly.’
(He was watching me all the time with his cold, bright eyes.)
‘And I can comprehend that, about an affair of honour, you would
be very particular to keep it.’
‘About an affair of honour?’ I repeated, like a man quite
puzzled.
‘It was not an affair of honour, then?’ he asked.
‘What was not? I do not follow,’ said I.
He gave no sign of impatience; simply sat awhile silent, and began again
in the same placid and good-natured voice: ‘The court and I were
at one in setting aside your evidence. It could not deceive a
child. But there was a difference between myself and the other
officers, because I knew my man and they did not. They
saw in you a common soldier, and I knew you for a gentleman. To
them your evidence was a leash of lies, which they yawned to hear you
telling. Now, I was asking myself, how far will a gentleman go?
Not surely so far as to help hush a murder up? So that - when
I heard you tell how you knew nothing of the matter, and were only awakened
by the corporal, and all the rest of it - I translated your statements
into something else. Now, Champdivers,’ he cried, springing
up lively and coming towards me with animation, ‘I am going to
tell you what that was, and you are going to help me to see justice
done: how, I don’t know, for of course you are under oath - but
somehow. Mark what I’m going to say.’
At that moment he laid a heavy, hard grip upon my shoulder; and whether
he said anything more or came to a full stop at once, I am sure I could
not tell you to this day. For, as the devil would have it, the
shoulder he laid hold of was the one Goguelat had pinked. The
wound was but a scratch; it was healing with the first intention; but
in the clutch of Major Chevenix it gave me agony. My head swam;
the sweat poured off my face; I must have grown deadly pale.
He removed his hand as suddenly as he had laid it there. ‘What
is wrong with you?’ said he.
‘It is nothing,’ said I. ‘A qualm. It
has gone by.’
‘Are you sure?’ said he. ‘You are as white as
a sheet.’
‘Oh no, I assure you! Nothing whatever. I am my own
man again,’ I said, though I could scarce command my tongue.
‘Well, shall I go on again?’ says he. ‘Can you
follow me?’
‘Oh, by all means!’ said I, and mopped my streaming face
upon my sleeve, for you may be sure in those days I had no handkerchief.
‘If you are sure you can follow me. That was a very sudden
and sharp seizure,’ he said doubtfully. ‘But if you
are sure, all right, and here goes. An affair of honour among
you fellows would, naturally, be a little difficult to carry out, perhaps
it would be impossible to have it wholly regular. And yet a duel
might be very irregular in form, and, under the peculiar circumstances
of the case, loyal enough in effect. Do you take me? Now,
as a gentleman and a soldier.’
His hand rose again at the words and hovered over me. I could
bear no more, and winced away from him. ‘No,’ I cried,
‘not that. Do not put your hand upon my shoulder.
I cannot bear it. It is rheumatism,’ I made haste to add.
‘My shoulder is inflamed and very painful.’
He returned to his chair and deliberately lighted a cigar.
‘I am sorry about your shoulder,’ he said at last.
‘Let me send for the doctor.’
‘Not in the least,’ said I. ‘It is a trifle.
I am quite used to it. It does not trouble me in the smallest.
At any rate, I don’t believe in doctors.’
‘All right,’ said he, and sat and smoked a good while in
a silence which I would have given anything to break. ‘Well,’
he began presently, ‘I believe there is nothing left for me to
learn. I presume I may say that I know all.’
‘About what?’ said I boldly.
‘About Goguelat,’ said he.
‘I beg your pardon. I cannot conceive,’ said I.
‘Oh,’ says the major, ‘the man fell in a duel, and
by your hand! I am not an infant.’
‘By no means,’ said I. ‘But you seem to me to
be a good deal of a theorist.’
‘Shall we test it?’ he asked. ‘The doctor is
close by. If there is not an open wound on your shoulder, I am
wrong. If there is - ’ He waved his hand. ‘But
I advise you to think twice. There is a deuce of a nasty drawback
to the experiment - that what might have remained private between us
two becomes public property.’
‘Oh, well!’ said I, with a laugh, ‘anything rather
than a doctor! I cannot bear the breed.’
His last words had a good deal relieved me, but I was still far from
comfortable.
Major Chevenix smoked awhile, looking now at his cigar ash, now at me.
‘I’m a soldier myself,’ he says presently, ‘and
I’ve been out in my time and hit my man. I don’t want
to run any one into a corner for an affair that was at all necessary
or correct. At the same time, I want to know that much, and I’ll
take your word of honour for it. Otherwise, I shall be very sorry,
but the doctor must be called in.’
‘I neither admit anything nor deny anything,’ I returned.
‘But if this form of words will suffice you, here is what I say:
I give you my parole, as a gentleman and a soldier, there has nothing
taken place amongst us prisoners that was not honourable as the day.’
‘All right,’ says he. ‘That was all I wanted.
You can go now, Champdivers.’
And as I was going out he added, with a laugh: ‘By the bye, I
ought to apologise: I had no idea I was applying the torture!’
The same afternoon the doctor came into the courtyard with a piece of
paper in his hand. He seemed hot and angry, and had certainly
no mind to be polite.
‘Here!’ he cried. ‘Which of you fellows knows
any English? Oh!’ - spying me - ‘there you are, what’s
your name! You’ll do. Tell these fellows that
the other fellow’s dying. He’s booked; no use talking;
I expect he’ll go by evening. And tell them I don’t
envy the feelings of the fellow who spiked him. Tell them that
first.’
I did so.
‘Then you can tell ’em,’ he resumed, ‘that the
fellow, Goggle - what’s his name? - wants to see some of them
before he gets his marching orders. If I got it right, he wants
to kiss or embrace you, or some sickening stuff. Got that?
Then here’s a list he’s had written, and you’d better
read it out to them - I can’t make head or tail of your beastly
names - and they can answer present, and fall in against that
wall.’
It was with a singular movement of incongruous feelings that I read
the first name on the list. I had no wish to look again on my
own handiwork; my flesh recoiled from the idea; and how could I be sure
what reception he designed to give me? The cure was in my own
hand; I could pass that first name over - the doctor would not know
- and I might stay away. But to the subsequent great gladness
of my heart, I did not dwell for an instant on the thought, walked over
to the designated wall, faced about, read out the name ‘Champdivers,’
and answered myself with the word ‘Present.’
There were some half dozen on the list, all told; and as soon as we
were mustered, the doctor led the way to the hospital, and we followed
after, like a fatigue party, in single file. At the door he paused,
told us ‘the fellow’ would see each of us alone, and, as
soon as I had explained that, sent me by myself into the ward.
It was a small room, whitewashed; a south window stood open on a vast
depth of air and a spacious and distant prospect; and from deep below,
in the Grassmarket the voices of hawkers came up clear and far away.
Hard by, on a little bed, lay Goguelat. The sunburn had not yet
faded from his face, and the stamp of death was already there.
There was something wild and unmannish in his smile, that took me by
the throat; only death and love know or have ever seen it. And
when he spoke, it seemed to shame his coarse talk.
He held out his arms as if to embrace me. I drew near with incredible
shrinkings, and surrendered myself to his arms with overwhelming disgust.
But he only drew my ear down to his lips.
‘Trust me,’ he whispered. ‘Je suis bon bougre,
moi. I’ll take it to hell with me, and tell the devil.’
Why should I go on to reproduce his grossness and trivialities?
All that he thought, at that hour, was even noble, though he could not
clothe it otherwise than in the language of a brutal farce. Presently
he bade me call the doctor; and when that officer had come in, raised
a little up in his bed, pointed first to himself and then to me, who
stood weeping by his side, and several times repeated the expression,
‘Frinds - frinds - dam frinds.’
To my great surprise, the doctor appeared very much affected.
He nodded his little bob-wigged head at us, and said repeatedly, ‘All
right, Johnny - me comprong.’
Then Goguelat shook hands with me, embraced me again, and I went out
of the room sobbing like an infant.
How often have I not seen it, that the most unpardonable fellows make
the happiest exits! It is a fate we may well envy them.
Goguelat was detested in life; in the last three days, by his admirable
staunchness and consideration, he won every heart; and when word went
about the prison the same evening that he was no more, the voice of
conversation became hushed as in a house of mourning.
For myself I was like a man distracted; I cannot think what ailed me:
when I awoke the following day, nothing remained of it; but that night
I was filled with a gloomy fury of the nerves. I had killed him;
he had done his utmost to protect me; I had seen him with that awful
smile. And so illogical and useless is this sentiment of remorse,
that I was ready, at a word or a look, to quarrel with somebody else.
I presume the disposition of my mind was imprinted on my face; and when,
a little after, I overtook, saluted and addressed the doctor, he looked
on me with commiseration and surprise.
I had asked him if it was true.
‘Yes,’ he said, ‘the fellow’s gone.’
‘Did he suffer much?’ I asked.
‘Devil a bit; passed away like a lamb,’ said he. He
looked on me a little, and I saw his hand go to his fob. ‘Here,
take that! no sense in fretting,’ he said, and, putting a silver
two-penny-bit in my hand, he left me.
I should have had that twopenny framed to hang upon the wall, for it
was the man’s one act of charity in all my knowledge of him.
Instead of that, I stood looking at it in my hand and laughed out bitterly,
as I realised his mistake; then went to the ramparts, and flung it far
into the air like blood money. The night was falling; through
an embrasure and across the gardened valley I saw the lamplighters hasting
along Princes Street with ladder and lamp, and looked on moodily.
As I was so standing a hand was laid upon my shoulder, and I turned
about. It was Major Chevenix, dressed for the evening, and his
neckcloth really admirably folded. I never denied the man could
dress.
‘Ah!’ said he, ‘I thought it was you, Champdivers.
So he’s gone?’
I nodded.
‘Come, come,’ said he, ‘you must cheer up. Of
course it’s very distressing, very painful and all that.
But do you know, it ain’t such a bad thing either for you or me?
What with his death and your visit to him I am entirely reassured.’
So I was to owe my life to Goguelat at every point.
‘I had rather not discuss it,’ said I.
‘Well,’ said he, ‘one word more, and I’ll agree
to bury the subject. What did you fight about?’
‘Oh, what do men ever fight about?’ I cried.
‘A lady?’ said he.
I shrugged my shoulders.
‘Deuce you did!’ said he. ‘I should scarce have
thought it of him.’
And at this my ill-humour broke fairly out in words. ‘He!’
I cried. ‘He never dared to address her - only to look at
her and vomit his vile insults! She may have given him sixpence:
if she did, it may take him to heaven yet!’
At this I became aware of his eyes set upon me with a considering look,
and brought up sharply.
‘Well, well,’ said he. ‘Good night to you, Champdivers.
Come to me at breakfast-time to-morrow, and we’ll talk of other
subjects.’
I fully admit the man’s conduct was not bad: in writing it down
so long after the events I can even see that it was good.
CHAPTER IV - ST. IVES GETS A BUNDLE OF BANK NOTES
I was surprised one morning, shortly after, to find myself the object
of marked consideration by a civilian and a stranger. This was
a man of the middle age; he had a face of a mulberry colour, round black
eyes, comical tufted eyebrows, and a protuberant forehead; and was dressed
in clothes of a Quakerish cut. In spite of his plainness, he had
that inscrutable air of a man well-to-do in his affairs. I conceived
he had been some while observing me from a distance, for a sparrow sat
betwixt us quite unalarmed on the breech of a piece of cannon.
So soon as our eyes met, he drew near and addressed me in the French
language, which he spoke with a good fluency but an abominable accent.
‘I have the pleasure of addressing Monsieur le Vicomte Anne de
Kéroual de Saint-Yves?’ said he.
‘Well,’ said I, ‘I do not call myself all that; but
I have a right to, if I chose. In the meanwhile I call myself
plain Champdivers, at your disposal. It was my mother’s
name, and good to go soldiering with.’
‘I think not quite,’ said he; ‘for if I remember rightly,
your mother also had the particle. Her name was Florimonde de
Champdivers.’
‘Right again!’ said I, ‘and I am extremely pleased
to meet a gentleman so well informed in my quarterings. Is monsieur
Born himself?’ This I said with a great air of assumption,
partly to conceal the degree of curiosity with which my visitor had
inspired me, and in part because it struck me as highly incongruous
and comical in my prison garb and on the lips of a private soldier.
He seemed to think so too, for he laughed.
‘No, sir,’ he returned, speaking this time in English; ‘I
am not “born,” as you call it, and must content myself
with dying, of which I am equally susceptible with the best of
you. My name is Mr. Romaine - Daniel Romaine - a solicitor of
London City, at your service; and, what will perhaps interest you more,
I am here at the request of your great-uncle, the Count.’
‘What!’ I cried, ‘does M. de Kéroual de St.-Yves
remember the existence of such a person as myself, and will he deign
to count kinship with a soldier of Napoleon?’
‘You speak English well,’ observed my visitor.
‘It has been a second language to me from a child,’ said
I. ‘I had an English nurse; my father spoke English with
me; and I was finished by a countryman of yours and a dear friend of
mine, a Mr. Vicary.’
A strong expression of interest came into the lawyer’s face.
‘What!’ he cried, ‘you knew poor Vicary?’
‘For more than a year,’ said I; ‘and shared his hiding-place
for many months.’
‘And I was his clerk, and have succeeded him in business,’
said he. ‘Excellent man! It was on the affairs of
M. de Kéroual that he went to that accursed country, from which
he was never destined to return. Do you chance to know his end,
sir?’
‘I am sorry,’ said I, ‘I do. He perished miserably
at the hands of a gang of banditti, such as we call chauffeurs.
In a word, he was tortured, and died of it. See,’ I added,
kicking off one shoe, for I had no stockings; ‘I was no more than
a child, and see how they had begun to treat myself.’
He looked at the mark of my old burn with a certain shrinking.
‘Beastly people!’ I heard him mutter to himself.
‘The English may say so with a good grace,’ I observed politely.
Such speeches were the coin in which I paid my way among this credulous
race. Ninety per cent. of our visitors would have accepted the
remark as natural in itself and creditable to my powers of judgment,
but it appeared my lawyer was more acute.
‘You are not entirely a fool, I perceive,’ said he.
‘No,’ said I; ‘not wholly.’
‘And yet it is well to beware of the ironical mood,’ he
continued. ‘It is a dangerous instrument. Your great-uncle
has, I believe, practised it very much, until it is now become a problem
what he means.’
‘And that brings me back to what you will admit is a most natural
inquiry,’ said I. ‘To what do I owe the pleasure of
this visit? how did you recognise me? and how did you know I was here?’
Carefull separating his coat skirts, the lawyer took a seat beside me
on the edge of the flags.
‘It is rather an odd story,’ says he, ‘and, with your
leave, I’ll answer the second question first. It was from
a certain resemblance you bear to your cousin, M. le Vicomte.’
‘I trust, sir, that I resemble him advantageously?’ said
I.
‘I hasten to reassure you,’ was the reply: ‘you do.
To my eyes, M. Alain de St.-Yves has scarce a pleasing exterior.
And yet, when I knew you were here, and was actually looking for you
- why, the likeness helped. As for how I came to know your whereabouts,
by an odd enough chance, it is again M. Alain we have to thank.
I should tell you, he has for some time made it his business to keep
M. de Kéroual informed of your career; with what purpose I leave
you to judge. When he first brought the news of your - that you
were serving Buonaparte, it seemed it might be the death of the old
gentleman, so hot was his resentment. But from one thing to another,
matters have a little changed. Or I should rather say, not a little.
We learned you were under orders for the Peninsula, to fight the English;
then that you had been commissioned for a piece of bravery, and were
again reduced to the ranks. And from one thing to another (as
I say), M. de Kéroual became used to the idea that you were his
kinsman and yet served with Buonaparte, and filled instead with wonder
that he should have another kinsman who was so remarkably well informed
of events in France. And it now became a very disagreeable question,
whether the young gentleman was not a spy? In short, sir, in seeking
to disserve you, he had accumulated against himself a load of suspicions.’
My visitor now paused, took snuff, and looked at me with an air of benevolence.
‘Good God, sir!’ says I, ‘this is a curious story.’
‘You will say so before I have done,’ said he. ‘For
there have two events followed. The first of these was an encounter
of M. de Kéroual and M. de Mauseant.’
‘I know the man to my cost,’ said I: ‘it was through
him I lost my commission.’
‘Do you tell me so?’ he cried. ‘Why, here is
news!’
‘Oh, I cannot complain!’ said I. ‘I was in the
wrong. I did it with my eyes open. If a man gets a prisoner
to guard and lets him go, the least he can expect is to be degraded.’
‘You will be paid for it,’ said he. ‘You did
well for yourself and better for your king.’
‘If I had thought I was injuring my emperor,’ said I, ‘I
would have let M. de Mauseant burn in hell ere I had helped him, and
be sure of that! I saw in him only a private person in a difficulty:
I let him go in private charity; not even to profit myself will I suffer
it to be misunderstood.’
‘Well, well,’ said the lawyer, ‘no matter now.
This is a foolish warmth - a very misplaced enthusiasm, believe me!
The point of the story is that M. de Mauseant spoke of you with gratitude,
and drew your character in such a manner as greatly to affect your uncle’s
views. Hard upon the back of which, in came your humble servant,
and laid before him the direct proof of what we had been so long suspecting.
There was no dubiety permitted. M. Alain’s expensive way
of life, his clothes and mistresses, his dicing and racehorses, were
all explained: he was in the pay of Buonaparte, a hired spy, and a man
that held the strings of what I can only call a convolution of extremely
fishy enterprises. To do M. de Kéroual justice, he took
it in the best way imaginable, destroyed the evidences of the one great-nephew’s
disgrace - and transferred his interest wholly to the other.’
‘What am I to understand by that?’ said I.
‘I will tell you,’ says he. ‘There is a remarkable
inconsistency in human nature which gentlemen of my cloth have a great
deal of occasion to observe. Selfish persons can live without
chick or child, they can live without all mankind except perhaps the
barber and the apothecary; but when it comes to dying, they seem physically
unable to die without an heir. You can apply this principle for
yourself. Viscount Alain, though he scarce guesses it, is no longer
in the field. Remains, Viscount Anne.’
‘I see,’ said I, ‘you give a very unfavourable impression
of my uncle, the Count.’
‘I had not meant it,’ said he. ‘He has led a
loose life - sadly loose - but he is a man it is impossible to know
and not to admire; his courtesy is exquisite.’
‘And so you think there is actually a chance for me?’ I
asked.
‘Understand,’ said he: ‘in saying as much as I have
done, I travel quite beyond my brief. I have been clothed with
no capacity to talk of wills, or heritages, or your cousin. I
was sent here to make but the one communication: that M. de Kéroual
desires to meet his great-nephew.’
‘Well,’ said I, looking about me on the battlements by which
we sat surrounded, ‘this is a case in which Mahomet must certainly
come to the mountain.’
‘Pardon me,’ said Mr. Romaine; ‘you know already your
uncle is an aged man; but I have not yet told you that he is quite broken
up, and his death shortly looked for. No, no, there is no doubt
about it - it is the mountain that must come to Mahomet.’
‘From an Englishman, the remark is certainly significant,’
said I; ‘but you are of course, and by trade, a keeper of men’s
secrets, and I see you keep that of Cousin Alain, which is not the mark
of a truculent patriotism, to say the least.’
‘I am first of all the lawyer of your family!’ says he.
‘That being so,’ said I, ‘I can perhaps stretch a
point myself. This rock is very high, and it is very steep; a
man might come by a devil of a fall from almost any part of it, and
yet I believe I have a pair of wings that might carry me just so far
as to the bottom. Once at the bottom I am helpless.’
‘And perhaps it is just then that I could step in,’ returned
the lawyer. ‘Suppose by some contingency, at which I make
no guess, and on which I offer no opinion - ’
But here I interrupted him. ‘One word ere you go further.
I am under no parole,’ said I.
‘I understood so much,’ he replied, ‘although some
of you French gentry find their word sit lightly on them.’
‘Sir, I am not one of those,’ said I.
‘To do you plain justice, I do not think you one,’ said
he. ‘Suppose yourself, then, set free and at the bottom
of the rock,’ he continued, ‘although I may not be able
to do much, I believe I can do something to help you on your road.
In the first place I would carry this, whether in an inside pocket or
my shoe.’ And he passed me a bundle of bank notes.
‘No harm in that,’ said I, at once concealing them.
‘In the second place,’ he resumed, ‘it is a great
way from here to where your uncle lives - Amersham Place, not far from
Dunstable; you have a great part of Britain to get through; and for
the first stages, I must leave you to your own luck and ingenuity.
I have no acquaintance here in Scotland, or at least’ (with a
grimace) ‘no dishonest ones. But further to the south, about
Wakefield, I am told there is a gentleman called Burchell Fenn, who
is not so particular as some others, and might be willing to give you
a cast forward. In fact, sir, I believe it’s the man’s
trade: a piece of knowledge that burns my mouth. But that is what
you get by meddling with rogues; and perhaps the biggest rogue now extant,
M. de Saint-Yves, is your cousin, M. Alain.’
‘If this be a man of my cousin’s,’ I observed, ‘I
am perhaps better to keep clear of him?’
‘It was through some paper of your cousin’s that we came
across his trail,’ replied the lawyer. ‘But I am inclined
to think, so far as anything is safe in such a nasty business, you might
apply to the man Fenn. You might even, I think, use the Viscount’s
name; and the little trick of family resemblance might come in.
How, for instance, if you were to call yourself his brother?’
‘It might be done,’ said I. ‘But look here a
moment? You propose to me a very difficult game: I have apparently
a devil of an opponent in my cousin; and, being a prisoner of war, I
can scarcely be said to hold good cards. For what stakes, then,
am I playing?’
‘They are very large,’ said he. ‘Your great-uncle
is immensely rich - immensely rich. He was wise in time; he smelt
the revolution long before; sold all that he could, and had all that
was movable transported to England through my firm. There are
considerable estates in England; Amersham Place itself is very fine;
and he has much money, wisely invested. He lives, indeed, like
a prince. And of what use is it to him? He has lost all
that was worth living for - his family, his country; he has seen his
king and queen murdered; he has seen all these miseries and infamies,’
pursued the lawyer, with a rising inflection and a heightening colour;
and then broke suddenly off, - ‘In short, sir, he has seen all
the advantages of that government for which his nephew carries arms,
and he has the misfortune not to like them.’
‘You speak with a bitterness that I suppose I must excuse,’
said I; ‘yet which of us has the more reason to be bitter?
This man, my uncle, M. de Kéroual, fled. My parents, who
were less wise perhaps, remained. In the beginning, they were
even republicans; to the end they could not be persuaded to despair
of the people. It was a glorious folly, for which, as a son, I
reverence them. First one and then the other perished. If
I have any mark of a gentleman, all who taught me died upon the scaffold,
and my last school of manners was the prison of the Abbaye. Do
you think you can teach bitterness to a man with a history like mine?’
‘I have no wish to try,’ said he. ‘And yet there
is one point I cannot understand: I cannot understand that one of your
blood and experience should serve the Corsican. I cannot understand
it: it seems as though everything generous in you must rise against
that - domination.’
‘And perhaps,’ I retorted, ‘had your childhood passed
among wolves, you would have been overjoyed yourself to see the Corsican
Shepherd.’
‘Well, well,’ replied Mr. Romaine, ‘it may be.
There are things that do not bear discussion.’
And with a wave of his hand he disappeared abruptly down a flight of
steps and under the shadow of a ponderous arch.
CHAPTER V - ST. IVES IS SHOWN A HOUSE
The lawyer was scarce gone before I remembered many omissions; and chief
among these, that I had neglected to get Mr. Burchell Fenn’s address.
Here was an essential point neglected; and I ran to the head of the
stairs to find myself already too late. The lawyer was beyond
my view; in the archway that led downward to the castle gate, only the
red coat and the bright arms of a sentry glittered in the shadow; and
I could but return to my place upon the ramparts.
I am not very sure that I was properly entitled to this corner.
But I was a high favourite; not an officer, and scarce a private, in
the castle would have turned me back, except upon a thing of moment;
and whenever I desired to be solitary, I was suffered to sit here behind
my piece of cannon unmolested. The cliff went down before me almost
sheer, but mantled with a thicket of climbing trees; from farther down,
an outwork raised its turret; and across the valley I had a view of
that long terrace of Princes Street which serves as a promenade to the
fashionable inhabitants of Edinburgh. A singularity in a military
prison, that it should command a view on the chief thoroughfare!
It is not necessary that I should trouble you with the train of my reflections,
which turned upon the interview I had just concluded and the hopes that
were now opening before me. What is more essential, my eye (even
while I thought) kept following the movement of the passengers on Princes
Street, as they passed briskly to and fro - met, greeted, and bowed
to each other - or entered and left the shops, which are in that quarter,
and, for a town of the Britannic provinces, particularly fine.
My mind being busy upon other things, the course of my eye was the more
random; and it chanced that I followed, for some time, the advance of
a young gentleman with a red head and a white great-coat, for whom I
cared nothing at the moment, and of whom it is probable I shall be gathered
to my fathers without learning more. He seemed to have a large
acquaintance: his hat was for ever in his hand; and I daresay I had
already observed him exchanging compliments with half a dozen, when
he drew up at last before a young man and a young lady whose tall persons
and gallant carriage I thought I recognised.
It was impossible at such a distance that I could be sure, but the thought
was sufficient, and I craned out of the embrasure to follow them as
long as possible. To think that such emotions, that such a concussion
of the blood, may have been inspired by a chance resemblance, and that
I may have stood and thrilled there for a total stranger! This
distant view, at least, whether of Flora or of some one else, changed
in a moment the course of my reflections. It was all very well,
and it was highly needful, I should see my uncle; but an uncle, a great-uncle
at that, and one whom I had never seen, leaves the imagination cold;
and if I were to leave the castle, I might never again have the opportunity
of finding Flora. The little impression I had made, even supposing
I had made any, how soon it would die out! how soon I should sink to
be a phantom memory, with which (in after days) she might amuse a husband
and children! No, the impression must be clenched, the wax impressed
with the seal, ere I left Edinburgh. And at this the two interests
that were now contending in my bosom came together and became one.
I wished to see Flora again; and I wanted some one to further me in
my flight and to get me new clothes. The conclusion was apparent.
Except for persons in the garrison itself, with whom it was a point
of honour and military duty to retain me captive, I knew, in the whole
country of Scotland, these two alone. If it were to be done at
all, they must be my helpers. To tell them of my designed escape
while I was still in bonds, would be to lay before them a most difficult
choice. What they might do in such a case, I could not in the
least be sure of, for (the same case arising) I was far from sure what
I should do myself. It was plain I must escape first. When
the harm was done, when I was no more than a poor wayside fugitive,
I might apply to them with less offence and more security. To
this end it became necessary that I should find out where they lived
and how to reach it; and feeling a strong confidence that they would
soon return to visit me, I prepared a series of baits with which to
angle for my information. It will be seen the first was good enough.
Perhaps two days after, Master Ronald put in an appearance by himself.
I had no hold upon the boy, and pretermitted my design till I should
have laid court to him and engaged his interest. He was prodigiously
embarrassed, not having previously addressed me otherwise than by a
bow and blushes; and he advanced to me with an air of one stubbornly
performing a duty, like a raw soldier under fire. I laid down
my carving; greeted him with a good deal of formality, such as I thought
he would enjoy; and finding him to remain silent, branched off into
narratives of my campaigns such as Goguelat himself might have scrupled
to endorse. He visibly thawed and brightened; drew more near to
where I sat; forgot his timidity so far as to put many questions; and
at last, with another blush, informed me he was himself expecting a
commission.
‘Well,’ said I, ‘they are fine troops, your British
troops in the Peninsula. A young gentleman of spirit may well
be proud to be engaged at the head of such soldiers.’
‘I know that,’ he said; ‘I think of nothing else.
I think shame to be dangling here at home and going through with this
foolery of education, while others, no older than myself, are in the
field.’
‘I cannot blame you,’ said I. ‘I have felt the
same myself.’
‘There are - there are no troops, are there, quite so good as
ours?’ he asked.
‘Well,’ said I, ‘there is a point about them: they
have a defect, - they are not to be trusted in a retreat. I have
seen them behave very ill in a retreat.’
‘I believe that is our national character,’ he said - God
forgive him! - with an air of pride.
‘I have seen your national character running away at least, and
had the honour to run after it!’ rose to my lips, but I was not
so ill advised as to give it utterance. Every one should be flattered,
but boys and women without stint; and I put in the rest of the afternoon
narrating to him tales of British heroism, for which I should not like
to engage that they were all true.
‘I am quite surprised,’ he said at last. ‘People
tell you the French are insincere. Now, I think your sincerity
is beautiful. I think you have a noble character. I admire
you very much. I am very grateful for your kindness to - to one
so young,’ and he offered me his hand.
‘I shall see you again soon?’ said I.
‘Oh, now! Yes, very soon,’ said he. ‘I
- I wish to tell you. I would not let Flora - Miss Gilchrist,
I mean - come to-day. I wished to see more of you myself.
I trust you are not offended: you know, one should be careful about
strangers.’
I approved his caution, and he took himself away: leaving me in a mixture
of contrarious feelings, part ashamed to have played on one so gullible,
part raging that I should have burned so much incense before the vanity
of England; yet, in the bottom of my soul, delighted to think I had
made a friend - or, at least, begun to make a friend - of Flora’s
brother.
As I had half expected, both made their appearance the next day.
I struck so fine a shade betwixt the pride that is allowed to soldiers
and the sorrowful humility that befits a captive, that I declare, as
I went to meet them, I might have afforded a subject for a painter.
So much was high comedy, I must confess; but so soon as my eyes lighted
full on her dark face and eloquent eyes, the blood leaped into my cheeks
- and that was nature! I thanked them, but not the least with
exultation; it was my cue to be mournful, and to take the pair of them
as one.
‘I have been thinking,’ I said, ‘you have been so
good to me, both of you, stranger and prisoner as I am, that I have
been thinking how I could testify to my gratitude. It may seem
a strange subject for a confidence, but there is actually no one here,
even of my comrades, that knows me by my name and title. By these
I am called plain Champdivers, a name to which I have a right, but not
the name which I should bear, and which (but a little while ago) I must
hide like a crime. Miss Flora, suffer me to present to you the
Vicomte Anne de Kéroual de Saint-Yves, a private soldier.’
‘I knew it!’ cried the boy; ‘I knew he was a noble!’
And I thought the eyes of Miss Flora said the same, but more persuasively.
All through this interview she kept them on the ground, or only gave
them to me for a moment at a time, and with a serious sweetness.
‘You may conceive, my friends, that this is rather a painful confession,’
I continued. ‘To stand here before you, vanquished, a prisoner
in a fortress, and take my own name upon my lips, is painful to the
proud. And yet I wished that you should know me. Long after
this, we may yet hear of one another - perhaps Mr. Gilchrist and myself
in the field and from opposing camps - and it would be a pity if we
heard and did not recognise.’
They were both moved; and began at once to press upon me offers of service,
such as to lend me books, get me tobacco if I used it, and the like.
This would have been all mighty welcome, before the tunnel was ready.
Now it signified no more to me than to offer the transition I required.
‘My dear friends,’ I said - ‘for you must allow me
to call you that, who have no others within so many hundred leagues
- perhaps you will think me fanciful and sentimental; and perhaps indeed
I am; but there is one service that I would beg of you before all others.
You see me set here on the top of this rock in the midst of your city.
Even with what liberty I have, I have the opportunity to see a myriad
roofs, and I dare to say, thirty leagues of sea and land. All
this hostile! Under all these roofs my enemies dwell; wherever
I see the smoke of a house rising, I must tell myself that some one
sits before the chimney and reads with joy of our reverses. Pardon
me, dear friends, I know that you must do the same, and I do not grudge
at it! With you, it is all different. Show me your house
then, were it only the chimney, or, if that be not visible, the quarter
of the town in which it lies! So, when I look all about me, I
shall be able to say: “There is one house in which I am not
quite unkindly thought of.”’
Flora stood a moment.
‘It is a pretty thought,’ said she, ‘and, as far as
regards Ronald and myself, a true one. Come, I believe I can show
you the very smoke out of our chimney.’
So saying, she carried me round the battlements towards the opposite
or southern side of the fortress, and indeed to a bastion almost immediately
overlooking the place of our projected flight. Thence we had a
view of some foreshortened suburbs at our feet, and beyond of a green,
open, and irregular country rising towards the Pentland Hills.
The face of one of these summits (say two leagues from where we stood)
is marked with a procession of white scars. And to this she directed
my attention.
‘You see these marks?’ she said. ‘We call them
the Seven Sisters. Follow a little lower with your eye, and you
will see a fold of the hill, the tops of some trees, and a tail of smoke
out of the midst of them. That is Swanston Cottage, where my brother
and I are living with my aunt. If it gives you pleasure to see
it, I am glad. We, too, can see the castle from a corner in the
garden, and we go there in the morning often - do we not, Ronald? -
and we think of you, M. de Saint-Yves; but I am afraid it does not altogether
make us glad.’
‘Mademoiselle!’ said I, and indeed my voice was scarce under
command, ‘if you knew how your generous words - how even the sight
of you - relieved the horrors of this place, I believe, I hope, I know,
you would be glad. I will come here daily and look at that dear
chimney and these green hills, and bless you from the heart, and dedicate
to you the prayers of this poor sinner. Ah! I do not say
they can avail!’
‘Who can say that, M. de Saint-Yves?’ she said softly.
‘But I think it is time we should be going.’
‘High time,’ said Ronald, whom (to say the truth) I had
a little forgotten.
On the way back, as I was laying myself out to recover lost ground with
the youth, and to obliterate, if possible, the memory of my last and
somewhat too fervent speech, who should come past us but the major?
I had to stand aside and salute as he went by, but his eyes appeared
entirely occupied with Flora.
‘Who is that man?’ she asked.
‘He is a friend of mine,’ said I. ‘I give him
lessons in French, and he has been very kind to me.’
‘He stared,’ she said, - ‘I do not say, rudely; but
why should he stare?’
‘If you do not wish to be stared at, mademoiselle, suffer me to
recommend a veil,’ said I.
She looked at me with what seemed anger. ‘I tell you the
man stared,’ she said.
And Ronald added. ‘Oh, I don’t think he meant any
harm. I suppose he was just surprised to see us walking about
with a pr - with M. Saint-Yves.’
But the next morning, when I went to Chevenix’s rooms, and after
I had dutifully corrected his exercise - ‘I compliment you on
your taste,’ said he to me.
‘I beg your pardon?’ said I.
‘Oh no, I beg yours,’ said he. ‘You understand
me perfectly, just as I do you.’
I murmured something about enigmas.
‘Well, shall I give you the key to the enigma?’ said he,
leaning back. ‘That was the young lady whom Goguelat insulted
and whom you avenged. I do not blame you. She is a heavenly
creature.’
‘With all my heart, to the last of it!’ said I. ‘And
to the first also, if it amuses you! You are become so very acute
of late that I suppose you must have your own way.’
‘What is her name?’ he asked.
‘Now, really!’ said I. ‘Do you think it likely
she has told me?’
‘I think it certain,’ said he.
I could not restrain my laughter. ‘Well, then, do you think
it likely I would tell you?’ I cried.
‘Not a bit.’ said he. ‘But come, to our lesson!’
CHAPTER VI - THE ESCAPE
The time for our escape drew near, and the nearer it came the less we
seemed to enjoy the prospect. There is but one side on which this
castle can be left either with dignity or safety; but as there is the
main gate and guard, and the chief street of the upper city, it is not
to be thought of by escaping prisoners. In all other directions
an abominable precipice surrounds it, down the face of which (if anywhere
at all) we must regain our liberty. By our concurrent labours
in many a dark night, working with the most anxious precautions against
noise, we had made out to pierce below the curtain about the south-west
corner, in a place they call the Devil’s Elbow. I
have never met that celebrity; nor (if the rest of him at all comes
up to what they called his elbow) have I the least desire of his acquaintance.
From the heel of the masonry, the rascally, breakneck precipice descended
sheer among waste lands, scattered suburbs of the city, and houses in
the building. I had never the heart to look for any length of
time - the thought that I must make the descent in person some dark
night robbing me of breath; and, indeed, on anybody not a seaman or
a steeple-jack, the mere sight of the Devil’s Elbow wrought
like an emetic.
I don’t know where the rope was got, and doubt if I much cared.
It was not that which gravelled me, but whether, now that we had it,
it would serve our turn. Its length, indeed, we made a shift to
fathom out; but who was to tell us how that length compared with the
way we had to go? Day after day, there would be always some of
us stolen out to the Devil’s Elbow and making estimates
of the descent, whether by a bare guess or the dropping of stones.
A private of pioneers remembered the formula for that - or else remembered
part of it and obligingly invented the remainder. I had never
any real confidence in that formula; and even had we got it from a book,
there were difficulties in the way of the application that might have
daunted Archimedes. We durst not drop any considerable pebble
lest the sentinels should hear, and those that we dropped we could not
hear ourselves. We had never a watch - or none that had a second-hand;
and though every one of us could guess a second to a nicety, all somehow
guessed it differently. In short, if any two set forth upon this
enterprise, they invariably returned with two opinions, and often with
a black eye in the bargain. I looked on upon these proceedings,
although not without laughter, yet with impatience and disgust.
I am one that cannot bear to see things botched or gone upon with ignorance;
and the thought that some poor devil was to hazard his bones upon such
premises, revolted me. Had I guessed the name of that unhappy
first adventurer, my sentiments might have been livelier still.
The designation of this personage was indeed all that remained for us
to do; and even in that we had advanced so far that the lot had fallen
on Shed B. It had been determined to mingle the bitter and the
sweet; and whoever went down first, the whole of his shed-mates were
to follow next in order. This caused a good deal of joy in Shed
B, and would have caused more if it had not still remained to choose
our pioneer. In view of the ambiguity in which we lay as to the
length of the rope and the height of the precipice - and that this gentleman
was to climb down from fifty to seventy fathoms on a pitchy night, on
a rope entirely free, and with not so much as an infant child to steady
it at the bottom, a little backwardness was perhaps excusable.
But it was, in our case, more than a little. The truth is, we
were all womanish fellows about a height; and I have myself been put,
more than once, hors de combat by a less affair than the rock
of Edinburgh Castle.
We discussed it in the dark and between the passage of the rounds; and
it was impossible for any body of men to show a less adventurous spirit.
I am sure some of us, and myself first among the number, regretted Goguelat.
Some were persuaded it was safe, and could prove the same by argument;
but if they had good reasons why some one else should make the trial,
they had better still why it should not be themselves. Others,
again, condemned the whole idea as insane; among these, as ill-luck
would have it, a seaman of the fleet; who was the most dispiriting of
all. The height, he reminded us, was greater than the tallest
ship’s mast, the rope entirely free; and he as good as defied
the boldest and strongest to succeed. We were relieved from this
dead-lock by our sergeant-major of dragoons.
‘Comrades,’ said he, ‘I believe I rank you all; and
for that reason, if you really wish it, I will be the first myself.
At the same time, you are to consider what the chances are that I may
prove to be the last, as well. I am no longer young - I was sixty
near a month ago. Since I have been a prisoner, I have made for
myself a little bedaine. My arms are all gone to fat.
And you must promise not to blame me, if I fall and play the devil with
the whole thing.’
‘We cannot hear of such a thing!’ said I. ‘M.
Laclas is the oldest man here; and, as such, he should be the very last
to offer. It is plain, we must draw lots.’
‘No,’ said M. Laclas; ‘you put something else in my
head! There is one here who owes a pretty candle to the others,
for they have kept his secret. Besides, the rest of us are only
rabble; and he is another affair altogether. Let Champdivers -
let the noble go the first.’
I confess there was a notable pause before the noble in question got
his voice. But there was no room for choice. I had been
so ill-advised, when I first joined the regiment, as to take ground
on my nobility. I had been often rallied on the matter in the
ranks, and had passed under the by-names of Monseigneur and the
Marquis. It was now needful I should justify myself and take
a fair revenge.
Any little hesitation I may have felt passed entirely unnoticed, from
the lucky incident of a round happening at that moment to go by.
And during the interval of silence there occurred something that sent
my blood to the boil. There was a private in our shed called Clausel,
a man of a very ugly disposition. He had made one of the followers
of Goguelat; but, whereas Goguelat had always a kind of monstrous gaiety
about him, Clausel was no less morose than he was evil-minded.
He was sometimes called the General, and sometimes by a name
too ill-mannered for repetition. As we all sat listening, this
man’s hand was laid on my shoulder, and his voice whispered in
my ear: ‘If you don’t go, I’ll have you hanged, Marquis!’
As soon as the round was past - ‘Certainly, gentlemen!’
said I. ‘I will give you a lead, with all the pleasure in
the world. But, first of all, there is a hound here to be punished.
M. Clausel has just insulted me, and dishonoured the French army; and
I demand that he run the gauntlet of this shed.’
There was but one voice asking what he had done, and, as soon as I had
told them, but one voice agreeing to the punishment. The General
was, in consequence, extremely roughly handled, and the next day was
congratulated by all who saw him on his new decorations.
It was lucky for us that he was one of the prime movers and believers
in our project of escape, or he had certainly revenged himself by a
denunciation. As for his feelings towards myself, they appeared,
by his looks, to surpass humanity; and I made up my mind to give him
a wide berth in the future.
Had I been to go down that instant, I believe I could have carried it
well. But it was already too late - the day was at hand.
The rest had still to be summoned. Nor was this the extent of
my misfortune; for the next night, and the night after, were adorned
with a perfect galaxy of stars, and showed every cat that stirred in
a quarter of a mile. During this interval, I have to direct your
sympathies on the Vicomte de Saint-Yves! All addressed me softly,
like folk round a sickbed. Our Italian corporal, who had got a
dozen of oysters from a fishwife, laid them at my feet, as though I
were a Pagan idol; and I have never since been wholly at my ease in
the society of shellfish. He who was the best of our carvers brought
me a snuff-box, which he had just completed, and which, while it was
yet in hand, he had often declared he would not part with under fifteen
dollars. I believe the piece was worth the money too! And
yet the voice stuck in my throat with which I must thank him.
I found myself, in a word, to be fed up like a prisoner in a camp of
anthropophagi, and honoured like the sacrificial bull. And what
with these annoyances, and the risky venture immediately ahead, I found
my part a trying one to play.
It was a good deal of a relief when the third evening closed about the
castle with volumes of sea-fog. The lights of Princes Street sometimes
disappeared, sometimes blinked across at us no brighter than the eyes
of cats; and five steps from one of the lanterns on the ramparts it
was already groping dark. We made haste to lie down. Had
our jailers been upon the watch, they must have observed our conversation
to die out unusually soon. Yet I doubt if any of us slept.
Each lay in his place, tortured at once with the hope of liberty and
the fear of a hateful death. The guard call sounded; the hum of
the town declined by little and little. On all sides of us, in
their different quarters, we could hear the watchman cry the hours along
the street. Often enough, during my stay in England, have I listened
to these gruff or broken voices; or perhaps gone to my window when I
lay sleepless, and watched the old gentleman hobble by upon the causeway
with his cape and his cap, his hanger and his rattle. It was ever
a thought with me how differently that cry would re-echo in the chamber
of lovers, beside the bed of death, or in the condemned cell.
I might be said to hear it that night myself in the condemned cell!
At length a fellow with a voice like a bull’s began to roar out
in the opposite thoroughfare:
‘Past yin o’cloak, and a dark, haary moarnin’.’
At which we were all silently afoot.
As I stole about the battlements towards the - gallows, I was about
to write - the sergeant-major, perhaps doubtful of my resolution, kept
close by me, and occasionally proffered the most indigestible reassurances
in my ear. At last I could bear them no longer.
‘Be so obliging as to let me be!’ said I. ‘I
am neither a coward nor a fool. What do you know of whether
the rope be long enough? But I shall know it in ten minutes!’
The good old fellow laughed in his moustache, and patted me.
It was all very well to show the disposition of my temper before a friend
alone; before my assembled comrades the thing had to go handsomely.
It was then my time to come on the stage; and I hope I took it handsomely.
‘Now, gentlemen,’ said I, ‘if the rope is ready, here
is the criminal!’
The tunnel was cleared, the stake driven, the rope extended. As
I moved forward to the place, many of my comrades caught me by the hand
and wrung it, an attention I could well have done without.
‘Keep an eye on Clausel!’ I whispered to Laclas; and with
that, got down on my elbows and knees took the rope in both hands, and
worked myself, feet foremost, through the tunnel. When the earth
failed under my feet, I thought my heart would have stopped; and a moment
after I was demeaning myself in mid-air like a drunken jumping-jack.
I have never been a model of piety, but at this juncture prayers and
a cold sweat burst from me simultaneously.
The line was knotted at intervals of eighteen inches; and to the inexpert
it may seem as if it should have been even easy to descend. The
trouble was, this devil of a piece of rope appeared to be inspired,
not with life alone, but with a personal malignity against myself.
It turned to the one side, paused for a moment, and then spun me like
a toasting-jack to the other; slipped like an eel from the clasp of
my feet; kept me all the time in the most outrageous fury of exertion;
and dashed me at intervals against the face of the rock. I had
no eyes to see with; and I doubt if there was anything to see but darkness.
I must occasionally have caught a gasp of breath, but it was quite unconscious.
And the whole forces of my mind were so consumed with losing hold and
getting it again, that I could scarce have told whether I was going
up or coming down.
Of a sudden I knocked against the cliff with such a thump as almost
bereft me of my sense; and, as reason twinkled back, I was amazed to
find that I was in a state of rest, that the face of the precipice here
inclined outwards at an angle which relieved me almost wholly of the
burthen of my own weight, and that one of my feet was safely planted
on a ledge. I drew one of the sweetest breaths in my experience,
hugged myself against the rope, and closed my eyes in a kind of ecstasy
of relief. It occurred to me next to see how far I was advanced
on my unlucky journey, a point on which I had not a shadow of a guess.
I looked up: there was nothing above me but the blackness of the night
and the fog. I craned timidly forward and looked down. There,
upon a floor of darkness, I beheld a certain pattern of hazy lights,
some of them aligned as in thoroughfares, others standing apart as in
solitary houses; and before I could well realise it, or had in the least
estimated my distance, a wave of nausea and vertigo warned me to lie
back and close my eyes. In this situation I had really but the
one wish, and that was: something else to think of! Strange to
say, I got it: a veil was torn from my mind, and I saw what a fool I
was - what fools we had all been - and that I had no business to be
thus dangling between earth and heaven by my arms. The only thing
to have done was to have attached me to a rope and lowered me, and I
had never the wit to see it till that moment!
I filled my lungs, got a good hold on my rope, and once more launched
myself on the descent. As it chanced, the worst of the danger
was at an end, and I was so fortunate as to be never again exposed to
any violent concussion. Soon after I must have passed within a
little distance of a bush of wallflower, for the scent of it came over
me with that impression of reality which characterises scents in darkness.
This made me a second landmark, the ledge being my first. I began
accordingly to compute intervals of time: so much to the ledge, so much
again to the wallflower, so much more below. If I were not at
the bottom of the rock, I calculated I must be near indeed to the end
of the rope, and there was no doubt that I was not far from the end
of my own resources. I began to be light-headed and to be tempted
to let go, - now arguing that I was certainly arrived within a few feet
of the level and could safely risk a fall, anon persuaded I was still
close at the top and it was idle to continue longer on the rock.
In the midst of which I came to a bearing on plain ground, and had nearly
wept aloud. My hands were as good as flayed, my courage entirely
exhausted, and, what with the long strain and the sudden relief, my
limbs shook under me with more than the violence of ague, and I was
glad to cling to the rope.
But this was no time to give way. I had (by God’s single
mercy) got myself alive out of that fortress; and now I had to try to
get the others, my comrades. There was about a fathom of rope
to spare; I got it by the end, and searched the whole ground thoroughly
for anything to make it fast to. In vain: the ground was broken
and stony, but there grew not there so much as a bush of furze.
‘Now then,’ thought I to myself, ‘here begins a new
lesson, and I believe it will prove richer than the first. I am
not strong enough to keep this rope extended. If I do not keep
it extended the next man will be dashed against the precipice.
There is no reason why he should have my extravagant good luck.
I see no reason why he should not fall - nor any place for him to fall
on but my head.’
From where I was now standing there was occasionally visible, as the
fog lightened, a lamp in one of the barrack windows, which gave me a
measure of the height he had to fall and the horrid force that he must
strike me with. What was yet worse, we had agreed to do without
signals: every so many minutes by Laclas’ watch another man was
to be started from the battlements. Now, I had seemed to myself
to be about half an hour in my descent, and it seemed near as long again
that I waited, straining on the rope for my next comrade to begin.
I began to be afraid that our conspiracy was out, that my friends were
all secured, and that I should pass the remainder of the night, and
be discovered in the morning, vainly clinging to the rope’s end
like a hooked fish upon an angle. I could not refrain, at this
ridiculous image, from a chuckle of laughter. And the next moment
I knew, by the jerking of the rope, that my friend had crawled out of
the tunnel and was fairly launched on his descent. It appears
it was the sailor who had insisted on succeeding me: as soon as my continued
silence had assured him the rope was long enough, Gautier, for that
was his name, had forgot his former arguments, and shown himself so
extremely forward, that Laclas had given way. It was like the
fellow, who had no harm in him beyond an instinctive selfishness.
But he was like to have paid pretty dearly for the privilege.
Do as I would, I could not keep the rope as I could have wished it;
and he ended at last by falling on me from a height of several yards,
so that we both rolled together on the ground. As soon as he could
breathe he cursed me beyond belief, wept over his finger, which he had
broken, and cursed me again. I bade him be still and think shame
of himself to be so great a cry-baby. Did he not hear the round
going by above? I asked; and who could tell but what the noise of his
fall was already remarked, and the sentinels at the very moment leaning
upon the battlements to listen?
The round, however, went by, and nothing was discovered; the third man
came to the ground quite easily; the fourth was, of course, child’s
play; and before there were ten of us collected, it seemed to me that,
without the least injustice to my comrades, I might proceed to take
care of myself.
I knew their plan: they had a map and an almanack, and designed for
Grangemouth, where they were to steal a ship. Suppose them to
do so, I had no idea they were qualified to manage it after it was stolen.
Their whole escape, indeed, was the most haphazard thing imaginable;
only the impatience of captives and the ignorance of private soldiers
would have entertained so misbegotten a device; and though I played
the good comrade and worked with them upon the tunnel, but for the lawyer’s
message I should have let them go without me. Well, now they were
beyond my help, as they had always been beyond my counselling; and,
without word said or leave taken, I stole out of the little crowd.
It is true I would rather have waited to shake hands with Laclas, but
in the last man who had descended I thought I recognised Clausel, and
since the scene in the shed my distrust of Clausel was perfect.
I believed the man to be capable of any infamy, and events have since
shown that I was right.
CHAPTER VII - SWANSTON COTTAGE
I had two views. The first was, naturally, to get clear of Edinburgh
Castle and the town, to say nothing of my fellow-prisoners; the second
to work to the southward so long as it was night, and be near Swanston
Cottage by morning. What I should do there and then, I had no
guess, and did not greatly care, being a devotee of a couple of divinities
called Chance and Circumstance. Prepare, if possible; where it
is impossible, work straight forward, and keep your eyes open and your
tongue oiled. Wit and a good exterior - there is all life in a
nutshell.
I had at first a rather chequered journey: got involved in gardens,
butted into houses, and had even once the misfortune to awake a sleeping
family, the father of which, as I suppose, menaced me from the window
with a blunderbuss. Altogether, though I had been some time gone
from my companions, I was still at no great distance, when a miserable
accident put a period to the escape. Of a sudden the night was
divided by a scream. This was followed by the sound of something
falling, and that again by the report of a musket from the Castle battlements.
It was strange to hear the alarm spread through the city. In the
fortress drums were beat and a bell rung backward. On all hands
the watchmen sprang their rattles. Even in that limbo or no-man’s-land
where I was wandering, lights were made in the houses; sashes were flung
up; I could hear neighbouring families converse from window to window,
and at length I was challenged myself.
‘Wha’s that?’ cried a big voice.
I could see it proceeded from a big man in a big nightcap, leaning from
a one-pair window; and as I was not yet abreast of his house, I judged
it was more wise to answer. This was not the first time I had
had to stake my fortunes on the goodness of my accent in a foreign tongue;
and I have always found the moment inspiriting, as a gambler should.
Pulling around me a sort of great-coat I had made of my blanket, to
cover my sulphur-coloured livery, - ‘A friend!’ said I.
‘What like’s all this collieshangie?’ said he.
I had never heard of a collieshangie in my days, but with the racket
all about us in the city, I could have no doubt as to the man’s
meaning.
‘I do not know, sir, really,’ said I; ‘but I suppose
some of the prisoners will have escaped.’
‘Bedamned!’ says he.
‘Oh, sir, they will be soon taken,’ I replied: ‘it
has been found in time. Good morning, sir!’
‘Ye walk late, sir?’ he added.
‘Oh, surely not,’ said I, with a laugh. ‘Earlyish,
if you like!’ which brought me finally beyond him, highly pleased
with my success.
I was now come forth on a good thoroughfare, which led (as well as I
could judge) in my direction. It brought me almost immediately
through a piece of street, whence I could hear close by the springing
of a watchman’s rattle, and where I suppose a sixth part of the
windows would be open, and the people, in all sorts of night gear, talking
with a kind of tragic gusto from one to another. Here, again,
I must run the gauntlet of a half-dozen questions, the rattle all the
while sounding nearer; but as I was not walking inordinately quick,
as I spoke like a gentleman, and the lamps were too dim to show my dress,
I carried it off once more. One person, indeed, inquired where
I was off to at that hour.
I replied vaguely and cheerfully, and as I escaped at one end of this
dangerous pass I could see the watchman’s lantern entering by
the other. I was now safe on a dark country highway, out of sight
of lights and out of the fear of watchmen. And yet I had not gone
above a hundred yards before a fellow made an ugly rush at me from the
roadside. I avoided him with a leap, and stood on guard, cursing
my empty hands, wondering whether I had to do with an officer or a mere
footpad, and scarce knowing which to wish. My assailant stood
a little; in the thick darkness I could see him bob and sidle as though
he were feinting at me for an advantageous onfall. Then he spoke.
‘My goo’ frien’,’ says he, and at the first
word I pricked my ears, ‘my goo’ frien’, will you
oblishe me with lil neshary infamation? Whish roa’ t’
Cramond?’
I laughed out clear and loud, stepped up to the convivialist, took him
by the shoulders and faced him about. ‘My good friend,’
said I, ‘I believe I know what is best for you much better than
yourself, and may God forgive you the fright you have given me!
There, get you gone to Edinburgh!’ And I gave a shove, which
he obeyed with the passive agility of a ball, and disappeared incontinently
in the darkness down the road by which I had myself come.
Once clear of this foolish fellow, I went on again up a gradual hill,
descended on the other side through the houses of a country village,
and came at last to the bottom of the main ascent leading to the Pentlands
and my destination. I was some way up when the fog began to lighten;
a little farther, and I stepped by degrees into a clear starry night,
and saw in front of me, and quite distinct, the summits of the Pentlands,
and behind, the valley of the Forth and the city of my late captivity
buried under a lake of vapour. I had but one encounter - that
of a farm-cart, which I heard, from a great way ahead of me, creaking
nearer in the night, and which passed me about the point of dawn like
a thing seen in a dream, with two silent figures in the inside nodding
to the horse’s steps. I presume they were asleep; by the
shawl about her head and shoulders, one of them should be a woman.
Soon, by concurrent steps, the day began to break and the fog to subside
and roll away. The east grew luminous and was barred with chilly
colours, and the Castle on its rock, and the spires and chimneys of
the upper town, took gradual shape, and arose, like islands, out of
the receding cloud. All about me was still and sylvan; the road
mounting and winding, with nowhere a sign of any passenger, the birds
chirping, I suppose for warmth, the boughs of the trees knocking together,
and the red leaves falling in the wind.
It was broad day, but still bitter cold and the sun not up, when I came
in view of my destination. A single gable and chimney of the cottage
peeped over the shoulder of the hill; not far off, and a trifle higher
on the mountain, a tall old white-washed farmhouse stood among the trees,
beside a falling brook; beyond were rough hills of pasture. I
bethought me that shepherd folk were early risers, and if I were once
seen skulking in that neighbourhood it might prove the ruin of my prospects;
took advantage of a line of hedge, and worked myself up in its shadow
till I was come under the garden wall of my friends’ house.
The cottage was a little quaint place of many rough-cast gables and
grey roofs. It had something the air of a rambling infinitesimal
cathedral, the body of it rising in the midst two storeys high, with
a steep-pitched roof, and sending out upon all hands (as it were chapter-houses,
chapels, and transepts) one-storeyed and dwarfish projections.
To add to this appearance, it was grotesquely decorated with crockets
and gargoyles, ravished from some medieval church. The place seemed
hidden away, being not only concealed in the trees of the garden, but,
on the side on which I approached it, buried as high as the eaves by
the rising of the ground. About the walls of the garden there
went a line of well-grown elms and beeches, the first entirely bare,
the last still pretty well covered with red leaves, and the centre was
occupied with a thicket of laurel and holly, in which I could see arches
cut and paths winding.
I was now within hail of my friends, and not much the better.
The house appeared asleep; yet if I attempted to wake any one, I had
no guarantee it might not prove either the aunt with the gold eyeglasses
(whom I could only remember with trembling), or some ass of a servant-maid
who should burst out screaming at sight of me. Higher up I could
hear and see a shepherd shouting to his dogs and striding on the rough
sides of the mountain, and it was clear I must get to cover without
loss of time. No doubt the holly thickets would have proved a
very suitable retreat, but there was mounted on the wall a sort of signboard
not uncommon in the country of Great Britain, and very damping to the
adventurous: SPRING GUNS AND MAN-TRAPS was the legend that it bore.
I have learned since that these advertisements, three times out of four,
were in the nature of Quaker guns on a disarmed battery, but I had not
learned it then, and even so, the odds would not have been good enough.
For a choice, I would a hundred times sooner be returned to Edinburgh
Castle and my corner in the bastion, than to leave my foot in a steel
trap or have to digest the contents of an automatic blunderbuss.
There was but one chance left - that Ronald or Flora might be the first
to come abroad; and in order to profit by this chance if it occurred,
I got me on the cope of the wall in a place where it was screened by
the thick branches of a beech, and sat there waiting.
As the day wore on, the sun came very pleasantly out. I had been
awake all night, I had undergone the most violent agitations of mind
and body, and it is not so much to be wondered at, as it was exceedingly
unwise and foolhardy, that I should have dropped into a doze.
From this I awakened to the characteristic sound of digging, looked
down, and saw immediately below me the back view of a gardener in a
stable waistcoat. Now he would appear steadily immersed in his
business; anon, to my more immediate terror, he would straighten his
back, stretch his arms, gaze about the otherwise deserted garden, and
relish a deep pinch of snuff. It was my first thought to drop
from the wall upon the other side. A glance sufficed to show me
that even the way by which I had come was now cut off, and the field
behind me already occupied by a couple of shepherds’ assistants
and a score or two of sheep. I have named the talismans on which
I habitually depend, but here was a conjuncture in which both were wholly
useless. The copestone of a wall arrayed with broken bottles is
no favourable rostrum; and I might be as eloquent as Pitt, and as fascinating
as Richelieu, and neither the gardener nor the shepherd lads would care
a halfpenny. In short, there was no escape possible from my absurd
position: there I must continue to sit until one or other of my neighbours
should raise his eyes and give the signal for my capture.
The part of the wall on which (for my sins) I was posted could be scarce
less than twelve feet high on the inside; the leaves of the beech which
made a fashion of sheltering me were already partly fallen; and I was
thus not only perilously exposed myself, but enabled to command some
part of the garden walks and (under an evergreen arch) the front lawn
and windows of the cottage. For long nothing stirred except my
friend with the spade; then I heard the opening of a sash; and presently
after saw Miss Flora appear in a morning wrapper and come strolling
hitherward between the borders, pausing and visiting her flowers - herself
as fair. There was a friend; here, immediately beneath
me, an unknown quantity - the gardener: how to communicate with the
one and not attract the notice of the other? To make a noise was
out of the question; I dared scarce to breathe. I held myself
ready to make a gesture as soon as she should look, and she looked in
every possible direction but the one. She was interested in the
vilest tuft of chickweed, she gazed at the summit of the mountain, she
came even immediately below me and conversed on the most fastidious
topics with the gardener; but to the top of that wall she would not
dedicate a glance! At last she began to retrace her steps in the
direction of the cottage; whereupon, becoming quite desperate, I broke
off a piece of plaster, took a happy aim, and hit her with it in the
nape of the neck. She clapped her hand to the place, turned about,
looked on all sides for an explanation, and spying me (as indeed I was
parting the branches to make it the more easy), half uttered and half
swallowed down again a cry of surprise.
The infernal gardener was erect upon the instant. ‘What’s
your wull, miss?’ said he.
Her readiness amazed me. She had already turned and was gazing
in the opposite direction. ‘There’s a child among
the artichokes,’ she said.
‘The Plagues of Egyp’! I’ll see to them!’
cried the gardener truculently, and with a hurried waddle disappeared
among the evergreens.
That moment she turned, she came running towards me, her arms stretched
out, her face incarnadined for the one moment with heavenly blushes,
the next pale as death. ‘Monsieur de. Saint-Yves!’
she said.
‘My dear young lady,’ I said, ‘this is the damnedest
liberty - I know it! But what else was I to do?’
‘You have escaped?’ said she.
‘If you call this escape,’ I replied.
‘But you cannot possibly stop there!’ she cried.
‘I know it,’ said I. ‘And where am I to go?’
She struck her hands together. ‘I have it!’ she exclaimed.
‘Come down by the beech trunk - you must leave no footprint in
the border - quickly, before Robie can get back! I am the hen-wife
here: I keep the key; you must go into the hen-house - for the moment.’
I was by her side at once. Both cast a hasty glance at the blank
windows of the cottage and so much as was visible of the garden alleys;
it seemed there was none to observe us. She caught me by the sleeve
and ran. It was no time for compliments; hurry breathed upon our
necks; and I ran along with her to the next corner of the garden, where
a wired court and a board hovel standing in a grove of trees advertised
my place of refuge. She thrust me in without a word; the bulk
of the fowls were at the same time emitted; and I found myself the next
moment locked in alone with half a dozen sitting hens. In the
twilight of the place all fixed their eyes on me severely, and seemed
to upbraid me with some crying impropriety. Doubtless the hen
has always a puritanic appearance, although (in its own behaviour) I
could never observe it to be more particular than its neighbours.
But conceive a British hen!
CHAPTER VIII - THE HEN-HOUSE
I was half an hour at least in the society of these distressing bipeds,
and alone with my own reflections and necessities. I was in great
pain of my flayed hands, and had nothing to treat them with; I was hungry
and thirsty, and had nothing to eat or to drink; I was thoroughly tired,
and there was no place for me to sit. To be sure there was the
floor, but nothing could be imagined less inviting.
At the sound of approaching footsteps, my good-humour was restored.
The key rattled in the lock, and Master Ronald entered, closed the door
behind him, and leaned his back to it.
‘I say, you know!’ he said, and shook a sullen young head.
‘I know it’s a liberty,’ said I.
‘It’s infernally awkward: my position is infernally embarrassing,’
said he.
‘Well,’ said I, ‘and what do you think of mine?’
This seemed to pose him entirely, and he remained gazing upon me with
a convincing air of youth and innocence. I could have laughed,
but I was not so inhumane.
‘I am in your hands,’ said I, with a little gesture.
‘You must do with me what you think right.’
‘Ah, yes!’ he cried: ‘if I knew!’
‘You see,’ said I, ‘it would be different if you had
received your commission. Properly speaking, you are not yet a
combatant; I have ceased to be one; and I think it arguable that we
are just in the position of one ordinary gentleman to another, where
friendship usually comes before the law. Observe, I only say arguable.
For God’s sake, don’t think I wish to dictate an opinion.
These are the sort of nasty little businesses, inseparable from war,
which every gentleman must decide for himself. If I were in your
place - ’
‘Ay, what would you do, then?’ says he.
‘Upon my word, I do not know,’ said I. ‘Hesitate,
as you are doing, I believe.’
‘I will tell you,’ he said. ‘I have a kinsman,
and it is what he would think, that I am thinking. It is
General Graham of Lynedoch - Sir Thomas Graham. I scarcely know
him, but I believe I admire him more than I do God.’
‘I admire him a good deal myself,’ said I, ‘and have
good reason to. I have fought with him, been beaten, and run away.
Veni, victus sum, evasi.’
‘What!’ he cried. ‘You were at Barossa?’
‘There and back, which many could not say,’ said I.
‘It was a pretty affair and a hot one, and the Spaniards behaved
abominably, as they usually did in a pitched field; the Marshal Duke
of Belluno made a fool of himself, and not for the first time; and your
friend Sir Thomas had the best of it, so far as there was any best.
He is a brave and ready officer.’
‘Now, then, you will understand!’ said the boy. ‘I
wish to please Sir Thomas: what would he do?’
‘Well, I can tell you a story,’ said I, ‘a true one
too, and about this very combat of Chiclana, or Barossa as you call
it. I was in the Eighth of the Line; we lost the eagle of the
First Battalion, more betoken, but it cost you dear. Well, we
had repulsed more charges than I care to count, when your 87th Regiment
came on at a foot’s pace, very slow but very steady; in front
of them a mounted officer, his hat in his hand, white-haired, and talking
very quietly to the battalions. Our Major, Vigo-Roussillon, set
spurs to his horse and galloped out to sabre him, but seeing him an
old man, very handsome, and as composed as if he were in a coffee-house,
lost heart and galloped back again. Only, you see, they had been
very close together for the moment, and looked each other in the eyes.
Soon after the Major was wounded, taken prisoner, and carried into Cadiz.
One fine day they announced to him the visit of the General, Sir Thomas
Graham. “Well, sir,” said the General, taking him
by the hand, “I think we were face to face upon the field.”
It was the white-haired officer!’
‘Ah!’ cried the boy, - his eyes were burning.
‘Well, and here is the point,’ I continued. ‘Sir
Thomas fed the Major from his own table from that day, and served him
with six covers.’
‘Yes, it is a beautiful - a beautiful story,’ said Ronald.
‘And yet somehow it is not the same - is it?’
‘I admit it freely,’ said I.
The boy stood awhile brooding. ‘Well, I take my risk of
it,’ he cried. ‘I believe it’s treason to my
sovereign - I believe there is an infamous punishment for such a crime
- and yet I’m hanged if I can give you up’
I was as much moved as he. ‘I could almost beg you to do
otherwise,’ I said. ‘I was a brute to come to you,
a brute and a coward. You are a noble enemy; you will make a noble
soldier.’ And with rather a happy idea of a compliment for
this warlike youth, I stood up straight and gave him the salute.
He was for a moment confused; his face flushed. ‘Well, well,
I must be getting you something to eat, but it will not be for six,’
he added, with a smile: ‘only what we can get smuggled out.
There is my aunt in the road, you see,’ and he locked me in again
with the indignant hens.
I always smile when I recall that young fellow; and yet, if the reader
were to smile also, I should feel ashamed. If my son shall be
only like him when he comes to that age, it will be a brave day for
me and not a bad one for his country.
At the same time I cannot pretend that I was sorry when his sister succeeded
in his place. She brought me a few crusts of bread and a jug of
milk, which she had handsomely laced with whisky after the Scottish
manner.
‘I am so sorry,’ she said: ‘I dared not bring on anything
more. We are so small a family, and my aunt keeps such an eye
upon the servants. I have put some whisky in the milk - it is
more wholesome so - and with eggs you will be able to make something
of a meal. How many eggs will you be wanting to that milk? for
I must be taking the others to my aunt - that is my excuse for being
here. I should think three or four. Do you know how to beat
them? or shall I do it?’
Willing to detain her a while longer in the hen-house, I displayed my
bleeding palms; at which she cried aloud.
‘My dear Miss Flora, you cannot make an omelette without breaking
eggs,’ said I; ‘and it is no bagatelle to escape from Edinburgh
Castle. One of us, I think, was even killed.’
‘And you are as white as a rag, too,’ she exclaimed, ‘and
can hardly stand! Here is my shawl, sit down upon it here in the
corner, and I will beat your eggs. See, I have brought a fork
too; I should have been a good person to take care of Jacobites or Covenanters
in old days! You shall have more to eat this evening; Ronald is
to bring it you from town. We have money enough, although no food
that we can call our own. Ah, if Ronald and I kept house, you
should not be lying in this shed! He admires you so much.’
‘My dear friend,’ said I, ‘for God’s sake do
not embarrass me with more alms. I loved to receive them from
that hand, so long as they were needed; but they are so no more, and
whatever else I may lack - and I lack everything - it is not money.’
I pulled out my sheaf of notes and detached the top one: it was written
for ten pounds, and signed by that very famous individual, Abraham Newlands.
‘Oblige me, as you would like me to oblige your brother if the
parts were reversed, and take this note for the expenses. I shall
need not only food, but clothes.’
‘Lay it on the ground,’ said she. ‘I must not
stop my beating.’
‘You are not offended?’ I exclaimed.
She answered me by a look that was a reward in itself, and seemed to
imply the most heavenly offers for the future. There was in it
a shadow of reproach, and such warmth of communicative cordiality as
left me speechless. I watched her instead till her hens’
milk was ready.
‘Now,’ said she, ‘taste that.’
I did so, and swore it was nectar. She collected her eggs and
crouched in front of me to watch me eat. There was about this
tall young lady at the moment an air of motherliness delicious to behold.
I am like the English general, and to this day I still wonder at my
moderation.
‘What sort of clothes will you be wanting?’ said she.
‘The clothes of a gentleman,’ said I. ‘Right
or wrong, I think it is the part I am best qualified to play.
Mr. St. Ives (for that’s to be my name upon the journey) I conceive
as rather a theatrical figure, and his make-up should be to match.’
‘And yet there is a difficulty,’ said she. ‘If
you got coarse clothes the fit would hardly matter. But the clothes
of a fine gentleman - O, it is absolutely necessary that these should
fit! And above all, with your’ - she paused a moment - ‘to
our ideas somewhat noticeable manners.’
‘Alas for my poor manners!’ said I. ‘But my
dear friend Flora, these little noticeabilities are just what mankind
has to suffer under. Yourself, you see, you’re very noticeable
even when you come in a crowd to visit poor prisoners in the Castle.’
I was afraid I should frighten my good angel visitant away, and without
the smallest breath of pause went on to add a few directions as to stuffs
and colours.
She opened big eyes upon me. ‘O, Mr. St. Ives!’ she
cried - ‘if that is to be your name - I do not say they would
not be becoming; but for a journey, do you think they would be wise?
I am afraid’ - she gave a pretty break of laughter - ‘I
am afraid they would be daft-like!’
‘Well, and am I not daft?’ I asked her.
‘I do begin to think you are,’ said she.
‘There it is, then!’ said I. ‘I have been long
enough a figure of fun. Can you not feel with me that perhaps
the bitterest thing in this captivity has been the clothes? Make
me a captive - bind me with chains if you like - but let me be still
myself. You do not know what it is to be a walking travesty -
among foes,’ I added bitterly.
‘O, but you are too unjust!’ she cried. ‘You
speak as though any one ever dreamed of laughing at you. But no
one did. We were all pained to the heart. Even my aunt -
though sometimes I do think she was not quite in good taste - you should
have seen her and heard her at home! She took so much interest.
Every patch in your clothes made us sorry; it should have been a sister’s
work.’
‘That is what I never had - a sister,’ said I. ‘But
since you say that I did not make you laugh - ’
‘O, Mr. St. Ives! never!’ she exclaimed. ‘Not
for one moment. It was all too sad. To see a gentleman
- ’
‘In the clothes of a harlequin, and begging?’ I suggested.
‘To see a gentleman in distress, and nobly supporting it,’
she said.
‘And do you not understand, my fair foe,’ said I, ‘that
even if all were as you say - even if you had thought my travesty were
becoming - I should be only the more anxious, for my sake, for my country’s
sake, and for the sake of your kindness, that you should see him whom
you have helped as God meant him to be seen? that you should have something
to remember him by at least more characteristic than a misfitting sulphur-yellow
suit, and half a week’s beard?’
‘You think a great deal too much of clothes,’ she said.
‘I am not that kind of girl.’
‘And I am afraid I am that kind of man,’ said I. ‘But
do not think of me too harshly for that. I talked just now of
something to remember by. I have many of them myself, of these
beautiful reminders, of these keepsakes, that I cannot be parted from
until I lose memory and life. Many of them are great things, many
of them are high virtues - charity, mercy, faith. But some of
them are trivial enough. Miss Flora, do you remember the day that
I first saw you, the day of the strong east wind? Miss Flora,
shall I tell you what you wore?’
We had both risen to our feet, and she had her hand already on the door
to go. Perhaps this attitude emboldened me to profit by the last
seconds of our interview; and it certainly rendered her escape the more
easy.
‘O, you are too romantic!’ she said, laughing; and with
that my sun was blown out, my enchantress had fled away, and I was again
left alone in the twilight with the lady hens.
CHAPTER IX - THREE IS COMPANY, AND FOUR NONE
The rest of the day I slept in the corner of the hen-house upon Flora’s
shawl. Nor did I awake until a light shone suddenly in my eyes,
and starting up with a gasp (for, indeed, at the moment I dreamed I
was still swinging from the Castle battlements) I found Ronald bending
over me with a lantern. It appeared it was past midnight, that
I had slept about sixteen hours, and that Flora had returned her poultry
to the shed and I had heard her not. I could not but wonder if
she had stooped to look at me as I slept. The puritan hens now
slept irremediably; and being cheered with the promise of supper I wished
them an ironical good-night, and was lighted across the garden and noiselessly
admitted to a bedroom on the ground floor of the cottage. There
I found soap, water, razors - offered me diffidently by my beardless
host - and an outfit of new clothes. To be shaved again without
depending on the barber of the gaol was a source of a delicious, if
a childish joy. My hair was sadly too long, but I was none so
unwise as to make an attempt on it myself. And, indeed, I thought
it did not wholly misbecome me as it was, being by nature curly.
The clothes were about as good as I expected. The waistcoat was
of toilenet, a pretty piece, the trousers of fine kerseymere, and the
coat sat extraordinarily well. Altogether, when I beheld this
changeling in the glass, I kissed my hand to him.
‘My dear fellow,’ said I, ‘have you no scent?’
‘Good God, no!’ cried Ronald. ‘What do you want
with scent?’
‘Capital thing on a campaign,’ said I. ‘But
I can do without.’
I was now led, with the same precautions against noise, into the little
bow-windowed dining-room of the cottage. The shutters were up,
the lamp guiltily turned low; the beautiful Flora greeted me in a whisper;
and when I was set down to table, the pair proceeded to help me with
precautions that might have seemed excessive in the Ear of Dionysius.
‘She sleeps up there,’ observed the boy, pointing to the
ceiling; and the knowledge that I was so imminently near to the resting-place
of that gold eyeglass touched even myself with some uneasiness.
Our excellent youth had imported from the city a meat pie, and I was
glad to find it flanked with a decanter of really admirable wine of
Oporto. While I ate, Ronald entertained me with the news of the
city, which had naturally rung all day with our escape: troops and mounted
messengers had followed each other forth at all hours and in all directions;
but according to the last intelligence no recapture had been made.
Opinion in town was very favourable to us: our courage was applauded,
and many professed regret that our ultimate chance of escape should
be so small. The man who had fallen was one Sombref, a peasant;
he was one who slept in a different part of the Castle; and I was thus
assured that the whole of my former companions had attained their liberty,
and Shed A was untenanted.
From this we wandered insensibly into other topics. It is impossible
to exaggerate the pleasure I took to be thus sitting at the same table
with Flora, in the clothes of a gentleman, at liberty and in the full
possession of my spirits and resources; of all of which I had need,
because it was necessary that I should support at the same time two
opposite characters, and at once play the cavalier and lively soldier
for the eyes of Ronald, and to the ears of Flora maintain the same profound
and sentimental note that I had already sounded. Certainly there
are days when all goes well with a man; when his wit, his digestion,
his mistress are in a conspiracy to spoil him, and even the weather
smiles upon his wishes. I will only say of myself upon that evening
that I surpassed my expectations, and was privileged to delight my hosts.
Little by little they forgot their terrors and I my caution; until at
last we were brought back to earth by a catastrophe that might very
easily have been foreseen, but was not the less astonishing to us when
it occurred.
I had filled all the glasses. ‘I have a toast to propose,’
I whispered, ‘or rather three, but all so inextricably interwoven
that they will not bear dividing. I wish first to drink to the
health of a brave and therefore a generous enemy. He found me
disarmed, a fugitive and helpless. Like the lion, he disdained
so poor a triumph; and when he might have vindicated an easy valour,
he preferred to make a friend. I wish that we should next drink
to a fairer and a more tender foe. She found me in prison; she
cheered me with a priceless sympathy; what she has done since, I know
she has done in mercy, and I only pray - I dare scarce hope - her mercy
may prove to have been merciful. And I wish to conjoin with these,
for the first, and perhaps the last time, the health - and I fear I
may already say the memory - of one who has fought, not always without
success, against the soldiers of your nation; but who came here, vanquished
already, only to be vanquished again by the loyal hand of the one, by
the unforgettable eyes of the other.’
It is to be feared I may have lent at times a certain resonancy to my
voice; it is to be feared that Ronald, who was none the better for his
own hospitality, may have set down his glass with something of a clang.
Whatever may have been the cause, at least, I had scarce finished my
compliment before we were aware of a thump upon the ceiling overhead.
It was to be thought some very solid body had descended to the floor
from the level (possibly) of a bed. I have never seen consternation
painted in more lively colours than on the faces of my hosts.
It was proposed to smuggle me forth into the garden, or to conceal my
form under a horsehair sofa which stood against the wall. For
the first expedient, as was now plain by the approaching footsteps,
there was no longer time; from the second I recoiled with indignation.
‘My dear creatures,’ said I, ‘let us die, but do not
let us be ridiculous.’
The words were still upon my lips when the door opened and my friend
of the gold eyeglass appeared, a memorable figure, on the threshold.
In one hand she bore a bedroom candlestick; in the other, with the steadiness
of a dragoon, a horse-pistol. She was wound about in shawls which
did not wholly conceal the candid fabric of her nightdress, and surmounted
by a nightcap of portentous architecture. Thus accoutred, she
made her entrance; laid down the candle and pistol, as no longer called
for; looked about the room with a silence more eloquent than oaths;
and then, in a thrilling voice - ‘To whom have I the pleasure?’
she said, addressing me with a ghost of a bow.
‘Madam, I am charmed, I am sure,’ said I. ‘The
story is a little long; and our meeting, however welcome, was for the
moment entirely unexpected by myself. I am sure - ’ but
here I found I was quite sure of nothing, and tried again. ‘I
have the honour,’ I began, and found I had the honour to be only
exceedingly confused. With that, I threw myself outright upon
her mercy. ‘Madam, I must be more frank with you,’
I resumed. ‘You have already proved your charity and compassion
for the French prisoners, I am one of these; and if my appearance be
not too much changed, you may even yet recognise in me that Oddity
who had the good fortune more than once to make you smile.’
Still gazing upon me through her glass, she uttered an uncompromising
grunt; and then, turning to her niece - ‘Flora,’ said she,
‘how comes he here?’
The culprits poured out for a while an antiphony of explanations, which
died out at last in a miserable silence.
‘I think at least you might have told your aunt,’ she snorted.
‘Madam,’ I interposed, ‘they were about to do so.
It is my fault if it be not done already. But I made it my prayer
that your slumbers might be respected, and this necessary formula of
my presentation should be delayed until to-morrow in the morning.’
The old lady regarded me with undissembled incredulity, to which I was
able to find no better repartee than a profound and I trust graceful
reverence.
‘French prisoners are very well in their place,’ she said,
‘but I cannot see that their place is in my private dining-room.’
‘Madam,’ said I, ‘I hope it may be said without offence,
but (except the Castle of Edinburgh) I cannot think upon the spot from
which I would so readily be absent.’
At this, to my relief, I thought I could perceive a vestige of a smile
to steal upon that iron countenance and to be bitten immediately in.
‘And if it is a fair question, what do they call ye?’ she
asked.
‘At your service, the Vicomte Anne de St.-Yves,’ said I.
‘Mosha the Viscount,’ said she, ‘I am afraid you do
us plain people a great deal too much honour.’
‘My dear lady,’ said I, ‘let us be serious for a moment.
What was I to do? Where was I to go? And how can you be
angry with these benevolent children who took pity on one so unfortunate
as myself? Your humble servant is no such terrific adventurer
that you should come out against him with horse-pistol and’ -
smiling - ‘bedroom candlesticks. It is but a young gentleman
in extreme distress, hunted upon every side, and asking no more than
to escape from his pursuers. I know your character, I read it
in your face’ - the heart trembled in my body as I said these
daring words. ‘There are unhappy English prisoners in France
at this day, perhaps at this hour. Perhaps at this hour they kneel
as I do; they take the hand of her who might conceal and assist them;
they press it to their lips as I do - ’
‘Here, here!’ cried the old lady, breaking from my solicitations.
‘Behave yourself before folk! Saw ever anyone the match
of that? And on earth, my dears, what are we to do with him?’
‘Pack him off, my dear lady,’ said I: ‘pack off the
impudent fellow double-quick! And if it may be, and if your good
heart allows it, help him a little on the way he has to go.’
‘What’s this pie?’ she cried stridently. ‘Where
is this pie from, Flora?’
No answer was vouchsafed by my unfortunate and (I may say) extinct accomplices.
‘Is that my port?’ she pursued. ‘Hough!
Will somebody give me a glass of my port wine?’
I made haste to serve her.
She looked at me over the rim with an extraordinary expression.
‘I hope ye liked it?’ said she.
‘It is even a magnificent wine,’ said I.
‘Aweel, it was my father laid it down,’ said she.
‘There were few knew more about port wine than my father, God
rest him!’ She settled herself in a chair with an alarming
air of resolution. ‘And so there is some particular direction
that you wish to go in?’ said she.
‘O,’ said I, following her example, ‘I am by no means
such a vagrant as you suppose. I have good friends, if I could
get to them, for which all I want is to be once clear of Scotland; and
I have money for the road.’ And I produced my bundle.
‘English bank-notes?’ she said. ‘That’s
not very handy for Scotland. It’s been some fool of an Englishman
that’s given you these, I’m thinking. How much is
it?’
‘I declare to heaven I never thought to count!’ I exclaimed.
‘But that is soon remedied.’
And I counted out ten notes of ten pound each, all in the name of Abraham
Newlands, and five bills of country bankers for as many guineas.
‘One hundred and twenty six pound five,’ cried the old lady.
‘And you carry such a sum about you, and have not so much as counted
it! If you are not a thief, you must allow you are very thief-like.’
‘And yet, madam, the money is legitimately mine,’ said I.
She took one of the bills and held it up. ‘Is there any
probability, now, that this could be traced?’ she asked.
‘None, I should suppose; and if it were, it would be no matter,’
said I. ‘With your usual penetration, you guessed right.
An Englishman brought it me. It reached me, through the hands
of his English solicitor, from my great-uncle, the Comte de Kéroual
de Saint-Yves, I believe the richest émigré in
London.’
‘I can do no more than take your word for it,’ said she.
‘And I trust, madam, not less,’ said I.
‘Well,’ said she, ‘at this rate the matter may be
feasible. I will cash one of these five-guinea bills, less the
exchange, and give you silver and Scots notes to bear you as far as
the border. Beyond that, Mosha the Viscount, you will have to
depend upon yourself.’
I could not but express a civil hesitation as to whether the amount
would suffice, in my case, for so long a journey.
‘Ay,’ said she, ‘but you havenae heard me out.
For if you are not too fine a gentleman to travel with a pair of drovers,
I believe I have found the very thing, and the Lord forgive me for a
treasonable old wife! There are a couple stopping up by with the
shepherd-man at the farm; to-morrow they will take the road for England,
probably by skriegh of day - and in my opinion you had best be travelling
with the stots,’ said she.
‘For Heaven’s sake do not suppose me to be so effeminate
a character!’ I cried. ‘An old soldier of Napoleon
is certainly beyond suspicion. But, dear lady, to what end? and
how is the society of these excellent gentlemen supposed to help me?’
‘My dear sir,’ said she, ‘you do not at all understand
your own predicament, and must just leave your matters in the hands
of those who do. I dare say you have never even heard tell of
the drove-roads or the drovers; and I am certainly not going to sit
up all night to explain it to you. Suffice it, that it is me who
is arranging this affair - the more shame to me! - and that is the way
ye have to go. Ronald,’ she continued, ‘away up-by
to the shepherds; rowst them out of their beds, and make it perfectly
distinct that Sim is not to leave till he has seen me.’
Ronald was nothing loath to escape from his aunt’s neighbourhood,
and left the room and the cottage with a silent expedition that was
more like flight than mere obedience. Meanwhile the old lady turned
to her niece.
‘And I would like to know what we are to do with him the night!’
she cried.
‘Ronald and I meant to put him in the hen-house,’ said the
encrimsoned Flora.
‘And I can tell you he is to go to no such a place,’ replied
the aunt. ‘Hen-house, indeed! If a guest he is to
be, he shall sleep in no mortal hen-house. Your room is the most
fit, I think, if he will consent to occupy it on so great a suddenty.
And as for you, Flora, you shall sleep with me.’
I could not help admiring the prudence and tact of this old dowager,
and of course it was not for me to make objections. Ere I well
knew how, I was alone with a flat candlestick, which is not the most
sympathetic of companions, and stood studying the snuff in a frame of
mind between triumph and chagrin. All had gone well with my flight:
the masterful lady who had arrogated to herself the arrangement of the
details gave me every confidence; and I saw myself already arriving
at my uncle’s door. But, alas! it was another story with
my love affair. I had seen and spoken with her alone; I had ventured
boldly; I had been not ill received; I had seen her change colour, had
enjoyed the undissembled kindness of her eyes; and now, in a moment,
down comes upon the scene that apocalyptic figure with the nightcap
and the horse-pistol, and with the very wind of her coming behold me
separated from my love! Gratitude and admiration contended in
my breast with the extreme of natural rancour. My appearance in
her house at past midnight had an air (I could not disguise it from
myself) that was insolent and underhand, and could not but minister
to the worst suspicions. And the old lady had taken it well.
Her generosity was no more to be called in question than her courage,
and I was afraid that her intelligence would be found to match.
Certainly, Miss Flora had to support some shrewd looks, and certainly
she had been troubled. I could see but the one way before me:
to profit by an excellent bed, to try to sleep soon, to be stirring
early, and to hope for some renewed occasion in the morning. To
have said so much and yet to say no more, to go out into the world upon
so half-hearted a parting, was more than I could accept.
It is my belief that the benevolent fiend sat up all night to baulk
me. She was at my bedside with a candle long ere day, roused me,
laid out for me a damnable misfit of clothes, and bade me pack my own
(which were wholly unsuited to the journey) in a bundle. Sore
grudging, I arrayed myself in a suit of some country fabric, as delicate
as sackcloth and about as becoming as a shroud; and, on coming forth,
found the dragon had prepared for me a hearty breakfast. She took
the head of the table, poured out the tea, and entertained me as I ate
with a great deal of good sense and a conspicuous lack of charm.
How often did I not regret the change! - how often compare her, and
condemn her in the comparison, with her charming niece! But if
my entertainer was not beautiful, she had certainly been busy in my
interest. Already she was in communication with my destined fellow-travellers;
and the device on which she had struck appeared entirely suitable.
I was a young Englishman who had outrun the constable; warrants were
out against me in Scotland, and it had become needful I should pass
the border without loss of time, and privately.
‘I have given a very good account of you,’ said she, ‘which
I hope you may justify. I told them there was nothing against
you beyond the fact that you were put to the haw (if that is the right
word) for debt.’
‘I pray God you have the expression incorrectly, ma’am,’
said I. ‘I do not give myself out for a person easily alarmed;
but you must admit there is something barbarous and mediaeval in the
sound well qualified to startle a poor foreigner.’
‘It is the name of a process in Scots Law, and need alarm no honest
man,’ said she. ‘But you are a very idle-minded young
gentleman; you must still have your joke, I see: I only hope you will
have no cause to regret it.’
‘I pray you not to suppose, because I speak lightly, that I do
not feel deeply,’ said I. ‘Your kindness has quite
conquered me; I lay myself at your disposition, I beg you to believe,
with real tenderness; I pray you to consider me from henceforth as the
most devoted of your friends.’
‘Well, well,’ she said, ‘here comes your devoted friend
the drover. I’m thinking he will be eager for the road;
and I will not be easy myself till I see you well off the premises,
and the dishes washed, before my servant-woman wakes. Praise God,
we have gotten one that is a treasure at the sleeping!’
The morning was already beginning to be blue in the trees of the garden,
and to put to shame the candle by which I had breakfasted. The
lady rose from table, and I had no choice but to follow her example.
All the time I was beating my brains for any means by which I should
be able to get a word apart with Flora, or find the time to write her
a billet. The windows had been open while I breakfasted, I suppose
to ventilate the room from any traces of my passage there; and, Master
Ronald appearing on the front lawn, my ogre leaned forth to address
him.
‘Ronald,’ she said, ‘wasn’t that Sim that went
by the wall?’
I snatched my advantage. Right at her back there was pen, ink,
and paper laid out. I wrote: ‘I love you’; and before
I had time to write more, or so much as to blot what I had written,
I was again under the guns of the gold eyeglasses.
‘It’s time,’ she began; and then, as she observed
my occupation, ‘Umph!’ she broke off. ‘Ye have
something to write?’ she demanded.
‘Some notes, madam,’ said I, bowing with alacrity.
‘Notes,’ she said; ‘or a note?’
‘There is doubtless some finesse of the English language
that I do not comprehend,’ said I.
‘I’ll contrive, however, to make my meaning very plain to
ye, Mosha le Viscount,’ she continued. ‘I suppose
you desire to be considered a gentleman?’
‘Can you doubt it, madam?’ said I.
‘I doubt very much, at least, whether you go to the right way
about it,’ she said. ‘You have come here to me, I
cannot very well say how; I think you will admit you owe me some thanks,
if it was only for the breakfast I made ye. But what are you to
me? A waif young man, not so far to seek for looks and manners,
with some English notes in your pocket and a price upon your head.
I am a lady; I have been your hostess, with however little will; and
I desire that this random acquaintance of yours with my family will
cease and determine.’
I believe I must have coloured. ‘Madam,’ said I, ‘the
notes are of no importance; and your least pleasure ought certainly
to be my law. You have felt, and you have been pleased to express,
a doubt of me. I tear them up.’ Which you may be sure
I did thoroughly.
‘There’s a good lad!’ said the dragon, and immediately
led the way to the front lawn.
The brother and sister were both waiting us here, and, as well as I
could make out in the imperfect light, bore every appearance of having
passed through a rather cruel experience. Ronald seemed ashamed
to so much as catch my eye in the presence of his aunt, and was the
picture of embarrassment. As for Flora, she had scarce the time
to cast me one look before the dragon took her by the arm, and began
to march across the garden in the extreme first glimmer of the dawn
without exchanging speech. Ronald and I followed in equal silence.
There was a door in that same high wall on the top of which I had sat
perched no longer gone than yesterday morning. This the old lady
set open with a key; and on the other side we were aware of a rough-looking,
thick-set man, leaning with his arms (through which was passed a formidable
staff) on a dry-stone dyke. Him the old lady immediately addressed.
‘Sim,’ said she, ‘this is the young gentleman.’
Sim replied with an inarticulate grumble of sound, and a movement of
one arm and his head, which did duty for a salutation.
‘Now, Mr. St. Ives,’ said the old lady, ‘it’s
high time for you to be taking the road. But first of all let
me give the change of your five-guinea bill. Here are four pounds
of it in British Linen notes, and the balance in small silver, less
sixpence. Some charge a shilling, I believe, but I have given
you the benefit of the doubt. See and guide it with all the sense
that you possess.’
‘And here, Mr. St. Ives,’ said Flora, speaking for the first
time, ‘is a plaid which you will find quite necessary on so rough
a journey. I hope you will take it from the hands of a Scotch
friend,’ she added, and her voice trembled.
‘Genuine holly: I cut it myself,’ said Ronald, and gave
me as good a cudgel as a man could wish for in a row.
The formality of these gifts, and the waiting figure of the driver,
told me loudly that I must be gone. I dropped on one knee and
bade farewell to the aunt, kissing her hand. I did the like -
but with how different a passion! - to her niece; as for the boy, I
took him to my arms and embraced him with a cordiality that seemed to
strike him speechless. ‘Farewell!’ and ‘Farewell!’
I said. ‘I shall never forget my friends. Keep me
sometimes in memory. Farewell!’ With that I turned my back
and began to walk away; and had scarce done so, when I heard the door
in the high wall close behind me. Of course this was the aunt’s
doing; and of course, if I know anything of human character, she would
not let me go without some tart expressions. I declare, even if
I had heard them, I should not have minded in the least, for I was quite
persuaded that, whatever admirers I might be leaving behind me in Swanston
Cottage, the aunt was not the least sincere.
CHAPTER X - THE DROVERS
It took me a little effort to come abreast of my new companion; for
though he walked with an ugly roll and no great appearance of speed,
he could cover the around at a good rate when he wanted to. Each
looked at the other: I with natural curiosity, he with a great appearance
of distaste. I have heard since that his heart was entirely set
against me; he had seen me kneel to the ladies, and diagnosed me for
a ‘gesterin’ eediot.’
‘So, ye’re for England, are ye?’ said he.
I told him yes.
‘Weel, there’s waur places, I believe,’ was his reply;
and he relapsed into a silence which was not broken during a quarter
of an hour of steady walking.
This interval brought us to the foot of a bare green valley, which wound
upwards and backwards among the hills. A little stream came down
the midst and made a succession of clear pools; near by the lowest of
which I was aware of a drove of shaggy cattle, and a man who seemed
the very counterpart of Mr. Sim making a breakfast upon bread and cheese.
This second drover (whose name proved to be Candlish) rose on our approach.
‘Here’s a mannie that’s to gang through with us,’
said Sim. ‘It was the auld wife, Gilchrist, wanted it.’
‘Aweel, aweel,’ said the other; and presently, remembering
his manners, and looking on me with a solemn grin, ‘A fine day!’
says he.
I agreed with him, and asked him how he did.
‘Brawly,’ was the reply; and without further civilities,
the pair proceeded to get the cattle under way. This, as well
as almost all the herding, was the work of a pair of comely and intelligent
dogs, directed by Sim or Candlish in little more than monosyllables.
Presently we were ascending the side of the mountain by a rude green
track, whose presence I had not hitherto observed. A continual
sound of munching and the crying of a great quantity of moor birds accompanied
our progress, which the deliberate pace and perennial appetite of the
cattle rendered wearisomely slow. In the midst my two conductors
marched in a contented silence that I could not but admire. The
more I looked at them, the more I was impressed by their absurd resemblance
to each other. They were dressed in the same coarse homespun,
carried similar sticks, were equally begrimed about the nose with snuff,
and each wound in an identical plaid of what is called the shepherd’s
tartan. In a back view they might be described as indistinguishable;
and even from the front they were much alike. An incredible coincidence
of humours augmented the impression. Thrice and four times I attempted
to pave the way for some exchange of thought, sentiment, or - at the
least of it - human words. An Ay or an Nhm was the
sole return, and the topic died on the hill-side without echo.
I can never deny that I was chagrined; and when, after a little more
walking, Sim turned towards me and offered me a ram’s horn of
snuff, with the question ‘Do ye use it?’ I answered, with
some animation, ‘Faith, sir, I would use pepper to introduce a
little cordiality.’ But even this sally failed to reach,
or at least failed to soften, my companions.
At this rate we came to the summit of a ridge, and saw the track descend
in front of us abruptly into a desert vale, about a league in length,
and closed at the farther end by no less barren hilltops. Upon
this point of vantage Sim came to a halt, took off his hat, and mopped
his brow.
‘Weel,’ he said, ‘here we’re at the top o’
Howden.’
‘The top o’ Howden, sure eneuch,’ said Candlish.
‘Mr. St. Ivey, are ye dry?’ said the first.
‘Now, really,’ said I, ‘is not this Satan reproving
sin?’
‘What ails ye, man?’ said he. ‘I’m offerin’
ye a dram.’
‘Oh, if it be anything to drink,’ said I, ‘I am as
dry as my neighbours.’
Whereupon Sim produced from the corner of his plaid a black bottle,
and we all drank and pledged each other. I found these gentlemen
followed upon such occasions an invariable etiquette, which you may
be certain I made haste to imitate. Each wiped his mouth with
the back of his left hand, held up the bottle in his right, remarked
with emphasis, ‘Here’s to ye!’ and swallowed as much
of the spirit as his fancy prompted. This little ceremony, which
was the nearest thing to manners I could perceive in either of my companions,
was repeated at becoming intervals, generally after an ascent.
Occasionally we shared a mouthful of ewe-milk cheese and an inglorious
form of bread, which I understood (but am far from engaging my honour
on the point) to be called ‘shearer’s bannock.’
And that may be said to have concluded our whole active intercourse
for the first day.
I had the more occasion to remark the extraordinarily desolate nature
of that country, through which the drove road continued, hour after
hour and even day after day, to wind. A continual succession of
insignificant shaggy hills, divided by the course of ten thousand brooks,
through which we had to wade, or by the side of which we encamped at
night; infinite perspectives of heather, infinite quantities of moorfowl;
here and there, by a stream side, small and pretty clumps of willows
or the silver birch; here and there, the ruins of ancient and inconsiderable
fortresses - made the unchanging characters of the scene. Occasionally,
but only in the distance, we could perceive the smoke of a small town
or of an isolated farmhouse or cottage on the moors; more often, a flock
of sheep and its attendant shepherd, or a rude field of agriculture
perhaps not yet harvested. With these alleviations, we might almost
be said to pass through an unbroken desert - sure, one of the most impoverished
in Europe; and when I recalled to mind that we were yet but a few leagues
from the chief city (where the law courts sat every day with a press
of business, soldiers garrisoned the castle, and men of admitted parts
were carrying on the practice of letters and the investigations of science),
it gave me a singular view of that poor, barren, and yet illustrious
country through which I travelled. Still more, perhaps, did it
commend the wisdom of Miss Gilchrist in sending me with these uncouth
companions and by this unfrequented path.
My itinerary is by no means clear to me; the names and distances I never
clearly knew, and have now wholly forgotten; and this is the more to
be regretted as there is no doubt that, in the course of those days,
I must have passed and camped among sites which have been rendered illustrious
by the pen of Walter Scott. Nay, more, I am of opinion that I
was still more favoured by fortune, and have actually met and spoken
with that inimitable author. Our encounter was of a tall, stoutish,
elderly gentleman, a little grizzled, and of a rugged but cheerful and
engaging countenance. He sat on a hill pony, wrapped in a plaid
over his green coat, and was accompanied by a horse-woman, his daughter,
a young lady of the most charming appearance. They overtook us
on a stretch of heath, reined up as they came alongside, and accompanied
us for perhaps a quarter of an hour before they galloped off again across
the hillsides to our left. Great was my amazement to find the
unconquerable Mr. Sim thaw immediately on the accost of this strange
gentleman, who hailed him with a ready familiarity, proceeded at once
to discuss with him the trade of droving and the prices of cattle, and
did not disdain to take a pinch from the inevitable ram’s horn.
Presently I was aware that the stranger’s eye was directed on
myself; and there ensued a conversation, some of which I could not help
overhearing at the time, and the rest have pieced together more or less
plausibly from the report of Sim.
‘Surely that must be an amateur drover ye have gotten there?’
the gentleman seems to have asked.
Sim replied, I was a young gentleman that had a reason of his own to
travel privately.
‘Well, well, ye must tell me nothing of that. I am in the
law, you know, and tace is the Latin for a candle,’ answered
the gentleman. ‘But I hope it’s nothing bad.’
Sim told him it was no more than debt.
‘Oh, Lord, if that be all!’ cried the gentleman; and turning
to myself, ‘Well, sir,’ he added, ‘I understand you
are taking a tramp through our forest here for the pleasure of the thing?’
‘Why, yes, sir,’ said I; ‘and I must say I am very
well entertained.’
‘I envy you,’ said he. ‘I have jogged many miles
of it myself when I was younger. My youth lies buried about here
under every heather-bush, like the soul of the licentiate Lucius.
But you should have a guide. The pleasure of this country is much
in the legends, which grow as plentiful as blackberries.’
And directing my attention to a little fragment of a broken wall no
greater than a tombstone, he told me for an example a story of its earlier
inhabitants. Years after it chanced that I was one day diverting
myself with a Waverley Novel, when what should I come upon but the identical
narrative of my green-coated gentleman upon the moors! In a moment
the scene, the tones of his voice, his northern accent, and the very
aspect of the earth and sky and temperature of the weather, flashed
back into my mind with the reality of dreams. The unknown in the
green-coat had been the Great Unknown! I had met Scott; I had
heard a story from his lips; I should have been able to write, to claim
acquaintance, to tell him that his legend still tingled in my ears.
But the discovery came too late, and the great man had already succumbed
under the load of his honours and misfortunes.
Presently, after giving us a cigar apiece, Scott bade us farewell and
disappeared with his daughter over the hills. And when I applied
to Sim for information, his answer of ‘The Shirra, man!
A’body kens the Shirra!’ told me, unfortunately, nothing.
A more considerable adventure falls to be related. We were now
near the border. We had travelled for long upon the track beaten
and browsed by a million herds, our predecessors, and had seen no vestige
of that traffic which had created it. It was early in the morning
when we at last perceived, drawing near to the drove road, but still
at a distance of about half a league, a second caravan, similar to but
larger than our own. The liveliest excitement was at once exhibited
by both my comrades. They climbed hillocks, they studied the approaching
drove from under their hand, they consulted each other with an appearance
of alarm that seemed to me extraordinary. I had learned by this
time that their stand-oft manners implied, at least, no active enmity;
and I made bold to ask them what was wrong.
‘Bad yins,’ was Sim’s emphatic answer.
All day the dogs were kept unsparingly on the alert, and the drove pushed
forward at a very unusual and seemingly unwelcome speed. All day
Sim and Candlish, with a more than ordinary expenditure both of snuff
and of words, continued to debate the position. It seems that
they had recognised two of our neighbours on the road - one Faa, and
another by the name of Gillies. Whether there was an old feud
between them still unsettled I could never learn; but Sim and Candlish
were prepared for every degree of fraud or violence at their hands.
Candlish repeatedly congratulated himself on having left ‘the
watch at home with the mistress’; and Sim perpetually brandished
his cudgel, and cursed his ill-fortune that it should be sprung.
‘I willna care a damn to gie the daashed scoon’rel a fair
clout wi’ it,’ he said. ‘The daashed thing micht
come sindry in ma hand.’
‘Well, gentlemen,’ said I, ‘suppose they do come on,
I think we can give a very good account of them.’ And I
made my piece of holly, Ronald’s gift, the value of which I now
appreciated, sing about my head.
‘Ay, man? Are ye stench?’ inquired Sim, with a gleam
of approval in his wooden countenance.
The same evening, somewhat wearied with our day-long expedition, we
encamped on a little verdant mound, from the midst of which there welled
a spring of clear water scarce great enough to wash the hands in.
We had made our meal and lain down, but were not yet asleep, when a
growl from one of the collies set us on the alert. All three sat
up, and on a second impulse all lay down again, but now with our cudgels
ready. A man must be an alien and an outlaw, an old soldier and
a young man in the bargain, to take adventure easily. With no
idea as to the rights of the quarrel or the probable consequences of
the encounter, I was as ready to take part with my two drovers, as ever
to fall in line on the morning of a battle. Presently there leaped
three men out of the heather; we had scarce time to get to our feet
before we were assailed; and in a moment each one of us was engaged
with an adversary whom the deepening twilight scarce permitted him to
see. How the battle sped in other quarters I am in no position
to describe. The rogue that fell to my share was exceedingly agile
and expert with his weapon; had and held me at a disadvantage from the
first assault; forced me to give ground continually, and at last, in
mere self-defence, to let him have the point. It struck him in
the throat, and he went down like a ninepin and moved no more.
It seemed this was the signal for the engagement to be discontinued.
The other combatants separated at once; our foes were suffered, without
molestation, to lift up and bear away their fallen comrade; so that
I perceived this sort of war to be not wholly without laws of chivalry,
and perhaps rather to partake of the character of a tournament than
of a battle à outrance. There was no doubt, at least,
that I was supposed to have pushed the affair too seriously. Our
friends the enemy removed their wounded companion with undisguised consternation;
and they were no sooner over the top of the brae, than Sim and Candlish
roused up their wearied drove and set forth on a night march.
‘I’m thinking Faa’s unco bad,’ said the one.
‘Ay,’ said the other, ‘he lookit dooms gash.’
‘He did that,’ said the first.
And their weary silence fell upon them again.
Presently Sim turned to me. ‘Ye’re unco ready with
the stick,’ said he.
‘Too ready, I’m afraid,’ said I. ‘I am
afraid Mr. Faa (if that be his name) has got his gruel.’
‘Weel, I wouldnae wonder,’ replied Sim.
‘And what is likely to happen?’ I inquired.
‘Aweel,’ said Sim, snuffing profoundly, ‘if I were
to offer an opeenion, it would not be conscientious. For the plain
fac’ is, Mr. St. Ivy, that I div not ken. We have had crackit
heids - and rowth of them - ere now; and we have had a broken leg or
maybe twa; and the like of that we drover bodies make a kind of a practice
like to keep among oursel’s. But a corp we have none of
us ever had to deal with, and I could set nae leemit to what Gillies
micht consider proper in the affair. Forbye that, he would be
in raither a hobble himsel’, if he was to gang hame wantin’
Faa. Folk are awfu’ throng with their questions, and parteecularly
when they’re no wantit.’
‘That’s a fac’,’ said Candlish.
I considered this prospect ruefully; and then making the best of it,
‘Upon all which accounts,’ said I, ‘the best will
be to get across the border and there separate. If you are troubled,
you can very truly put the blame upon your late companion; and if I
am pursued, I must just try to keep out of the way.’
‘Mr. St. Ivy,’ said Sim, with something resembling enthusiasm,
‘no’ a word mair! I have met in wi’ mony kinds
o’ gentry ere now; I hae seen o’ them that was the tae thing,
and I hae seen o’ them that was the tither; but the wale of a
gentleman like you I have no sae very frequently seen the bate of.’
Our night march was accordingly pursued with unremitting diligence.
The stars paled, the east whitened, and we were still, both dogs and
men, toiling after the wearied cattle. Again and again Sim and
Candlish lamented the necessity: it was ‘fair ruin on the bestial,’
they declared; but the thought of a judge and a scaffold hunted them
ever forward. I myself was not so much to be pitied. All
that night, and during the whole of the little that remained before
us of our conjunct journey, I enjoyed a new pleasure, the reward of
my prowess, in the now loosened tongue of Mr. Sim. Candlish was
still obdurately taciturn: it was the man’s nature; but Sim, having
finally appraised and approved me, displayed without reticence a rather
garrulous habit of mind and a pretty talent for narration. The
pair were old and close companions, co-existing in these endless moors
in a brotherhood of silence such as I have heard attributed to the trappers
of the west. It seems absurd to mention love in connection with
so ugly and snuffy a couple; at least, their trust was absolute; and
they entertained a surprising admiration for each other’s qualities;
Candlish exclaiming that Sim was ‘grand company!’ and Sim
frequently assuring me in an aside that for ‘a rale, auld, stench
bitch, there was nae the bate of Candlish in braid Scotland.’
The two dogs appeared to be entirely included in this family compact,
and I remarked that their exploits and traits of character were constantly
and minutely observed by the two masters. Dog stories particularly
abounded with them; and not only the dogs of the present but those of
the past contributed their quota. ‘But that was naething,’
Sim would begin: ‘there was a herd in Manar, they ca’d him
Tweedie - ye’ll mind Tweedie, Can’lish?’ ‘Fine,
that!’ said Candlish. ‘Aweel, Tweedie had a dog -
’ The story I have forgotten; I dare say it was dull, and
I suspect it was not true; but indeed, my travels with the drove rendered
me indulgent, and perhaps even credulous, in the matter of dog stories.
Beautiful, indefatigable beings! as I saw them at the end of a long
day’s journey frisking, barking, bounding, striking attitudes,
slanting a bushy tail, manifestly playing to the spectator’s eye,
manifestly rejoicing in their grace and beauty - and turned to observe
Sim and Candlish unornamentally plodding in the rear with the plaids
about their bowed shoulders and the drop at their snuffy nose - I thought
I would rather claim kinship with the dogs than with the men!
My sympathy was unreturned; in their eyes I was a creature light as
air; and they would scarce spare me the time for a perfunctory caress
or perhaps a hasty lap of the wet tongue, ere they were back again in
sedulous attendance on those dingy deities, their masters - and their
masters, as like as not, damning their stupidity.
Altogether the last hours of our tramp were infinitely the most agreeable
to me, and I believe to all of us; and by the time we came to separate,
there had grown up a certain familiarity and mutual esteem that made
the parting harder. It took place about four of the afternoon
on a bare hillside from which I could see the ribbon of the great north
road, henceforth to be my conductor. I asked what was to pay.
‘Naething,’ replied Sim.
‘What in the name of folly is this?’ I exclaimed.
‘You have led me, you have fed me, you have filled me full of
whisky, and now you will take nothing!’
‘Ye see we indentit for that,’ replied Sim.
‘Indented?’ I repeated; ‘what does the man mean?’
‘Mr. St. Ivy,’ said Sim, ‘this is a maitter entirely
between Candlish and me and the auld wife, Gilchrist. You had
naething to say to it; weel, ye can have naething to do with it, then.’
‘My good man,’ said I, ‘I can allow myself to be placed
in no such ridiculous position. Mrs. Gilchrist is nothing to me,
and I refuse to be her debtor.’
‘I dinna exac’ly see what way ye’re gaun to help it,’
observed my drover.
‘By paying you here and now,’ said I.
‘There’s aye twa to a bargain, Mr. St. Ives,’ said
he.
‘You mean that you will not take it?’ said I.
‘There or thereabout,’ said he. ‘Forbye, that
it would set ye a heap better to keep your siller for them you awe it
to. Ye’re young, Mr. St. Ivy, and thoughtless; but it’s
my belief that, wi’ care and circumspection, ye may yet do credit
to yoursel’. But just you bear this in mind: that him that
awes siller should never gie siller.’
Well, what was there to say? I accepted his rebuke, and bidding
the pair farewell, set off alone upon my southward way.
‘Mr. St. Ivy,’ was the last word of Sim, ‘I was never
muckle ta’en up in Englishry; but I think that I really ought
to say that ye seem to me to have the makings of quite a decent lad.’
CHAPTER XI - THE GREAT NORTH ROAD
It chanced that as I went down the hill these last words of my friend
the drover echoed not unfruitfully in my head. I had never told
these men the least particulars as to my race or fortune, as it was
a part, and the best part, of their civility to ask no questions: yet
they had dubbed me without hesitation English. Some strangeness
in the accent they had doubtless thus explained. And it occurred
to me, that if I could pass in Scotland for an Englishman, I might be
able to reverse the process and pass in England for a Scot. I
thought, if I was pushed to it, I could make a struggle to imitate the
brogue; after my experience with Candlish and Sim, I had a rich provision
of outlandish words at my command; and I felt I could tell the tale
of Tweedie’s dog so as to deceive a native. At the same
time, I was afraid my name of St. Ives was scarcely suitable; till I
remembered there was a town so called in the province of Cornwall, thought
I might yet be glad to claim it for my place of origin, and decided
for a Cornish family and a Scots education. For a trade, as I
was equally ignorant of all, and as the most innocent might at any moment
be the means of my exposure, it was best to pretend to none. And
I dubbed myself a young gentleman of a sufficient fortune and an idle,
curious habit of mind, rambling the country at my own charges, in quest
of health, information, and merry adventures.
At Newcastle, which was the first town I reached, I completed my preparations
for the part, before going to the inn, by the purchase of a knapsack
and a pair of leathern gaiters. My plaid I continued to wear from
sentiment. It was warm, useful to sleep in if I were again benighted,
and I had discovered it to be not unbecoming for a man of gallant carriage.
Thus equipped, I supported my character of the light-hearted pedestrian
not amiss. Surprise was indeed expressed that I should have selected
such a season of the year; but I pleaded some delays of business, and
smilingly claimed to be an eccentric. The devil was in it, I would
say, if any season of the year was not good enough for me; I was not
made of sugar, I was no mollycoddle to be afraid of an ill-aired bed
or a sprinkle of snow; and I would knock upon the table with my fist
and call for t’other bottle, like the noisy and free-hearted young
gentleman I was. It was my policy (if I may so express myself)
to talk much and say little. At the inn tables, the country, the
state of the roads, the business interest of those who sat down with
me, and the course of public events, afforded me a considerable field
in which I might discourse at large and still communicate no information
about myself. There was no one with less air of reticence; I plunged
into my company up to the neck; and I had a long cock-and-bull story
of an aunt of mine which must have convinced the most suspicious of
my innocence. ‘What!’ they would have said, ‘that
young ass to be concealing anything! Why, he has deafened me with
an aunt of his until my head aches. He only wants you should give
him a line, and he would tell you his whole descent from Adam downward,
and his whole private fortune to the last shilling.’ A responsible
solid fellow was even so much moved by pity for my inexperience as to
give me a word or two of good advice: that I was but a young man after
all - I had at this time a deceptive air of youth that made me easily
pass for one-and-twenty, and was, in the circumstances, worth a fortune
- that the company at inns was very mingled, that I should do well to
be more careful, and the like; to all which I made answer that I meant
no harm myself and expected none from others, or the devil was in it.
‘You are one of those d-d prudent fellows that I could never abide
with,’ said I. ‘You are the kind of man that has a
long head. That’s all the world, my dear sir: the long-heads
and the short-horns! Now, I am a short-horn.’ ‘I
doubt,’ says he, ‘that you will not go very far without
getting sheared.’ I offered to bet with him on that, and
he made off, shaking his head.
But my particular delight was to enlarge on politics and the war.
None damned the French like me; none was more bitter against the Americans.
And when the north-bound mail arrived, crowned with holly, and the coachman
and guard hoarse with shouting victory, I went even so far as to entertain
the company to a bowl of punch, which I compounded myself with no illiberal
hand, and doled out to such sentiments as the following:-
‘Our glorious victory on the Nivelle’! ‘Lord
Wellington, God bless him! and may victory ever attend upon his arms!’
and, ‘Soult, poor devil! and may he catch it again to the same
tune!’
Never was oratory more applauded to the echo - never any one was more
of the popular man than I. I promise you, we made a night of it.
Some of the company supported each other, with the assistance of boots,
to their respective bedchambers, while the rest slept on the field of
glory where we had left them; and at the breakfast table the next morning
there was an extraordinary assemblage of red eyes and shaking fists.
I observed patriotism to burn much lower by daylight. Let no one
blame me for insensibility to the reverses of France! God knows
how my heart raged. How I longed to fall on that herd of swine
and knock their heads together in the moment of their revelry!
But you are to consider my own situation and its necessities; also a
certain lightheartedness, eminently Gallic, which forms a leading trait
in my character, and leads me to throw myself into new circumstances
with the spirit of a schoolboy. It is possible that I sometimes
allowed this impish humour to carry me further than good taste approves:
and I was certainly punished for it once.
This was in the episcopal city of Durham. We sat down, a considerable
company, to dinner, most of us fine old vatted English tories of that
class which is often so enthusiastic as to be inarticulate. I
took and held the lead from the beginning; and, the talk having turned
on the French in the Peninsula, I gave them authentic details (on the
authority of a cousin of mine, an ensign) of certain cannibal orgies
in Galicia, in which no less a person than General Caffarelli had taken
a part. I always disliked that commander, who once ordered me
under arrest for insubordination; and it is possible that a spice of
vengeance added to the rigour of my picture. I have forgotten
the details; no doubt they were high-coloured. No doubt I rejoiced
to fool these jolter-heads; and no doubt the sense of security that
I drank from their dull, gasping faces encouraged me to proceed extremely
far. And for my sins, there was one silent little man at table
who took my story at the true value. It was from no sense of humour,
to which he was quite dead. It was from no particular intelligence,
for he had not any. The bond of sympathy, of all things in the
world, had rendered him clairvoyant.
Dinner was no sooner done than I strolled forth into the streets with
some design of viewing the cathedral; and the little man was silently
at my heels. A few doors from the inn, in a dark place of the
street, I was aware of a touch on my arm, turned suddenly, and found
him looking up at me with eyes pathetically bright.
‘I beg your pardon, sir; but that story of yours was particularly
rich. He - he! Particularly racy,’ said he.
‘I tell you, sir, I took you wholly! I smoked you!
I believe you and I, sir, if we had a chance to talk, would find we
had a good many opinions in common. Here is the “Blue Bell,”
a very comfortable place. They draw good ale, sir. Would
you be so condescending as to share a pot with me?’
There was something so ambiguous and secret in the little man’s
perpetual signalling, that I confess my curiosity was much aroused.
Blaming myself, even as I did so, for the indiscretion, I embraced his
proposal, and we were soon face to face over a tankard of mulled ale.
He lowered his voice to the least attenuation of a whisper.
‘Here, sir,’ said he, ‘is to the Great Man.
I think you take me? No?’ He leaned forward till our
noses touched. ‘Here is to the Emperor!’ said he.
I was extremely embarrassed, and, in spite of the creature’s innocent
appearance, more than half alarmed. I thought him too ingenious,
and, indeed, too daring for a spy. Yet if he were honest he must
be a man of extraordinary indiscretion, and therefore very unfit to
be encouraged by an escaped prisoner. I took a half course, accordingly
- accepted his toast in silence, and drank it without enthusiasm.
He proceeded to abound in the praises of Napoleon, such as I had never
heard in France, or at least only on the lips of officials paid to offer
them.
‘And this Caffarelli, now,’ he pursued: ‘he is a splendid
fellow, too, is he not? I have not heard vastly much of him myself.
No details, sir - no details! We labour under huge difficulties
here as to unbiassed information.’
‘I believe I have heard the same complaint in other countries,’
I could not help remarking. ‘But as to Caffarelli, he is
neither lame nor blind, he has two legs and a nose in the middle of
his face. And I care as much about him as you care for the dead
body of Mr. Perceval!’
He studied me with glowing eyes.
‘You cannot deceive me!’ he cried. ‘You have
served under him. You are a Frenchman! I hold by the hand,
at last, one of that noble race, the pioneers of the glorious principles
of liberty and brotherhood. Hush! No, it is all right.
I thought there had been somebody at the door. In this wretched,
enslaved country we dare not even call our souls our own. The
spy and the hangman, sir - the spy and the hangman! And yet there
is a candle burning, too. The good leaven is working, sir - working
underneath. Even in this town there are a few brave spirits, who
meet every Wednesday. You must stay over a day or so, and join
us. We do not use this house. Another, and a quieter.
They draw fine ale, however - fair, mild ale. You will find yourself
among friends, among brothers. You will hear some very daring
sentiments expressed!’ he cried, expanding his small chest.
‘Monarchy, Christianity - all the trappings of a bloated past
- the Free Confraternity of Durham and Tyneside deride.’
Here was a devil of a prospect for a gentleman whose whole design was
to avoid observation! The Free Confraternity had no charms for
me; daring sentiments were no part of my baggage; and I tried, instead,
a little cold water.
‘You seem to forget, sir, that my Emperor has re-established Christianity,’
I observed.
‘Ah, sir, but that was policy!’ he exclaimed. ‘You
do not understand Napoleon. I have followed his whole career.
I can explain his policy from first to last. Now for instance
in the Peninsula, on which you were so very amusing, if you will come
to a friend’s house who has a map of Spain, I can make the whole
course of the war quite clear to you, I venture to say, in half an hour.’
This was intolerable. Of the two extremes, I found I preferred
the British tory; and, making an appointment for the morrow, I pleaded
sudden headache, escaped to the inn, packed my knapsack, and fled, about
nine at night, from this accursed neighbourhood. It was cold,
starry, and clear, and the road dry, with a touch of frost. For
all that, I had not the smallest intention to make a long stage of it;
and about ten o’clock, spying on the right-hand side of the way
the lighted windows of an alehouse, I determined to bait there for the
night.
It was against my principle, which was to frequent only the dearest
inns; and the misadventure that befell me was sufficient to make me
more particular in the future. A large company was assembled in
the parlour, which was heavy with clouds of tobacco smoke, and brightly
lighted up by a roaring fire of coal. Hard by the chimney stood
a vacant chair in what I thought an enviable situation, whether for
warmth or the pleasure of society; and I was about to take it, when
the nearest of the company stopped me with his hand.
‘Beg thy pardon, sir,’ said he; ‘but that there chair
belongs to a British soldier.’
A chorus of voices enforced and explained. It was one of Lord
Wellington’s heroes. He had been wounded under Rowland Hill.
He was Colbourne’s right-hand man. In short, this favoured
individual appeared to have served with every separate corps, and under
every individual general in the Peninsula. Of course I apologised.
I had not known. The devil was in it if a soldier had not a right
to the best in England. And with that sentiment, which was loudly
applauded, I found a corner of a bench, and awaited, with some hopes
of entertainment, the return of the hero. He proved, of course,
to be a private soldier. I say of course, because no officer could
possibly enjoy such heights of popularity. He had been wounded
before San Sebastian, and still wore his arm in a sling. What
was a great deal worse for him, every member of the company had been
plying him with drink. His honest yokel’s countenance blazed
as if with fever, his eyes were glazed and looked the two ways, and
his feet stumbled as, amidst a murmur of applause, he returned to the
midst of his admirers.
Two minutes afterwards I was again posting in the dark along the highway;
to explain which sudden movement of retreat I must trouble the reader
with a reminiscence of my services.
I lay one night with the out-pickets in Castile. We were in close
touch with the enemy; the usual orders had been issued against smoking,
fires, and talk, and both armies lay as quiet as mice, when I saw the
English sentinel opposite making a signal by holding up his musket.
I repeated it, and we both crept together in the dry bed of a stream,
which made the demarcation of the armies. It was wine he wanted,
of which we had a good provision, and the English had quite run out.
He gave me the money, and I, as was the custom, left him my firelock
in pledge, and set off for the canteen. When I returned with a
skin of wine, behold, it had pleased some uneasy devil of an English
officer to withdraw the outposts! Here was a situation with a
vengeance, and I looked for nothing but ridicule in the present and
punishment in the future. Doubtless our officers winked pretty
hard at this interchange of courtesies, but doubtless it would be impossible
to wink at so gross a fault, or rather so pitiable a misadventure as
mine; and you are to conceive me wandering in the plains of Castile,
benighted, charged with a wine-skin for which I had no use, and with
no knowledge whatever of the whereabouts of my musket, beyond that it
was somewhere in my Lord Wellington’s army. But my Englishman
was either a very honest fellow, or else extremely thirsty, and at last
contrived to advertise me of his new position. Now, the English
sentry in Castile, and the wounded hero in the Durham public-house,
were one and the same person; and if he had been a little less drunk,
or myself less lively in getting away, the travels of M. St. Ives might
have come to an untimely end.
I suppose this woke me up; it stirred in me besides a spirit of opposition,
and in spite of cold, darkness, the highwaymen and the footpads, I determined
to walk right on till breakfast-time: a happy resolution, which enabled
me to observe one of those traits of manners which at once depict a
country and condemn it. It was near midnight when I saw, a great
way ahead of me, the light of many torches; presently after, the sound
of wheels reached me, and the slow tread of feet, and soon I had joined
myself to the rear of a sordid, silent, and lugubrious procession, such
as we see in dreams. Close on a hundred persons marched by torchlight
in unbroken silence; in their midst a cart, and in the cart, on an inclined
platform, the dead body of a man - the centre-piece of this solemnity,
the hero whose obsequies we were come forth at this unusual hour to
celebrate. It was but a plain, dingy old fellow of fifty or sixty,
his throat cut, his shirt turned over as though to show the wound.
Blue trousers and brown socks completed his attire, if we can talk so
of the dead. He had a horrid look of a waxwork. In the tossing
of the lights he seemed to make faces and mouths at us, to frown, and
to be at times upon the point of speech. The cart, with this shabby
and tragic freight, and surrounded by its silent escort and bright torches,
continued for some distance to creak along the high-road, and I to follow
it in amazement, which was soon exchanged for horror. At the corner
of a lane the procession stopped, and, as the torches ranged themselves
along the hedgerow-side, I became aware of a grave dug in the midst
of the thoroughfare, and a provision of quicklime piled in the ditch.
The cart was backed to the margin, the body slung off the platform and
dumped into the grave with an irreverent roughness. A sharpened
stake had hitherto served it for a pillow. It was now withdrawn,
held in its place by several volunteers, and a fellow with a heavy mallet
(the sound of which still haunts me at night) drove it home through
the bosom of the corpse. The hole was filled with quicklime, and
the bystanders, as if relieved of some oppression, broke at once into
a sound of whispered speech.
My shirt stuck to me, my heart had almost ceased beating, and I found
my tongue with difficulty.
‘I beg your pardon,’ I gasped to a neighbour, ‘what
is this? what has he done? is it allowed?’
‘Why, where do you come from?’ replied the man.
‘I am a traveller, sir,’ said I, ‘and a total stranger
in this part of the country. I had lost my way when I saw your
torches, and came by chance on this - this incredible scene. Who
was the man?’
‘A suicide,’ said he. ‘Ay, he was a bad one,
was Johnnie Green.’
It appeared this was a wretch who had committed many barbarous murders,
and being at last upon the point of discovery fell of his own hand.
And the nightmare at the crossroads was the regular punishment, according
to the laws of England, for an act which the Romans honoured as a virtue!
Whenever an Englishman begins to prate of civilisation (as, indeed,
it’s a defect they are rather prone to), I hear the measured blows
of a mallet, see the bystanders crowd with torches about the grave,
smile a little to myself in conscious superiority - and take a thimbleful
of brandy for the stomach’s sake.
I believe it must have been at my next stage, for I remember going to
bed extremely early, that I came to the model of a good old-fashioned
English inn, and was attended on by the picture of a pretty chambermaid.
We had a good many pleasant passages as she waited table or warmed my
bed for me with a devil of a brass warming pan, fully larger than herself;
and as she was no less pert than she was pretty, she may be said to
have given rather better than she took. I cannot tell why (unless
it were for the sake of her saucy eyes), but I made her my confidante,
told her I was attached to a young lady in Scotland, and received the
encouragement of her sympathy, mingled and connected with a fair amount
of rustic wit. While I slept the down-mail stopped for supper;
it chanced that one of the passengers left behind a copy of the Edinburgh
Courant, and the next morning my pretty chambermaid set the paper
before me at breakfast, with the remark that there was some news from
my lady-love. I took it eagerly, hoping to find some further word
of our escape, in which I was disappointed; and I was about to lay it
down, when my eye fell on a paragraph immediately concerning me.
Faa was in hospital, grievously sick, and warrants were out for the
arrest of Sim and Candlish. These two men had shown themselves
very loyal to me. This trouble emerging, the least I could do
was to be guided by a similar loyalty to them. Suppose my visit
to my uncle crowned with some success, and my finances re-established,
I determined I should immediately return to Edinburgh, put their case
in the hands of a good lawyer, and await events. So my mind was
very lightly made up to what proved a mighty serious matter. Candlish
and Sim were all very well in their way, and I do sincerely trust I
should have been at some pains to help them, had there been nothing
else. But in truth my heart and my eyes were set on quite another
matter, and I received the news of their tribulation almost with joy.
That is never a bad wind that blows where we want to go, and you may
be sure there was nothing unwelcome in a circumstance that carried me
back to Edinburgh and Flora. From that hour I began to indulge
myself with the making of imaginary scenes and interviews, in which
I confounded the aunt, flattered Ronald, and now in the witty, now in
the sentimental manner, declared my love and received the assurance
of its return. By means of this exercise my resolution daily grew
stronger, until at last I had piled together such a mass of obstinacy
as it would have taken a cataclysm of nature to subvert.
‘Yes,’ said I to the chambermaid, ‘here is news of
my lady-love indeed, and very good news too.’
All that day, in the teeth of a keen winter wind, I hugged myself in
my plaid, and it was as though her arms were flung around me.
CHAPTER XII - I FOLLOW A COVERED CART NEARLY TO MY DESTINATION
At last I began to draw near, by reasonable stages, to the neighbourhood
of Wakefield; and the name of Mr. Burchell Fenn came to the top in my
memory. This was the gentleman (the reader may remember) who made
a trade of forwarding the escape of French prisoners. How he did
so: whether he had a sign-board, Escapes forwarded, apply within;
what he charged for his services, or whether they were gratuitous and
charitable, were all matters of which I was at once ignorant and extremely
curious. Thanks to my proficiency in English, and Mr. Romaine’s
bank-notes, I was getting on swimmingly without him; but the trouble
was that I could not be easy till I had come to the bottom of these
mysteries, and it was my difficulty that I knew nothing of him beyond
the name. I knew not his trade beyond that of Forwarder of Escapes
- whether he lived in town or country, whether he were rich or poor,
nor by what kind of address I was to gain his confidence. It would
have a very bad appearance to go along the highwayside asking after
a man of whom I could give so scanty an account; and I should look like
a fool, indeed, if I were to present myself at his door and find the
police in occupation! The interest of the conundrum, however,
tempted me, and I turned aside from my direct road to pass by Wakefield;
kept my ears pricked, as I went, for any mention of his name, and relied
for the rest on my good fortune. If Luck (who must certainly be
feminine) favoured me as far as to throw me in the man’s way,
I should owe the lady a candle; if not, I could very readily console
myself. In this experimental humour, and with so little to help
me, it was a miracle that I should have brought my enterprise to a good
end; and there are several saints in the calendar who might be happy
to exchange with St. Ives!
I had slept that night in a good inn at Wakefield, made my breakfast
by candle-light with the passengers of an up-coach, and set off in a
very ill temper with myself and my surroundings. It was still
early; the air raw and cold; the sun low, and soon to disappear under
a vast canopy of rain-clouds that had begun to assemble in the north-west,
and from that quarter invaded the whole width of the heaven. Already
the rain fell in crystal rods; already the whole face of the country
sounded with the discharge of drains and ditches; and I looked forward
to a day of downpour and the hell of wet clothes, in which particular
I am as dainty as a cat. At a corner of the road, and by the last
glint of the drowning sun, I spied a covered cart, of a kind that I
thought I had never seen before, preceding me at the foot’s pace
of jaded horses. Anything is interesting to a pedestrian that
can help him to forget the miseries of a day of rain; and I bettered
my pace and gradually overtook the vehicle.
The nearer I came, the more it puzzled me. It was much such a
cart as I am told the calico printers use, mounted on two wheels, and
furnished with a seat in front for the driver. The interior closed
with a door, and was of a bigness to contain a good load of calico,
or (at a pinch and if it were necessary) four or five persons.
But, indeed, if human beings were meant to travel there, they had my
pity! They must travel in the dark, for there was no sign of a
window; and they would be shaken all the way like a phial of doctor’s
stuff, for the cart was not only ungainly to look at - it was besides
very imperfectly balanced on the one pair of wheels, and pitched unconscionably.
Altogether, if I had any glancing idea that the cart was really a carriage,
I had soon dismissed it; but I was still inquisitive as to what it should
contain, and where it had come from. Wheels and horses were splashed
with many different colours of mud, as though they had come far and
across a considerable diversity of country. The driver continually
and vainly plied his whip. It seemed to follow they had made a
long, perhaps an all-night, stage; and that the driver, at that early
hour of a little after eight in the morning, already felt himself belated.
I looked for the name of the proprietor on the shaft, and started outright.
Fortune had favoured the careless: it was Burchell Fenn!
‘A wet morning, my man,’ said I.
The driver, a loutish fellow, shock-headed and turnip-faced, returned
not a word to my salutation, but savagely flogged his horses.
The tired animals, who could scarce put the one foot before the other,
paid no attention to his cruelty; and I continued without effort to
maintain my position alongside, smiling to myself at the futility of
his attempts, and at the same time pricked with curiosity as to why
he made them. I made no such formidable a figure as that a man
should flee when I accosted him; and my conscience not being entirely
clear, I was more accustomed to be uneasy myself than to see others
timid. Presently he desisted, and put back his whip in the holster
with the air of a man vanquished.
‘So you would run away from me?’ said I. ‘Come,
come, that’s not English.’
‘Beg pardon, master: no offence meant,’ he said, touching
his hat.
‘And none taken!’ cried I. ‘All I desire is
a little gaiety by the way.’
I understood him to say he didn’t ‘take with gaiety.’
‘Then I will try you with something else,’ said I.
‘Oh, I can be all things to all men, like the apostle! I
dare to say I have travelled with heavier fellows than you in my time,
and done famously well with them. Are you going home?’
‘Yes, I’m a goin’ home, I am,’ he said.
‘A very fortunate circumstance for me!’ said I. ‘At
this rate we shall see a good deal of each other, going the same way;
and, now I come to think of it, why should you not give me a cast?
There is room beside you on the bench.’
With a sudden snatch, he carried the cart two yards into the roadway.
The horses plunged and came to a stop. ‘No, you don’t!’
he said, menacing me with the whip. ‘None o’ that
with me.’
‘None of what?’ said I. ‘I asked you for a lift,
but I have no idea of taking one by force.’
‘Well, I’ve got to take care of the cart and ’orses,
I have,’ says he. ‘I don’t take up with no runagate
vagabones, you see, else.’
‘I ought to thank you for your touching confidence,’ said
I, approaching carelessly nearer as I spoke. ‘But I admit
the road is solitary hereabouts, and no doubt an accident soon happens.
Little fear of anything of the kind with you! I like you for it,
like your prudence, like that pastoral shyness of disposition.
But why not put it out of my power to hurt? Why not open the door
and bestow me here in the box, or whatever you please to call it?’
And I laid my hand demonstratively on the body of the cart.
He had been timorous before; but at this, he seemed to lose the power
of speech a moment, and stared at me in a perfect enthusiasm of fear.
‘Why not?’ I continued. ‘The idea is good.
I should be safe in there if I were the monster Williams himself.
The great thing is to have me under lock and key. For it does
lock; it is locked now,’ said I, trying the door. ‘A
propos, what have you for a cargo? It must be precious.’
He found not a word to answer.
Rat-tat-tat, I went upon the door like a well-drilled footman.
‘Any one at home?’ I said, and stooped to listen.
There came out of the interior a stifled sneeze, the first of an uncontrollable
paroxysm; another followed immediately on the heels of it; and then
the driver turned with an oath, laid the lash upon the horses with so
much energy that they found their heels again, and the whole equipage
fled down the road at a gallop.
At the first sound of the sneeze, I had started back like a man shot.
The next moment, a great light broke on my mind, and I understood.
Here was the secret of Fenn’s trade: this was how he forwarded
the escape of prisoners, hawking them by night about the country in
his covered cart. There had been Frenchmen close to me; he who
had just sneezed was my countryman, my comrade, perhaps already my friend!
I took to my heels in pursuit. ‘Hold hard!’ I shouted.
‘Stop! It’s all right! Stop!’ But
the driver only turned a white face on me for a moment, and redoubled
his efforts, bending forward, plying his whip and crying to his horses;
these lay themselves down to the gallop and beat the highway with flying
hoofs; and the cart bounded after them among the ruts and fled in a
halo of rain and spattering mud. But a minute since, and it had
been trundling along like a lame cow; and now it was off as though drawn
by Apollo’s coursers. There is no telling what a man can
do, until you frighten him!
It was as much as I could do myself, though I ran valiantly, to maintain
my distance; and that (since I knew my countrymen so near) was become
a chief point with me. A hundred yards farther on the cart whipped
out of the high-road into a lane embowered with leafless trees, and
became lost to view. When I saw it next, the driver had increased
his advantage considerably, but all danger was at an end, and the horses
had again declined into a hobbling walk. Persuaded that they could
not escape me, I took my time, and recovered my breath as I followed
them.
Presently the lane twisted at right angles, and showed me a gate and
the beginning of a gravel sweep; and a little after, as I continued
to advance, a red brick house about seventy years old, in a fine style
of architecture, and presenting a front of many windows to a lawn and
garden. Behind, I could see outhouses and the peaked roofs of
stacks; and I judged that a manor-house had in some way declined to
be the residence of a tenant-farmer, careless alike of appearances and
substantial comfort. The marks of neglect were visible on every
side, in flower-bushes straggling beyond the borders, in the ill-kept
turf, and in the broken windows that were incongruously patched with
paper or stuffed with rags. A thicket of trees, mostly evergreen,
fenced the place round and secluded it from the eyes of prying neighbours.
As I came in view of it, on that melancholy winter’s morning,
in the deluge of the falling rain, and with the wind that now rose in
occasional gusts and hooted over the old chimneys, the cart had already
drawn up at the front-door steps, and the driver was already in earnest
discourse with Mr. Burchell Fenn. He was standing with his hands
behind his back - a man of a gross, misbegotten face and body, dewlapped
like a bull and red as a harvest moon; and in his jockey cap, blue coat
and top boots, he had much the air of a good, solid tenant-farmer.
The pair continued to speak as I came up the approach, but received
me at last in a sort of goggling silence. I had my hat in my hand.
‘I have the pleasure of addressing Mr. Burchell Fenn?’ said
I.
‘The same, sir,’ replied Mr. Fenn, taking off his jockey
cap in answer to my civility, but with the distant look and the tardy
movements of one who continues to think of something else. ‘And
who may you be?’ he asked.
‘I shall tell you afterwards,’ said I. ‘Suffice
it, in the meantime, that I come on business.’
He seemed to digest my answer laboriously, his mouth gaping, his little
eyes never straying from my face.
‘Suffer me to point out to you, sir,’ I resumed, ‘that
this is a devil of a wet morning; and that the chimney corner, and possibly
a glass of something hot, are clearly indicated.’
Indeed, the rain was now grown to be a deluge; the gutters of the house
roared; the air was filled with the continuous, strident crash.
The stolidity of his face, on which the rain streamed, was far from
reassuring me. On the contrary, I was aware of a distinct qualm
of apprehension, which was not at all lessened by a view of the driver,
craning from his perch to observe us with the expression of a fascinated
bird. So we stood silent, when the prisoner again began to sneeze
from the body of the cart; and at the sound, prompt as a transformation,
the driver had whipped up his horses and was shambling off round the
corner of the house, and Mr. Fenn, recovering his wits with a gulp,
had turned to the door behind him.
‘Come in, come in, sir,’ he said. ‘I beg your
pardon, sir; the lock goes a trifle hard.’
Indeed, it took him a surprising time to open the door, which was not
only locked on the outside, but the lock seemed rebellious from disuse;
and when at last he stood back and motioned me to enter before him,
I was greeted on the threshold by that peculiar and convincing sound
of the rain echoing over empty chambers. The entrance-hall, in
which I now found myself, was of a good size and good proportions; potted
plants occupied the corners; the paved floor was soiled with muddy footprints
and encumbered with straw; on a mahogany hall-table, which was the only
furniture, a candle had been stuck and suffered to burn down - plainly
a long while ago, for the gutterings were green with mould. My
mind, under these new impressions, worked with unusual vivacity.
I was here shut off with Fenn and his hireling in a deserted house,
a neglected garden, and a wood of evergreens: the most eligible theatre
for a deed of darkness. There came to me a vision of two flagstones
raised in the hall-floor, and the driver putting in the rainy afternoon
over my grave, and the prospect displeased me extremely. I felt
I had carried my pleasantry as far as was safe; I must lose no time
in declaring my true character, and I was even choosing the words in
which I was to begin, when the hall-door was slammed-to behind me with
a bang, and I turned, dropping my stick as I did so, in time - and not
any more than time - to save my life.
The surprise of the onslaught and the huge weight of my assailant gave
him the advantage. He had a pistol in his right hand of a portentous
size, which it took me all my strength to keep deflected. With
his left arm he strained me to his bosom, so that I thought I must be
crushed or stifled. His mouth was open, his face crimson, and
he panted aloud with hard animal sounds. The affair was as brief
as it was hot and sudden. The potations which had swelled and
bloated his carcase had already weakened the springs of energy.
One more huge effort, that came near to overpower me, and in which the
pistol happily exploded, and I felt his grasp slacken and weakness come
on his joints; his legs succumbed under his weight, and he grovelled
on his knees on the stone floor. ‘Spare me!’ he gasped.
I had not only been abominably frightened; I was shocked besides: my
delicacy was in arms, like a lady to whom violence should have been
offered by a similar monster. I plucked myself from his horrid
contact, I snatched the pistol - even discharged, it was a formidable
weapon - and menaced him with the butt. ‘Spare you!’
I cried, ‘you beast!’
His voice died in his fat inwards, but his lips still vehemently framed
the same words of supplication. My anger began to pass off, but
not all my repugnance; the picture he made revolted me, and I was impatient
to be spared the further view of it.
‘Here,’ said I, ‘stop this performance: it sickens
me. I am not going to kill you, do you hear? I have need
of you.’
A look of relief, that I could almost have called beautiful, dawned
on his countenance. ‘Anything - anything you wish,’
said he.
Anything is a big word, and his use of it brought me for a moment to
a stand. ‘Why, what do you mean?’ I asked. ‘Do
you mean that you will blow the gaff on the whole business?’
He answered me Yes with eager asseverations.
‘I know Monsieur de Saint-Yves is in it; it was through his papers
we traced you,’ I said. ‘Do you consent to make a
clean breast of the others?’
‘I do - I will!’ he cried. ‘The ’ole crew
of ’em; there’s good names among ’em. I’ll
be king’s evidence.’
‘So that all shall hang except yourself? You damned villain!’
I broke out. ‘Understand at once that I am no spy or thief-taker.
I am a kinsman of Monsieur de St. Yves - here in his interest.
Upon my word, you have put your foot in it prettily, Mr. Burchell Fenn!
Come, stand up; don’t grovel there. Stand up, you lump of
iniquity!’
He scrambled to his feet. He was utterly unmanned, or it might
have gone hard with me yet; and I considered him hesitating, as, indeed,
there was cause. The man was a double-dyed traitor: he had tried
to murder me, and I had first baffled his endeavours and then exposed
and insulted him. Was it wise to place myself any longer at his
mercy? With his help I should doubtless travel more quickly; doubtless
also far less agreeably; and there was everything to show that it would
be at a greater risk. In short, I should have washed my hands
of him on the spot, but for the temptation of the French officers, whom
I knew to be so near, and for whose society I felt so great and natural
an impatience. If I was to see anything of my countrymen, it was
clear I had first of all to make my peace with Mr. Fenn; and that was
no easy matter. To make friends with any one implies concessions
on both sides; and what could I concede? What could I say of him,
but that he had proved himself a villain and a fool, and the worse man?
‘Well,’ said I, ‘here has been rather a poor piece
of business, which I dare say you can have no pleasure in calling to
mind; and, to say truth, I would as readily forget it myself.
Suppose we try. Take back your pistol, which smells very ill;
put it in your pocket or wherever you had it concealed. There!
Now let us meet for the first time. - Give you good morning, Mr. Fenn!
I hope you do very well. I come on the recommendation of my kinsman,
the Vicomte de St. Yves.’
‘Do you mean it?’ he cried. ‘Do you mean you
will pass over our little scrimmage?’
‘Why, certainly!’ said I. ‘It shows you are
a bold fellow, who may be trusted to forget the business when it comes
to the point. There is nothing against you in the little scrimmage,
unless that your courage is greater than your strength. You are
not so young as you once were, that is all.’
‘And I beg of you, sir, don’t betray me to the Vis-count,’
he pleaded. ‘I’ll not deny but what my ’eart
failed me a trifle; but it was only a word, sir, what anybody might
have said in the ’eat of the moment, and over with it.’
‘Certainly,’ said I. ‘That is quite my own opinion.’
‘The way I came to be anxious about the Vis-count,’ he continued,
‘is that I believe he might be induced to form an ’asty
judgment. And the business, in a pecuniary point of view, is all
that I could ask; only trying, sir - very trying. It’s making
an old man of me before my time. You might have observed yourself,
sir, that I ’aven’t got the knees I once ’ad.
The knees and the breathing, there’s where it takes me.
But I’m very sure, sir, I address a gentleman as would be the
last to make trouble between friends.’
‘I am sure you do me no more than justice,’ said I; ‘and
I shall think it quite unnecessary to dwell on any of these passing
circumstances in my report to the Vicomte.’
‘Which you do favour him (if you’ll excuse me being so bold
as to mention it) exac’ly!’ said he. ‘I should
have known you anywheres. May I offer you a pot of ’ome-brewed
ale, sir? By your leave! This way, if you please.
I am ’eartily grateful - ’eartily pleased to be of any service
to a gentleman like you, sir, which is related to the Vis-count, and
really a fambly of which you might well be proud! Take care of
the step, sir. You have good news of ’is ’ealth, I
trust? as well as that of Monseer the Count?’
God forgive me! the horrible fellow was still puffing and panting with
the fury of his assault, and already he had fallen into an obsequious,
wheedling familiarity like that of an old servant, - already he was
flattering me on my family connections!
I followed him through the house into the stable-yard, where I observed
the driver washing the cart in a shed. He must have heard the
explosion of the pistol. He could not choose but hear it: the
thing was shaped like a little blunderbuss, charged to the mouth, and
made a report like a piece of field artillery. He had heard, he
had paid no attention; and now, as we came forth by the back-door, he
raised for a moment a pale and tell-tale face that was as direct as
a confession. The rascal had expected to see Fenn come forth alone;
he was waiting to be called on for that part of sexton, which I had
already allotted to him in fancy.
I need not detain the reader very long with any description of my visit
to the back-kitchen; of how we mulled our ale there, and mulled it very
well; nor of how we sat talking, Fenn like an old, faithful, affectionate
dependant, and I - well! I myself fallen into a mere admiration
of so much impudence, that transcended words, and had very soon conquered
animosity. I took a fancy to the man, he was so vast a humbug.
I began to see a kind of beauty in him, his aplomb was so majestic.
I never knew a rogue to cut so fat; his villainy was ample, like his
belly, and I could scarce find it in my heart to hold him responsible
for either. He was good enough to drop into the autobiographical;
telling me how the farm, in spite of the war and the high prices, had
proved a disappointment; how there was ‘a sight of cold, wet land
as you come along the ’igh-road’; how the winds and rains
and the seasons had been misdirected, it seemed ‘o’ purpose’;
how Mrs. Fenn had died - ‘I lost her coming two year agone; a
remarkable fine woman, my old girl, sir! if you’ll excuse me,’
he added, with a burst of humility. In short, he gave me an opportunity
of studying John Bull, as I may say, stuffed naked - his greed, his
usuriousness, his hypocrisy, his perfidy of the back-stairs, all swelled
to the superlative - such as was well worth the little disarray and
fluster of our passage in the hall.
CHAPTER XIII - I MEET TWO OF MY COUNTRYMEN
As soon as I judged it safe, and that was not before Burchell Fenn had
talked himself back into his breath and a complete good humour, I proposed
he should introduce me to the French officers, henceforth to become
my fellow-passengers. There were two of them, it appeared, and
my heart beat as I approached the door. The specimen of Perfidious
Albion whom I had just been studying gave me the stronger zest for my
fellow-countrymen. I could have embraced them; I could have wept
on their necks. And all the time I was going to a disappointment.
It was in a spacious and low room, with an outlook on the court, that
I found them bestowed. In the good days of that house the apartment
had probably served as a library, for there were traces of shelves along
the wainscot. Four or five mattresses lay on the floor in a corner,
with a frowsy heap of bedding; near by was a basin and a cube of soap;
a rude kitchen-table and some deal chairs stood together at the far
end; and the room was illuminated by no less than four windows, and
warmed by a little, crazy, sidelong grate, propped up with bricks in
the vent of a hospitable chimney, in which a pile of coals smoked prodigiously
and gave out a few starveling flames. An old, frail, white-haired
officer sat in one of the chairs, which he had drawn close to this apology
for a fire. He was wrapped in a camlet cloak, of which the collar
was turned up, his knees touched the bars, his hands were spread in
the very smoke, and yet he shivered for cold. The second - a big,
florid, fine animal of a man, whose every gesture labelled him the cock
of the walk and the admiration of the ladies - had apparently despaired
of the fire, and now strode up and down, sneezing hard, bitterly blowing
his nose, and proffering a continual stream of bluster, complaint, and
barrack-room oaths.
Fenn showed me in with the brief form of introduction: ‘Gentlemen
all, this here’s another fare!’ and was gone again at once.
The old man gave me but the one glance out of lack-lustre eyes; and
even as he looked a shiver took him as sharp as a hiccough. But
the other, who represented to admiration the picture of a Beau in a
Catarrh, stared at me arrogantly.
‘And who are you, sir?’ he asked.
I made the military salute to my superiors.
‘Champdivers, private, Eighth of the Line,’ said I.
‘Pretty business!’ said he. ‘And you are going
on with us? Three in a cart, and a great trolloping private at
that! And who is to pay for you, my fine fellow?’ he inquired.
‘If monsieur comes to that,’ I answered civilly, ‘who
paid for him?’
‘Oh, if you choose to play the wit!’ said he, - and began
to rail at large upon his destiny, the weather, the cold, the danger
and the expense of the escape, and, above all, the cooking of the accursed
English. It seemed to annoy him particularly that I should have
joined their party. ‘If you knew what you were doing, thirty
thousand millions of pigs! you would keep yourself to yourself!
The horses can’t drag the cart; the roads are all ruts and swamps.
No longer ago than last night the Colonel and I had to march half the
way - thunder of God! - half the way to the knees in mud - and I with
this infernal cold - and the danger of detection! Happily we met
no one: a desert - a real desert - like the whole abominable country!
Nothing to eat - no, sir, there is nothing to eat but raw cow and greens
boiled in water - nor to drink but Worcestershire sauce! Now I,
with my catarrh, I have no appetite; is it not so? Well, if I
were in France, I should have a good soup with a crust in it, an omelette,
a fowl in rice, a partridge in cabbages - things to tempt me, thunder
of God! But here - day of God! - what a country! And cold,
too! They talk about Russia - this is all the cold I want!
And the people - look at them! What a race! Never any handsome
men; never any fine officers!’ - and he looked down complacently
for a moment at his waist - ‘And the women - what faggots!
No, that is one point clear, I cannot stomach the English!’
There was something in this man so antipathetic to me, as sent the mustard
into my nose. I can never bear your bucks and dandies, even when
they are decent-looking and well dressed; and the Major - for that was
his rank - was the image of a flunkey in good luck. Even to be
in agreement with him, or to seem to be so, was more than I could make
out to endure.
‘You could scarce be expected to stomach them,’ said I civilly,
‘after having just digested your parole.’
He whipped round on his heel and turned on me a countenance which I
dare say he imagined to be awful; but another fit of sneezing cut him
off ere he could come the length of speech.
‘I have not tried the dish myself,’ I took the opportunity
to add. ‘It is said to be unpalatable. Did monsieur
find it so?’
With surprising vivacity the Colonel woke from his lethargy. He
was between us ere another word could pass.
‘Shame, gentlemen!’ he said. ‘Is this a time
for Frenchmen and fellow-soldiers to fall out? We are in the midst
of our enemies; a quarrel, a loud word, may suffice to plunge us back
into irretrievable distress. Monsieur le Commandant, you
have been gravely offended. I make it my request, I make it my
prayer - if need be, I give you my orders - that the matter shall stand
by until we come safe to France. Then, if you please, I will serve
you in any capacity. And for you, young man, you have shown all
the cruelty and carelessness of youth. This gentleman is your
superior; he is no longer young’ - at which word you are to conceive
the Major’s face. ‘It is admitted he has broken his
parole. I know not his reason, and no more do you. It might
be patriotism in this hour of our country’s adversity, it might
be humanity, necessity; you know not what in the least, and you permit
yourself to reflect on his honour. To break parole may be a subject
for pity and not derision. I have broken mine - I, a colonel of
the Empire. And why? I have been years negotiating my exchange,
and it cannot be managed; those who have influence at the Ministry of
War continually rush in before me, and I have to wait, and my daughter
at home is in a decline. I am going to see my daughter at last,
and it is my only concern lest I should have delayed too long.
She is ill, and very ill, - at death’s door. Nothing is
left me but my daughter, my Emperor, and my honour; and I give my honour,
blame me for it who dare!’
At this my heart smote me.
‘For God’s sake,’ I cried, ‘think no more of
what I have said! A parole? what is a parole against life and
death and love? I ask your pardon; this gentleman’s also.
As long as I shall be with you, you shall not have cause to complain
of me again. I pray God you will find your daughter alive and
restored.’
‘That is past praying for,’ said the Colonel; and immediately
the brief fire died out of him, and, returning to the hearth, he relapsed
into his former abstraction.
But I was not so easy to compose. The knowledge of the poor gentleman’s
trouble, and the sight of his face, had filled me with the bitterness
of remorse; and I insisted upon shaking hands with the Major (which
he did with a very ill grace), and abounded in palinodes and apologies.
‘After all,’ said I, ‘who am I to talk? I am
in the luck to be a private soldier; I have no parole to give or to
keep; once I am over the rampart, I am as free as air. I beg you
to believe that I regret from my soul the use of these ungenerous expressions.
Allow me . . . Is there no way in this damned house to attract attention?
Where is this fellow, Fenn?’
I ran to one of the windows and threw it open. Fenn, who was at
the moment passing below in the court, cast up his arms like one in
despair, called to me to keep back, plunged into the house, and appeared
next moment in the doorway of the chamber.
‘Oh, sir!’ says he, ‘keep away from those there windows.
A body might see you from the back lane.’
‘It is registered,’ said I. ‘Henceforward I
will be a mouse for precaution and a ghost for invisibility. But
in the meantime, for God’s sake, fetch us a bottle of brandy!
Your room is as damp as the bottom of a well, and these gentlemen are
perishing of cold.’
So soon as I had paid him (for everything, I found, must be paid in
advance), I turned my attention to the fire, and whether because I threw
greater energy into the business, or because the coals were now warmed
and the time ripe, I soon started a blaze that made the chimney roar
again. The shine of it, in that dark, rainy day, seemed to reanimate
the Colonel like a blink of sun. With the outburst of the flames,
besides, a draught was established, which immediately delivered us from
the plague of smoke; and by the time Fenn returned, carrying a bottle
under his arm and a single tumbler in his hand, there was already an
air of gaiety in the room that did the heart good.
I poured out some of the brandy.
‘Colonel,’ said I, ‘I am a young man and a private
soldier. I have not been long in this room, and already I have
shown the petulance that belongs to the one character and the ill manners
that you may look for in the other. Have the humanity to pass
these slips over, and honour me so far as to accept this glass.’
‘My lad,’ says he, waking up and blinking at me with an
air of suspicion, ‘are you sure you can afford it?’
I assured him I could.
‘I thank you, then: I am very cold.’ He took the glass
out, and a little colour came in his face. ‘I thank you
again,’ said he. ‘It goes to the heart.’
The Major, when I motioned him to help himself, did so with a good deal
of liberality; continued to do so for the rest of the morning, now with
some sort of apology, now with none at all; and the bottle began to
look foolish before dinner was served. It was such a meal as he
had himself predicted: beef, greens, potatoes, mustard in a teacup,
and beer in a brown jug that was all over hounds, horses, and hunters,
with a fox at the fat end and a gigantic John Bull - for all the world
like Fenn - sitting in the midst in a bob-wig and smoking tobacco.
The beer was a good brew, but not good enough for the Major; he laced
it with brandy - for his cold, he said; and in this curative design
the remainder of the bottle ebbed away. He called my attention
repeatedly to the circumstance; helped me pointedly to the dregs, threw
the bottle in the air and played tricks with it; and at last, having
exhausted his ingenuity, and seeing me remain quite blind to every hint,
he ordered and paid for another himself.
As for the Colonel, he ate nothing, sat sunk in a muse, and only awoke
occasionally to a sense of where he was, and what he was supposed to
be doing. On each of these occasions he showed a gratitude and
kind courtesy that endeared him to me beyond expression. ‘Champdivers,
my lad, your health!’ he would say. ‘The Major and
I had a very arduous march last night, and I positively thought I should
have eaten nothing, but your fortunate idea of the brandy has made quite
a new man of me - quite a new man.’ And he would fall to
with a great air of heartiness, cut himself a mouthful, and, before
he had swallowed it, would have forgotten his dinner, his company, the
place where he then was, and the escape he was engaged on, and become
absorbed in the vision of a sick-room and a dying girl in France.
The pathos of this continual preoccupation, in a man so old, sick, and
over-weary, and whom I looked upon as a mere bundle of dying bones and
death-pains, put me wholly from my victuals: it seemed there was an
element of sin, a kind of rude bravado of youth, in the mere relishing
of food at the same table with this tragic father; and though I was
well enough used to the coarse, plain diet of the English, I ate scarce
more than himself. Dinner was hardly over before he succumbed
to a lethargic sleep; lying on one of the mattresses with his limbs
relaxed, and his breath seemingly suspended - the very image of dissolution.
This left the Major and myself alone at the table. You must not
suppose our tête-à-tête was long, but it was
a lively period while it lasted. He drank like a fish or an Englishman;
shouted, beat the table, roared out songs, quarrelled, made it up again,
and at last tried to throw the dinner-plates through the window, a feat
of which he was at that time quite incapable. For a party of fugitives,
condemned to the most rigorous discretion, there was never seen so noisy
a carnival; and through it all the Colonel continued to sleep like a
child. Seeing the Major so well advanced, and no retreat possible,
I made a fair wind of a foul one, keeping his glass full, pushing him
with toasts; and sooner than I could have dared to hope, he became drowsy
and incoherent. With the wrong-headedness of all such sots, he
would not be persuaded to lie down upon one of the mattresses until
I had stretched myself upon another. But the comedy was soon over;
soon he slept the sleep of the just, and snored like a military music;
and I might get up again and face (as best I could) the excessive tedium
of the afternoon.
I had passed the night before in a good bed; I was denied the resource
of slumber; and there was nothing open for me but to pace the apartment,
maintain the fire, and brood on my position. I compared yesterday
and to-day - the safety, comfort, jollity, open-air exercise and pleasant
roadside inns of the one, with the tedium, anxiety, and discomfort of
the other. I remembered that I was in the hands of Fenn, who could
not be more false - though he might be more vindictive - than I fancied
him. I looked forward to nights of pitching in the covered cart,
and days of monotony in I knew not what hiding-places; and my heart
failed me, and I was in two minds whether to slink off ere it was too
late, and return to my former solitary way of travel. But the
Colonel stood in the path. I had not seen much of him; but already
I judged him a man of a childlike nature - with that sort of innocence
and courtesy that, I think, is only to be found in old soldiers or old
priests - and broken with years and sorrow. I could not turn my
back on his distress; could not leave him alone with the selfish trooper
who snored on the next mattress. ‘Champdivers, my lad, your
health!’ said a voice in my ear, and stopped me - and there are
few things I am more glad of in the retrospect than that it did.
It must have been about four in the afternoon - at least the rain had
taken off, and the sun was setting with some wintry pomp - when the
current of my reflections was effectually changed by the arrival of
two visitors in a gig. They were farmers of the neighbourhood,
I suppose - big, burly fellows in great-coats and top-boots, mightily
flushed with liquor when they arrived, and, before they left, inimitably
drunk. They stayed long in the kitchen with Burchell, drinking,
shouting, singing, and keeping it up; and the sound of their merry minstrelsy
kept me a kind of company. The night fell, and the shine of the
fire brightened and blinked on the panelled wall. Our illuminated
windows must have been visible not only from the back lane of which
Fenn had spoken, but from the court where the farmers’ gig awaited
them. In the far end of the firelit room lay my companions, the
one silent, the other clamorously noisy, the images of death and drunkenness.
Little wonder if I were tempted to join in the choruses below, and sometimes
could hardly refrain from laughter, and sometimes, I believe, from tears
- so unmitigated was the tedium, so cruel the suspense, of this period.
At last, about six at night, I should fancy, the noisy minstrels appeared
in the court, headed by Fenn with a lantern, and knocking together as
they came. The visitors clambered noisily into the gig, one of
them shook the reins, and they were snatched out of sight and hearing
with a suddenness that partook of the nature of prodigy. I am
well aware there is a Providence for drunken men, that holds the reins
for them and presides over their troubles; doubtless he had his work
cut out for him with this particular gigful! Fenn rescued his
toes with an ejaculation from under the departing wheels, and turned
at once with uncertain steps and devious lantern to the far end of the
court. There, through the open doors of a coach-house, the shock-headed
lad was already to be seen drawing forth the covered cart. If
I wished any private talk with our host, it must be now or never.
Accordingly I groped my way downstairs, and came to him as he looked
on at and lighted the harnessing of the horses.
‘The hour approaches when we have to part,’ said I; ‘and
I shall be obliged if you will tell your servant to drop me at the nearest
point for Dunstable. I am determined to go so far with our friends,
Colonel X and Major Y, but my business is peremptory, and it takes me
to the neighbourhood of Dunstable.’
Orders were given to my satisfaction, with an obsequiousness that seemed
only inflamed by his potations.
CHAPTER XIV - TRAVELS OF THE COVERED CART
My companions were aroused with difficulty: the Colonel, poor old gentleman,
to a sort of permanent dream, in which you could say of him only that
he was very deaf and anxiously polite; the Major still maudlin drunk.
We had a dish of tea by the fireside, and then issued like criminals
into the scathing cold of the night. For the weather had in the
meantime changed. Upon the cessation of the rain, a strict frost
had succeeded. The moon, being young, was already near the zenith
when we started, glittered everywhere on sheets of ice, and sparkled
in ten thousand icicles. A more unpromising night for a journey
it was hard to conceive. But in the course of the afternoon the
horses had been well roughed; and King (for such was the name of the
shock-headed lad) was very positive that he could drive us without misadventure.
He was as good as his word; indeed, despite a gawky air, he was simply
invaluable in his present employment, showing marked sagacity in all
that concerned the care of horses, and guiding us by one short cut after
another for days, and without a fault.
The interior of that engine of torture, the covered cart, was fitted
with a bench, on which we took our places; the door was shut; in a moment,
the night closed upon us solid and stifling; and we felt that we were
being driven carefully out of the courtyard. Careful was the word
all night, and it was an alleviation of our miseries that we did not
often enjoy. In general, as we were driven the better part of
the night and day, often at a pretty quick pace and always through a
labyrinth of the most infamous country lanes and by-roads, we were so
bruised upon the bench, so dashed against the top and sides of the cart,
that we reached the end of a stage in truly pitiable case, sometimes
flung ourselves down without the formality of eating, made but one sleep
of it until the hour of departure returned, and were only properly awakened
by the first jolt of the renewed journey. There were interruptions,
at times, that we hailed as alleviations. At times the cart was
bogged, once it was upset, and we must alight and lend the driver the
assistance of our arms; at times, too (as on the occasion when I had
first encountered it), the horses gave out, and we had to trail alongside
in mud or frost until the first peep of daylight, or the approach to
a hamlet or a high road, bade us disappear like ghosts into our prison.
The main roads of England are incomparable for excellence, of a beautiful
smoothness, very ingeniously laid down, and so well kept that in most
weathers you could take your dinner off any part of them without distaste.
On them, to the note of the bugle, the mail did its sixty miles a day;
innumerable chaises whisked after the bobbing postboys; or some young
blood would flit by in a curricle and tandem, to the vast delight and
danger of the lieges. On them, the slow-pacing waggons made a
music of bells, and all day long the travellers on horse-back and the
travellers on foot (like happy Mr. St. Ives so little a while before!)
kept coming and going, and baiting and gaping at each other, as though
a fair were due, and they were gathering to it from all England.
No, nowhere in the world is travel so great a pleasure as in that country.
But unhappily our one need was to be secret; and all this rapid and
animated picture of the road swept quite apart from us, as we lumbered
up hill and down dale, under hedge and over stone, among circuitous
byways. Only twice did I receive, as it were, a whiff of the highway.
The first reached my ears alone. I might have been anywhere.
I only knew I was walking in the dark night and among ruts, when I heard
very far off, over the silent country that surrounded us, the guard’s
horn wailing its signal to the next post-house for a change of horses.
It was like the voice of the day heard in darkness, a voice of the world
heard in prison, the note of a cock crowing in the mid-seas - in short,
I cannot tell you what it was like, you will have to fancy for yourself
- but I could have wept to hear it. Once we were belated: the
cattle could hardly crawl, the day was at hand, it was a nipping, rigorous
morning, King was lashing his horses, I was giving an arm to the old
Colonel, and the Major was coughing in our rear. I must suppose
that King was a thought careless, being nearly in desperation about
his team, and, in spite of the cold morning, breathing hot with his
exertions. We came, at last, a little before sunrise to the summit
of a hill, and saw the high-road passing at right angles through an
open country of meadows and hedgerow pollards; and not only the York
mail, speeding smoothly at the gallop of the four horses, but a post-chaise
besides, with the post-boy titupping briskly, and the traveller himself
putting his head out of the window, but whether to breathe the dawn,
or the better to observe the passage of the mail, I do not know.
So that we enjoyed for an instant a picture of free life on the road,
in its most luxurious forms of despatch and comfort. And thereafter,
with a poignant feeling of contrast in our hearts, we must mount again
into our wheeled dungeon.
We came to our stages at all sorts of odd hours, and they were in all
kinds of odd places. I may say at once that my first experience
was my best. Nowhere again were we so well entertained as at Burchell
Fenn’s. And this, I suppose, was natural, and indeed inevitable,
in so long and secret a journey. The first stop, we lay six hours
in a barn standing by itself in a poor, marshy orchard, and packed with
hay; to make it more attractive, we were told it had been the scene
of an abominable murder, and was now haunted. But the day was
beginning to break, and our fatigue was too extreme for visionary terrors.
The second or third, we alighted on a barren heath about midnight, built
a fire to warm us under the shelter of some thorns, supped like beggars
on bread and a piece of cold bacon, and slept like gipsies with our
feet to the fire. In the meanwhile, King was gone with the cart,
I know not where, to get a change of horses, and it was late in the
dark morning when he returned and we were able to resume our journey.
In the middle of another night, we came to a stop by an ancient, whitewashed
cottage of two stories; a privet hedge surrounded it; the frosty moon
shone blankly on the upper windows; but through those of the kitchen
the firelight was seen glinting on the roof and reflected from the dishes
on the wall. Here, after much hammering on the door, King managed
to arouse an old crone from the chimney-corner chair, where she had
been dozing in the watch; and we were had in, and entertained with a
dish of hot tea. This old lady was an aunt of Burchell Fenn’s
- and an unwilling partner in his dangerous trade. Though the
house stood solitary, and the hour was an unlikely one for any passenger
upon the road, King and she conversed in whispers only. There
was something dismal, something of the sick-room, in this perpetual,
guarded sibilation. The apprehensions of our hostess insensibly
communicated themselves to every one present. We ate like mice
in a cat’s ear; if one of us jingled a teaspoon, all would start;
and when the hour came to take the road again, we drew a long breath
of relief, and climbed to our places in the covered cart with a positive
sense of escape. The most of our meals, however, were taken boldly
at hedgerow alehouses, usually at untimely hours of the day, when the
clients were in the field or the farmyard at labour. I shall have
to tell presently of our last experience of the sort, and how unfortunately
it miscarried; but as that was the signal for my separation from my
fellow-travellers, I must first finish with them.
I had never any occasion to waver in my first judgment of the Colonel.
The old gentleman seemed to me, and still seems in the retrospect, the
salt of the earth. I had occasion to see him in the extremes of
hardship, hunger and cold; he was dying, and he looked it; and yet I
cannot remember any hasty, harsh, or impatient word to have fallen from
his lips. On the contrary, he ever showed himself careful to please;
and even if he rambled in his talk, rambled always gently - like a humane,
half-witted old hero, true to his colours to the last. I would
not dare to say how often he awoke suddenly from a lethargy, and told
us again, as though we had never heard it, the story of how he had earned
the cross, how it had been given him by the hand of the Emperor, and
of the innocent - and, indeed, foolish - sayings of his daughter when
he returned with it on his bosom. He had another anecdote which
he was very apt to give, by way of a rebuke, when the Major wearied
us beyond endurance with dispraises of the English. This was an
account of the braves gens with whom he had been boarding.
True enough, he was a man so simple and grateful by nature, that the
most common civilities were able to touch him to the heart, and would
remain written in his memory; but from a thousand inconsiderable but
conclusive indications, I gathered that this family had really loved
him, and loaded him with kindness. They made a fire in his bedroom,
which the sons and daughters tended with their own hands; letters from
France were looked for with scarce more eagerness by himself than by
these alien sympathisers; when they came, he would read them aloud in
the parlour to the assembled family, translating as he went. The
Colonel’s English was elementary; his daughter not in the least
likely to be an amusing correspondent; and, as I conceived these scenes
in the parlour, I felt sure the interest centred in the Colonel himself,
and I thought I could feel in my own heart that mixture of the ridiculous
and the pathetic, the contest of tears and laughter, which must have
shaken the bosoms of the family. Their kindness had continued
till the end. It appears they were privy to his flight, the camlet
cloak had been lined expressly for him, and he was the bearer of a letter
from the daughter of the house to his own daughter in Paris. The
last evening, when the time came to say good-night, it was tacitly known
to all that they were to look upon his face no more. He rose,
pleading fatigue, and turned to the daughter, who had been his chief
ally: ‘You will permit me, my dear - to an old and very unhappy
soldier - and may God bless you for your goodness!’ The
girl threw her arms about his neck and sobbed upon his bosom; the lady
of the house burst into tears; ‘et je vous le jure, le père
se mouchait!’ quoth the Colonel, twisting his moustaches with
a cavalry air, and at the same time blinking the water from his eyes
at the mere recollection.
It was a good thought to me that he had found these friends in captivity;
that he had started on this fatal journey from so cordial a farewell.
He had broken his parole for his daughter: that he should ever live
to reach her sick-bed, that he could continue to endure to an end the
hardships, the crushing fatigue, the savage cold, of our pilgrimage,
I had early ceased to hope. I did for him what I was able, - nursed
him, kept him covered, watched over his slumbers, sometimes held him
in my arms at the rough places of the road. ‘Champdivers,’
he once said, ‘you are like a son to me - like a son.’
It is good to remember, though at the time it put me on the rack.
All was to no purpose. Fast as we were travelling towards France,
he was travelling faster still to another destination. Daily he
grew weaker and more indifferent. An old rustic accent of Lower
Normandy reappeared in his speech, from which it had long been banished,
and grew stronger; old words of the patois, too: Ouistreham,
matrassé, and others, the sense of which we were sometimes
unable to guess. On the very last day he began again his eternal
story of the cross and the Emperor. The Major, who was particularly
ill, or at least particularly cross, uttered some angry words of protest.
‘Pardonnez-moi, monsieur le commandant, mais c’est pour
monsieur,’ said the Colonel: ‘Monsieur has not yet heard
the circumstance, and is good enough to feel an interest.’
Presently after, however, he began to lose the thread of his narrative;
and at last: ‘Qué que j’ai? Je m’embrouille!’
says he, ‘Suffit: s’m’a la donné, et Berthe
en était bien contente.’ It struck me as the
falling of the curtain or the closing of the sepulchre doors.
Sure enough, in but a little while after, he fell into a sleep as gentle
as an infant’s, which insensibly changed into the sleep of death.
I had my arm about his body at the time and remarked nothing, unless
it were that he once stretched himself a little, so kindly the end came
to that disastrous life. It was only at our evening halt that
the Major and I discovered we were travelling alone with the poor clay.
That night we stole a spade from a field - I think near Market Bosworth
- and a little farther on, in a wood of young oak trees and by the light
of King’s lantern, we buried the old soldier of the Empire with
both prayers and tears.
We had needs invent Heaven if it had not been revealed to us; there
are some things that fall so bitterly ill on this side Time! As
for the Major, I have long since forgiven him. He broke the news
to the poor Colonel’s daughter; I am told he did it kindly; and
sure, nobody could have done it without tears! His share of purgatory
will be brief; and in this world, as I could not very well praise him,
I have suppressed his name. The Colonel’s also, for the
sake of his parole. Requiescat.
CHAPTER XV - THE ADVENTURE OF THE ATTORNEY’S CLERK
I have mentioned our usual course, which was to eat in inconsiderable
wayside hostelries, known to King. It was a dangerous business;
we went daily under fire to satisfy our appetite, and put our head in
the loin’s mouth for a piece of bread. Sometimes, to minimise
the risk, we would all dismount before we came in view of the house,
straggle in severally, and give what orders we pleased, like disconnected
strangers. In like manner we departed, to find the cart at an
appointed place, some half a mile beyond. The Colonel and the
Major had each a word or two of English - God help their pronunciation!
But they did well enough to order a rasher and a pot or call a reckoning;
and, to say truth, these country folks did not give themselves the pains,
and had scarce the knowledge, to be critical.
About nine or ten at night the pains of hunger and cold drove us to
an alehouse in the flats of Bedfordshire, not far from Bedford itself.
In the inn kitchen was a long, lean, characteristic-looking fellow of
perhaps forty, dressed in black. He sat on a settle by the fireside,
smoking a long pipe, such as they call a yard of clay. His hat
and wig were hanged upon the knob behind him, his head as bald as a
bladder of lard, and his expression very shrewd, cantankerous, and inquisitive.
He seemed to value himself above his company, to give himself the airs
of a man of the world among that rustic herd; which was often no more
than his due; being, as I afterwards discovered, an attorney’s
clerk. I took upon myself the more ungrateful part of arriving
last; and by the time I entered on the scene the Major was already served
at a side table. Some general conversation must have passed, and
I smelled danger in the air. The Major looked flustered, the attorney’s
clerk triumphant, and three or four peasants in smock-frocks (who sat
about the fire to play chorus) had let their pipes go out.
‘Give you good evening, sir!’ said the attorney’s
clerk to me.
‘The same to you, sir,’ said I.
‘I think this one will do,’ quoth the clerk to the yokels
with a wink; and then, as soon as I had given my order, ‘Pray,
sir, whither are you bound?’ he added.
‘Sir,’ said I, ‘I am not one of those who speak either
of their business or their destination in houses of public entertainment.’
‘A good answer,’ said he, ‘and an excellent principle.
Sir, do you speak French?’
‘Why, no, sir,’ said I. ‘A little Spanish at
your service.’
‘But you know the French accent, perhaps?’ said the clerk.
‘Well do I do that!’ said I. ‘The French accent?
Why, I believe I can tell a Frenchman in ten words.’
‘Here is a puzzle for you, then!’ he said. ‘I
have no material doubt myself, but some of these gentlemen are more
backward. The lack of education, you know. I make bold to
say that a man cannot walk, cannot hear, and cannot see, without the
blessings of education.’
He turned to the Major, whose food plainly stuck in his throat.
‘Now, sir,’ pursued the clerk, ‘let me have the pleasure
to hear your voice again. Where are you going, did you say?’
‘Sare, I am go-ing to Lon-don,’ said the Major.
I could have flung my plate at him to be such an ass, and to have so
little a gift of languages where that was the essential.
‘What think ye of that?’ said the clerk. ‘Is
that French enough?’
‘Good God!’ cried I, leaping up like one who should suddenly
perceive an acquaintance, ‘is this you, Mr. Dubois? Why,
who would have dreamed of encountering you so far from home?’
As I spoke, I shook hands with the Major heartily; and turning to our
tormentor, ‘Oh, sir, you may be perfectly reassured! This
is a very honest fellow, a late neighbour of mine in the city of Carlisle.’
I thought the attorney looked put out; I little knew the man!
‘But he is French,’ said he, ‘for all that?’
‘Ay, to be sure!’ said I. ‘A Frenchman of the
emigration! None of your Buonaparte lot. I will warrant
his views of politics to be as sound as your own.’
‘What is a little strange,’ said the clerk quietly, ‘is
that Mr. Dubois should deny it.’
I got it fair in the face, and took it smiling; but the shock was rude,
and in the course of the next words I contrived to do what I have rarely
done, and make a slip in my English. I kept my liberty and life
by my proficiency all these months, and for once that I failed, it is
not to be supposed that I would make a public exhibition of the details.
Enough, that it was a very little error, and one that might have passed
ninety-nine times in a hundred. But my limb of the law was as
swift to pick it up as though he had been by trade a master of languages.
‘Aha!’ cries he; ‘and you are French, too! Your
tongue bewrays you. Two Frenchmen coming into an alehouse, severally
and accidentally, not knowing each other, at ten of the clock at night,
in the middle of Bedfordshire? No, sir, that shall not pass!
You are all prisoners escaping, if you are nothing worse. Consider
yourselves under arrest. I have to trouble you for your papers.’
‘Where is your warrant, if you come to that?’ said I.
‘My papers! A likely thing that I would show my papers on
the ipse dixit of an unknown fellow in a hedge alehouse!’
‘Would you resist the law?’ says he.
‘Not the law, sir!’ said I. ‘I hope I am too
good a subject for that. But for a nameless fellow with a bald
head and a pair of gingham small-clothes, why certainly! ’Tis
my birthright as an Englishman. Where’s Magna Charta,
else?’
‘We will see about that,’ says he; and then, addressing
the assistants, ‘where does the constable live?’
‘Lord love you, sir!’ cried the landlord, ‘what are
you thinking of? The constable at past ten at night! Why,
he’s abed and asleep, and good and drunk two hours agone!’
‘Ah that a’ be!’ came in chorus from the yokels.
The attorney’s clerk was put to a stand. He could not think
of force; there was little sign of martial ardour about the landlord,
and the peasants were indifferent - they only listened, and gaped, and
now scratched a head, and now would get a light to their pipes from
the embers on the hearth. On the other hand, the Major and I put
a bold front on the business and defied him, not without some ground
of law. In this state of matters he proposed I should go along
with him to one Squire Merton, a great man of the neighbourhood, who
was in the commission of the peace, the end of his avenue but three
lanes away. I told him I would not stir a foot for him if it were
to save his soul. Next he proposed I should stay all night where
I was, and the constable could see to my affair in the morning, when
he was sober. I replied I should go when and where I pleased;
that we were lawful travellers in the fear of God and the king, and
I for one would suffer myself to be stayed by nobody. At the same
time, I was thinking the matter had lasted altogether too long, and
I determined to bring it to an end at once.
‘See here,’ said I, getting up, for till now I had remained
carelessly seated, ‘there’s only one way to decide a thing
like this - only one way that’s right English - and that’s
man to man. Take off your coat, sir, and these gentlemen shall
see fair play.’ At this there came a look in his eye that
I could not mistake. His education had been neglected in one essential
and eminently British particular: he could not box. No more could
I, you may say; but then I had the more impudence - and I had made the
proposal.
‘He says I’m no Englishman, but the proof of the pudding
is the eating of it,’ I continued. And here I stripped my
coat and fell into the proper attitude, which was just about all I knew
of this barbarian art. ‘Why, sir, you seem to me to hang
back a little,’ said I. ‘Come, I’ll meet you;
I’ll give you an appetiser - though hang me if I can understand
the man that wants any enticement to hold up his hands.’
I drew a bank-note out of my fob and tossed it to the landlord.
‘There are the stakes,’ said I. ‘I’ll
fight you for first blood, since you seem to make so much work about
it. If you tap my claret first, there are five guineas for you,
and I’ll go with you to any squire you choose to mention.
If I tap yours, you’ll perhaps let on that I’m the better
man, and allow me to go about my lawful business at my own time and
convenience, by God; is that fair, my lads?’ says I, appealing
to the company.
‘Ay, ay,’ said the chorus of chawbacons; ‘he can’t
say no fairer nor that, he can’t. Take off thy coat master!’
The limb of the law was now on the wrong side of public opinion, and,
what heartened me to go on, the position was rapidly changing in our
favour. Already the Major was paying his shot to the very indifferent
landlord, and I could see the white face of King at the back-door, making
signals of haste.
‘Oho!’ quoth my enemy, ‘you are as full of doubles
as a fox, are you not? But I see through you; I see through and
through you. You would change the venue, would you?’
‘I may be transparent, sir,’ says I, ‘but if you’ll
do me the favour to stand up, you’ll find I can hit dam hard.’
‘Which is a point, if you will observe, that I had never called
in question,’ said he. ‘Why, you ignorant clowns,’
he proceeded, addressing the company, ‘can’t you see the
fellow’s gulling you before your eyes? Can’t you see
that he has changed the point upon me? I say he’s a French
prisoner, and he answers that he can box! What has that to do
with it? I would not wonder but what he can dance, too - they’re
all dancing masters over there. I say, and I stick to it, that
he’s a Frenchy. He says he isn’t. Well then,
let him out with his papers, if he has them! If he had, would
he not show them? If he had, would he not jump at the idea of
going to Squire Merton, a man you all know? Now, you are all plain,
straightforward Bedfordshire men, and I wouldn’t ask a better
lot to appeal to. You’re not the kind to be talked over
with any French gammon, and he’s plenty of that. But let
me tell him, he can take his pigs to another market; they’ll never
do here; they’ll never go down in Bedfordshire. Why! look
at the man! Look at his feet! Has anybody got a foot in
the room like that? See how he stands! do any of you fellows stand
like that? Does the landlord, there? Why, he has Frenchman
wrote all over him, as big as a sign-post!’
This was all very well; and in a different scene I might even have been
gratified by his remarks; but I saw clearly, if I were to allow him
to talk, he might turn the tables on me altogether. He might not
be much of a hand at boxing; but I was much mistaken, or he had studied
forensic eloquence in a good school. In this predicament I could
think of nothing more ingenious than to burst out of the house, under
the pretext of an ungovernable rage. It was certainly not very
ingenious - it was elementary, but I had no choice.
‘You white-livered dog!’ I broke out. ‘Do you
dare to tell me you’re an Englishman, and won’t fight?
But I’ll stand no more of this! I leave this place, where
I’ve been insulted! Here! what’s to pay? Pay
yourself!’ I went on, offering the landlord a handful of silver,
‘and give me back my bank-note!’
The landlord, following his usual policy of obliging everybody, offered
no opposition to my design. The position of my adversary was now
thoroughly bad. He had lost my two companions. He was on
the point of losing me also. There was plainly no hope of arousing
the company to help; and watching him with a corner of my eye, I saw
him hesitate for a moment. The next, he had taken down his hat
and his wig, which was of black horsehair; and I saw him draw from behind
the settle a vast hooded great-coat and a small valise. ‘The
devil!’ thought I: ‘is the rascal going to follow me?’
I was scarce clear of the inn before the limb of the law was at my heels.
I saw his face plain in the moonlight; and the most resolute purpose
showed in it, along with an unmoved composure. A chill went over
me. ‘This is no common adventure,’ thinks I to myself.
‘You have got hold of a man of character, St. Ives! A bite-hard,
a bull-dog, a weasel is on your trail; and how are you to throw him
off?’ Who was he? By some of his expressions I judged
he was a hanger-on of courts. But in what character had he followed
the assizes? As a simple spectator, as a lawyer’s clerk,
as a criminal himself, or - last and worst supposition - as a Bow-street
‘runner’?
The cart would wait for me, perhaps, half a mile down our onward road,
which I was already following. And I told myself that in a few
minutes’ walking, Bow-street runner or not, I should have him
at my mercy. And then reflection came to me in time. Of
all things, one was out of the question. Upon no account must
this obtrusive fellow see the cart. Until I had killed or shook
him off, I was quite divorced from my companions - alone, in the midst
of England, on a frosty by-way leading whither I knew not, with a sleuth-hound
at my heels, and never a friend but the holly-stick!
We came at the same time to a crossing of lanes. The branch to
the left was overhung with trees, deeply sunken and dark. Not
a ray of moonlight penetrated its recesses; and I took it at a venture.
The wretch followed my example in silence; and for some time we crunched
together over frozen pools without a word. Then he found his voice,
with a chuckle.
‘This is not the way to Mr. Merton’s,’ said he.
‘No?’ said I. ‘It is mine, however.’
‘And therefore mine,’ said he.
Again we fell silent; and we may thus have covered half a mile before
the lane, taking a sudden turn, brought us forth again into the moonshine.
With his hooded great-coat on his back, his valise in his hand, his
black wig adjusted, and footing it on the ice with a sort of sober doggedness
of manner, my enemy was changed almost beyond recognition: changed in
everything but a certain dry, polemical, pedantic air, that spoke of
a sedentary occupation and high stools. I observed, too, that
his valise was heavy; and, putting this and that together, hit upon
a plan.
‘A seasonable night, sir,’ said I. ‘What do
you say to a bit of running? The frost has me by the toes.’
‘With all the pleasure in life,’ says he.
His voice seemed well assured, which pleased me little. However,
there was nothing else to try, except violence, for which it would always
be too soon. I took to my heels accordingly, he after me; and
for some time the slapping of our feet on the hard road might have been
heard a mile away. He had started a pace behind me, and he finished
in the same position. For all his extra years and the weight of
his valise, he had not lost a hair’s breadth. The devil
might race him for me - I had enough of it!
And, besides, to run so fast was contrary to my interests. We
could not run long without arriving somewhere. At any moment we
might turn a corner and find ourselves at the lodge-gate of some Squire
Merton, in the midst of a village whose constable was sober, or in the
hands of a patrol. There was no help for it - I must finish with
him on the spot, as long as it was possible. I looked about me,
and the place seemed suitable; never a light, never a house - nothing
but stubble-fields, fallows, and a few stunted trees. I stopped
and eyed him in the moonlight with an angry stare.
‘Enough of this foolery!’ said I.
He had tamed, and now faced me full, very pale, but with no sign of
shrinking.
‘I am quite of your opinion,’ said he. ‘You
have tried me at the running; you can try me next at the high jump.
It will be all the same. It must end the one way.’
I made my holly whistle about my head.
‘I believe you know what way!’ said I. ‘We are
alone, it is night, and I am wholly resolved. Are you not frightened?’
‘No,’ he said, ‘not in the smallest. I do not
box, sir; but I am not a coward, as you may have supposed. Perhaps
it will simplify our relations if I tell you at the outset that I walk
armed.’
Quick as lightning I made a feint at his head; as quickly he gave ground,
and at the same time I saw a pistol glitter in his hand.
‘No more of that, Mr. French-Prisoner!’ he said. ‘It
will do me no good to have your death at my door.’
‘Faith, nor me either!’ said I; and I lowered my stick and
considered the man, not without a twinkle of admiration. ‘You
see,’ I said, ‘there is one consideration that you appear
to overlook: there are a great many chances that your pistol may miss
fire.’
‘I have a pair,’ he returned. ‘Never travel
without a brace of barkers.’
‘I make you my compliment,’ said I. ‘You are
able to take care of yourself, and that is a good trait. But,
my good man! let us look at this matter dispassionately. You are
not a coward, and no more am I; we are both men of excellent sense;
I have good reason, whatever it may be, to keep my concerns to myself
and to walk alone. Now I put it to you pointedly, am I likely
to stand it? Am I likely to put up with your continued and - excuse
me - highly impudent ingérence into my private affairs?’
‘Another French word,’ says he composedly.
‘Oh! damn your French words!’ cried I. ‘You
seem to be a Frenchman yourself!’
‘I have had many opportunities by which I have profited,’
he explained. ‘Few men are better acquainted with the similarities
and differences, whether of idiom or accent, of the two languages.’
‘You are a pompous fellow, too!’ said I.
‘Oh, I can make distinctions, sir,’ says he. ‘I
can talk with Bedfordshire peasants; and I can express myself becomingly,
I hope, in the company of a gentleman of education like yourself.’
‘If you set up to be a gentleman - ’ I began.
‘Pardon me,’ he interrupted: ‘I make no such claim.
I only see the nobility and gentry in the way of business. I am
quite a plain person.’
‘For the Lord’s sake,’ I exclaimed, ‘set my
mind at rest upon one point. In the name of mystery, who and what
are you?’
‘I have no cause to be ashamed of my name, sir,’ said he,
‘nor yet my trade. I am Thomas Dudgeon, at your service,
clerk to Mr. Daniel Romaine, solicitor of London; High Holborn is our
address, sir.’
It was only by the ecstasy of the relief that I knew how horribly I
had been frightened. I flung my stick on the road.
‘Romaine?’ I cried. ‘Daniel Romaine? An
old hunks with a red face and a big head, and got up like a Quaker?
My dear friend, to my arms!’
‘Keep back, I say!’ said Dudgeon weakly.
I would not listen to him. With the end of my own alarm, I felt
as if I must infallibly be at the end of all dangers likewise; as if
the pistol that he held in one hand were no more to be feared than the
valise that he carried with the other, and now put up like a barrier
against my advance.
‘Keep back, or I declare I will fire,’ he was crying.
‘Have a care, for God’s sake! My pistol - ’
He might scream as be pleased. Willy nilly, I folded him to my
breast, I pressed him there, I kissed his ugly mug as it had never been
kissed before and would never be kissed again; and in the doing so knocked
his wig awry and his hat off. He bleated in my embrace; so bleats
the sheep in the arms of the butcher. The whole thing, on looking
back, appears incomparably reckless and absurd; I no better than a madman
for offering to advance on Dudgeon, and he no better than a fool for
not shooting me while I was about it. But all’s well that
ends well; or, as the people in these days kept singing and whistling
on the streets:-
‘There’s a sweet little cherub that sits up aloft
And looks out for the life of poor Jack.’
‘There!’ said I, releasing him a little, but still keeping
my hands on his shoulders, ‘je vous ai bel et bien embrassé
- and, as you would say, there is another French word.’
With his wig over one eye, he looked incredibly rueful and put out.
‘Cheer up, Dudgeon; the ordeal is over, you shall be embraced
no more. But do, first of all, for God’s-sake, put away
your pistol; you handle it as if you were a cockatrice; some time or
other, depend upon it, it will certainly go off. Here is your
hat. No, let me put it on square, and the wig before it.
Never suffer any stress of circumstances to come between you and the
duty you owe to yourself. If you have nobody else to dress for,
dress for God!
‘Put your wig straight
On your bald pate,
Keep your chin scraped,
And your figure draped.
Can you match me that? The whole duty of man in a quatrain!
And remark, I do not set up to be a professional bard; these are the
outpourings of a dilettante.’
‘But, my dear sir!’ he exclaimed.
‘But, my dear sir!’ I echoed, ‘I will allow no man
to interrupt the flow of my ideas. Give me your opinion on my
quatrain, or I vow we shall have a quarrel of it.’
‘Certainly you are quite an original,’ he said.
‘Quite,’ said I; ‘and I believe I have my counterpart
before me.’
‘Well, for a choice,’ says he, smiling, ‘and whether
for sense or poetry, give me
‘“Worth makes the man, and want of it the fellow:
The rest is all but leather and prunello.”’
‘Oh, but that’s not fair - that’s Pope! It’s
not original, Dudgeon. Understand me,’ said I, wringing
his breast-button, ‘the first duty of all poetry is to be mine,
sir - mine. Inspiration now swells in my bosom, because - to tell
you the plain truth, and descend a little in style - I am devilish relieved
at the turn things have taken. So, I dare say, are you yourself,
Dudgeon, if you would only allow it. And à propos,
let me ask you a home question. Between friends, have you ever
fired that pistol?’
‘Why, yes, sir,’ he replied. ‘Twice - at hedgesparrows.’
‘And you would have fired at me, you bloody-minded man?’
I cried.
‘If you go to that, you seemed mighty reckless with your stick,’
said Dudgeon.
‘Did I indeed? Well, well, ’tis all past history;
ancient as King Pharamond - which is another French word, if you cared
to accumulate more evidence,’ says I. ‘But happily
we are now the best of friends, and have all our interests in common.’
‘You go a little too fast, if you’ll excuse me, Mr. -: I
do not know your name, that I am aware,’ said Dudgeon.
‘No, to be sure!’ said I. ‘Never heard of it!’
‘A word of explanation - ’ he began.
‘No, Dudgeon!’ I interrupted. ‘Be practical;
I know what you want, and the name of it is supper. Rien ne
creuse comme l’emotion. I am hungry myself, and yet
I am more accustomed to warlike palpitations than you, who are but a
hunter of hedgesparrows. Let me look at your face critically:
your bill of fare is three slices of cold rare roast beef, a Welsh rabbit,
a pot of stout, and a glass or two of sound tawny port, old in bottle
- the right milk of Englishmen.’ Methought there seemed
a brightening in his eye and a melting about his mouth at this enumeration.
‘The night is young,’ I continued; ‘not much past
eleven, for a wager. Where can we find a good inn? And remark
that I say good, for the port must be up to the occasion - not
a headache in a pipe of it.’
‘Really, sir,’ he said, smiling a little, ‘you have
a way of carrying things - ’
‘Will nothing make you stick to the subject?’ I cried; ‘you
have the most irrelevant mind! How do you expect to rise in your
profession? The inn?’
‘Well, I will say you are a facetious gentleman!’ said he.
‘You must have your way, I see. We are not three miles from
Bedford by this very road.’
‘Done!’ cried I. ‘Bedford be it!’
I tucked his arm under mine, possessed myself of the valise, and walked
him off unresisting. Presently we came to an open piece of country
lying a thought downhill. The road was smooth and free of ice,
the moonshine thin and bright over the meadows and the leafless trees.
I was now honestly done with the purgatory of the covered cart; I was
close to my great-uncle’s; I had no more fear of Mr. Dudgeon;
which were all grounds enough for jollity. And I was aware, besides,
of us two as of a pair of tiny and solitary dolls under the vast frosty
cupola of the midnight; the rooms decked, the moon burnished, the least
of the stars lighted, the floor swept and waxed, and nothing wanting
but for the band to strike up and the dancing to begin. In the
exhilaration of my heart I took the music on myself -
‘Merrily danced the Quaker’s wife,
And merrily danced the Quaker.’
I broke into that animated and appropriate air, clapped my arm about
Dudgeon’s waist, and away down the hill at a dancing step!
He hung back a little at the start, but the impulse of the tune, the
night, and my example, were not to be resisted. A man made of
putty must have danced, and even Dudgeon showed himself to be a human
being. Higher and higher were the capers that we cut; the moon
repeated in shadow our antic footsteps and gestures; and it came over
my mind of a sudden - really like balm - what appearance of man I was
dancing with, what a long bilious countenance he had shown under his
shaven pate, and what a world of trouble the rascal had given me in
the immediate past.
Presently we began to see the lights of Bedford. My Puritanic
companion stopped and disengaged himself.
‘This is a trifle infra dig., sir, is it not?’ said
he. ‘A party might suppose we had been drinking.’
‘And so you shall be, Dudgeon,’ said I. ‘You
shall not only be drinking, you old hypocrite, but you shall be drunk
- dead drunk, sir - and the boots shall put you to bed! We’ll
warn him when we go in. Never neglect a precaution; never put
off till to-morrow what you can do to-day!’
But he had no more frivolity to complain of. We finished our stage
and came to the inn-door with decorum, to find the house still alight
and in a bustle with many late arrivals; to give our orders with a prompt
severity which ensured obedience, and to be served soon after at a side-table,
close to the fire and in a blaze of candle-light, with such a meal as
I had been dreaming of for days past. For days, you are to remember,
I had been skulking in the covered cart, a prey to cold, hunger, and
an accumulation of discomforts that might have daunted the most brave;
and the white table napery, the bright crystal, the reverberation of
the fire, the red curtains, the Turkey carpet, the portraits on the
coffee-room wall, the placid faces of the two or three late guests who
were silently prolonging the pleasures of digestion, and (last, but
not by any means least) a glass of an excellent light dry port, put
me in a humour only to be described as heavenly. The thought of
the Colonel, of how he would have enjoyed this snug room and roaring
fire, and of his cold grave in the wood by Market Bosworth, lingered
on my palate, amari aliquid, like an after-taste, but was not
able - I say it with shame - entirely to dispel my self-complacency.
After all, in this world every dog hangs by its own tail. I was
a free adventurer, who had just brought to a successful end - or, at
least, within view of it - an adventure very difficult and alarming;
and I looked across at Mr. Dudgeon, as the port rose to his cheeks,
and a smile, that was semi-confidential and a trifle foolish, began
to play upon his leathery features, not only with composure, but with
a suspicion of kindness. The rascal had been brave, a quality
for which I would value the devil; and if he had been pertinacious in
the beginning, he had more than made up for it before the end.
‘And now, Dudgeon, to explain,’ I began. ‘I
know your master, he knows me, and he knows and approves of my errand.
So much I may tell you, that I am on my way to Amersham Place.’
‘Oho!’ quoth Dudgeon, ‘I begin to see.’
‘I am heartily glad of it,’ said I, passing the bottle,
‘because that is about all I can tell you. You must take
my word for the remainder. Either believe me or don’t.
If you don’t, let’s take a chaise; you can carry me to-morrow
to High Holborn, and confront me with Mr. Romaine; the result of which
will be to set your mind at rest - and to make the holiest disorder
in your master’s plans. If I judge you aright (for I find
you a shrewd fellow), this will not be at all to your mind. You
know what a subordinate gets by officiousness; if I can trust my memory,
old Romaine has not at all the face that I should care to see in anger;
and I venture to predict surprising results upon your weekly salary
- if you are paid by the week, that is. In short, let me go free,
and ’tis an end of the matter; take me to London, and ’tis
only a beginning - and, by my opinion, a beginning of troubles.
You can take your choice.’
‘And that is soon taken,’ said he. ‘Go to Amersham
tomorrow, or go to the devil if you prefer - I wash my hands of you
and the whole transaction. No, you don’t find me putting
my head in between Romaine and a client! A good man of business,
sir, but hard as millstone grit. I might get the sack, and I shouldn’t
wonder! But, it’s a pity, too,’ he added, and sighed,
shook his head, and took his glass off sadly.
‘That reminds me,’ said I. ‘I have a great curiosity,
and you can satisfy it. Why were you so forward to meddle with
poor Mr. Dubois? Why did you transfer your attentions to me?
And generally, what induced you to make yourself such a nuisance?’
He blushed deeply.
‘Why, sir,’ says he, ‘there is such a thing as patriotism,
I hope.’
CHAPTER XVI - THE HOME-COMING OF MR. ROWLEY’S VISCOUNT
By eight the next morning Dudgeon and I had made our parting.
By that time we had grown to be extremely familiar; and I would very
willingly have kept him by me, and even carried him to Amersham Place.
But it appeared he was due at the public-house where we had met, on
some affairs of my great-uncle the Count, who had an outlying estate
in that part of the shire. If Dudgeon had had his way the night
before, I should have been arrested on my uncle’s land and by
my uncle’s agent, a culmination of ill-luck.
A little after noon I started, in a hired chaise, by way of Dunstable.
The mere mention of the name Amersham Place made every one supple and
smiling. It was plainly a great house, and my uncle lived there
in style. The fame of it rose as we approached, like a chain of
mountains; at Bedford they touched their caps, but in Dunstable they
crawled upon their bellies. I thought the landlady would have
kissed me; such a flutter of cordiality, such smiles, such affectionate
attentions were called forth, and the good lady bustled on my service
in such a pother of ringlets and with such a jingling of keys.
‘You’re probably expected, sir, at the Place? I do
trust you may ’ave better accounts of his lordship’s ’elth,
sir. We understood that his lordship, Mosha de Carwell, was main
bad. Ha, sir, we shall all feel his loss, poor, dear, noble gentleman;
and I’m sure nobody more polite! They do say, sir, his wealth
is enormous, and before the Revolution, quite a prince in his own country!
But I beg your pardon, sir; ’ow I do run on, to be sure; and doubtless
all beknown to you already! For you do resemble the family, sir.
I should have known you anywheres by the likeness to the dear viscount.
Ha, poor gentleman, he must ’ave a ’eavy ’eart these
days.’
In the same place I saw out of the inn-windows a man-servant passing
in the livery of my house, which you are to think I had never before
seen worn, or not that I could remember. I had often enough, indeed,
pictured myself advanced to be a Marshal, a Duke of the Empire, a Grand
Cross of the Legion of Honour, and some other kickshaws of the kind,
with a perfect rout of flunkeys correctly dressed in my own colours.
But it is one thing to imagine, and another to see; it would be one
thing to have these liveries in a house of my own in Paris - it was
quite another to find them flaunting in the heart of hostile England;
and I fear I should have made a fool of myself, if the man had not been
on the other side of the street, and I at a one-pane window. There
was something illusory in this transplantation of the wealth and honours
of a family, a thing by its nature so deeply rooted in the soil; something
ghostly in this sense of home-coming so far from home.
From Dunstable I rolled away into a crescendo of similar impressions.
There are certainly few things to be compared with these castles, or
rather country seats, of the English nobility and gentry; nor anything
at all to equal the servility of the population that dwells in their
neighbourhood. Though I was but driving in a hired chaise, word
of my destination seemed to have gone abroad, and the women curtseyed
and the men louted to me by the wayside. As I came near, I began
to appreciate the roots of this widespread respect. The look of
my uncle’s park wall, even from the outside, had something of
a princely character; and when I came in view of the house itself, a
sort of madness of vicarious vain-glory struck me dumb and kept me staring.
It was about the size of the Tuileries. It faced due north; and
the last rays of the sun, that was setting like a red-hot shot amidst
a tumultuous gathering of snow clouds, were reflected on the endless
rows of windows. A portico of Doric columns adorned the front,
and would have done honour to a temple. The servant who received
me at the door was civil to a fault - I had almost said, to offence;
and the hall to which he admitted me through a pair of glass doors was
warmed and already partly lighted by a liberal chimney heaped with the
roots of beeches.
‘Vicomte Anne de St. Yves,’ said I, in answer to the man’s
question; whereupon he bowed before me lower still, and stepping upon
one side introduced me to the truly awful presence of the major-domo.
I have seen many dignitaries in my time, but none who quite equalled
this eminent being; who was good enough to answer to the unassuming
name of Dawson. From him I learned that my uncle was extremely
low, a doctor in close attendance, Mr. Romaine expected at any moment,
and that my cousin, the Vicomte de St. Yves, had been sent for the same
morning.
‘It was a sudden seizure, then?’ I asked.
Well, he would scarcely go as far as that. It was a decline, a
fading away, sir; but he was certainly took bad the day before, had
sent for Mr. Romaine, and the major-domo had taken it on himself a little
later to send word to the Viscount. ‘It seemed to me, my
lord,’ said he, ‘as if this was a time when all the fambly
should be called together.’
I approved him with my lips, but not in my heart. Dawson was plainly
in the interests of my cousin.
‘And when can I expect to see my great-uncle, the Count?’
said I.
In the evening, I was told; in the meantime he would show me to my room,
which had been long prepared for me, and I should be expected to dine
in about an hour with the doctor, if my lordship had no objections.
My lordship had not the faintest.
‘At the same time,’ I said, ‘I have had an accident:
I have unhappily lost my baggage, and am here in what I stand in.
I don’t know if the doctor be a formalist, but it is quite impossible
I should appear at table as I ought.’
He begged me to be under no anxiety. ‘We have been long
expecting you,’ said he. ‘All is ready.’
Such I found to be the truth. A great room had been prepared for
me; through the mullioned windows the last flicker of the winter sunset
interchanged with the reverberation of a royal fire; the bed was open,
a suit of evening clothes was airing before the blaze, and from the
far corner a boy came forward with deprecatory smiles. The dream
in which I had been moving seemed to have reached its pitch. I
might have quitted this house and room only the night before; it was
my own place that I had come to; and for the first time in my life I
understood the force of the words home and welcome.
‘This will be all as you would want, sir?’ said Mr. Dawson.
‘This ’ere boy, Rowley, we place entirely at your disposition.
’E’s not exactly a trained vallet, but Mossho Powl, the
Viscount’s gentleman, ’ave give him the benefick of a few
lessons, and it is ’oped that he may give sitisfection.
Hanythink that you may require, if you will be so good as to mention
the same to Rowley, I will make it my business myself, sir, to see you
sitisfied.’
So saying, the eminent and already detested Mr. Dawson took his departure,
and I was left alone with Rowley. A man who may be said to have
wakened to consciousness in the prison of the Abbaye, among those ever
graceful and ever tragic figures of the brave and fair, awaiting the
hour of the guillotine and denuded of every comfort, I had never known
the luxuries or the amenities of my rank in life. To be attended
on by servants I had only been accustomed to in inns. My toilet
had long been military, to a moment, at the note of a bugle, too often
at a ditch-side. And it need not be wondered at if I looked on
my new valet with a certain diffidence. But I remembered that
if he was my first experience of a valet, I was his first trial as a
master. Cheered by which consideration, I demanded my bath in
a style of good assurance. There was a bathroom contiguous; in
an incredibly short space of time the hot water was ready; and soon
after, arrayed in a shawl dressing-gown, and in a luxury of contentment
and comfort, I was reclined in an easy-chair before the mirror, while
Rowley, with a mixture of pride and anxiety which I could well understand,
laid out his razors.
‘Hey, Rowley?’ I asked, not quite resigned to go under fire
with such an inexperienced commander. ‘It’s all right,
is it? You feel pretty sure of your weapons?’
‘Yes, my lord,’ he replied. ‘It’s all
right, I assure your lordship.’
‘I beg your pardon, Mr. Rowley, ‘but for the sake of shortness,
would you mind not belording me in private?’ said I. ‘It
will do very well if you call me Mr. Anne. It is the way of my
country, as I dare say you know.’
Mr. Rowley looked blank.
‘But you’re just as much a Viscount as Mr. Powl’s,
are you not?’ he said.
‘As Mr. Powl’s Viscount?’ said I, laughing.
‘Oh, keep your mind easy, Mr. Rowley’s is every bit as good.
Only, you see, as I am of the younger line, I bear my Christian name
along with the title. Alain is the Viscount; I am the Viscount
Anne. And in giving me the name of Mr. Anne, I assure you
you will be quite regular.’
‘Yes, Mr. Anne,’ said the docile youth. ‘But
about the shaving, sir, you need be under no alarm. Mr. Powl says
I ’ave excellent dispositions.’
‘Mr. Powl?’ said I. ‘That doesn’t seem
to me very like a French name.’
‘No, sir, indeed, my lord,’ said he, with a burst of confidence.
‘No, indeed, Mr. Anne, and it do not surely. I should say
now, it was more like Mr. Pole.’
‘And Mr. Powl is the Viscount’s man?’
‘Yes, Mr. Anne,’ said he. ‘He ’ave a hard
billet, he do. The Viscount is a very particular gentleman.
I don’t think as you’ll be, Mr. Anne?’ he added, with
a confidential smile in the mirror.
He was about sixteen, well set up, with a pleasant, merry, freckled
face, and a pair of dancing eyes. There was an air at once deprecatory
and insinuating about the rascal that I thought I recognised.
There came to me from my own boyhood memories of certain passionate
admirations long passed away, and the objects of them long ago discredited
or dead. I remembered how anxious I had been to serve those fleeting
heroes, how readily I told myself I would have died for them,
how much greater and handsomer than life they had appeared. And
looking in the mirror, it seemed to me that I read the face of Rowley,
like an echo or a ghost, by the light of my own youth. I have
always contended (somewhat against the opinion of my friends) that I
am first of all an economist; and the last thing that I would care to
throw away is that very valuable piece of property - a boy’s hero-worship.
‘Why,’ said I, ‘you shave like an angel, Mr. Rowley!’
‘Thank you, my lord,’ says he. ‘Mr. Powl had
no fear of me. You may be sure, sir, I should never ’ave had this
berth if I ’adn’t ’ave been up to Dick. We been
expecting of you this month back. My eye! I never see such
preparations. Every day the fires has been kep’ up, the
bed made, and all! As soon as it was known you were coming, sir,
I got the appointment; and I’ve been up and down since then like
a Jack-in-the-box. A wheel couldn’t sound in the avenue
but what I was at the window! I’ve had a many disappointments;
but to-night, as soon as you stepped out of the shay, I knew it was
my - it was you. Oh, you had been expected! Why, when I
go down to supper, I’ll be the ’ero of the servants’
’all: the ’ole of the staff is that curious!’
‘Well,’ said I, ‘I hope you may be able to give a
fair account of me - sober, steady, industrious, good-tempered, and
with a first-rate character from my last place?’
He laughed an embarrassed laugh. ‘Your hair curls beautiful,’
he said, by way of changing the subject. ‘The Viscount’s
the boy for curls, though; and the richness of it is, Mr. Powl tells
me his don’t curl no more than that much twine - by nature.
Gettin’ old, the Viscount is. He ’ave gone
the pace, ’aven’t ’e, sir?’
‘The fact is,’ said I, ‘that I know very little about
him. Our family has been much divided, and I have been a soldier
from a child.’
‘A soldier, Mr. Anne, sir?’ cried Rowley, with a sudden
feverish animation. ‘Was you ever wounded?’
It is contrary to my principles to discourage admiration for myself;
and, slipping back the shoulder of the dressing-gown, I silently exhibited
the scar which I had received in Edinburgh Castle. He looked at
it with awe.
‘Ah, well!’ he continued, ‘there’s where the
difference comes in! It’s in the training. The other
Viscount have been horse-racing, and dicing, and carrying on all his
life. All right enough, no doubt; but what I do say is, that it
don’t lead to nothink. Whereas - ’
‘Whereas Mr. Rowley’s?’ I put in.
‘My Viscount?’ said he. ‘Well, sir, I did
say it; and now that I’ve seen you, I say it again!’
I could not refrain from smiling at this outburst, and the rascal caught
me in the mirror and smiled to me again.
‘I’d say it again, Mr. Hanne,’ he said. ‘I
know which side my bread’s buttered. I know when a gen’leman’s
a gen’leman. Mr. Powl can go to Putney with his one!
Beg your pardon, Mr. Anne, for being so familiar,’ said he, blushing
suddenly scarlet. ‘I was especially warned against it by
Mr. Powl.’
‘Discipline before all,’ said I. ‘Follow your
front-rank man.
With that, we began to turn our attention to the clothes. I was
amazed to find them fit so well: not à la diable, in the
haphazard manner of a soldier’s uniform or a ready-made suit;
but with nicety, as a trained artist might rejoice to make them for
a favourite subject.
‘’Tis extraordinary,’ cried I: ‘these things
fit me perfectly.’
‘Indeed, Mr. Anne, you two be very much of a shape,’ said
Rowley.
‘Who? What two?’ said I.
‘The Viscount,’ he said.
‘Damnation! Have I the man’s clothes on me, too?’
cried I.
But Rowley hastened to reassure me. On the first word of my coming,
the Count had put the matter of my wardrobe in the hands of his own
and my cousin’s tailors; and on the rumour of our resemblance,
my clothes had been made to Alain’s measure.
‘But they were all made for you express, Mr. Anne. You may
be certain the Count would never do nothing by ’alf: fires kep’
burning; the finest of clothes ordered, I’m sure, and a body-servant
being trained a-purpose.’
‘Well,’ said I, ‘it’s a good fire, and a good
set-out of clothes; and what a valet, Mr. Rowley! And there’s
one thing to be said for my cousin - I mean for Mr. Powl’s Viscount
- he has a very fair figure.’
‘Oh, don’t you be took in, Mr. Anne,’ quoth the faithless
Rowley: ‘he has to be hyked into a pair of stays to get them things
on!’
‘Come, come, Mr. Rowley,’ said I, ‘this is telling
tales out of school! Do not you be deceived. The greatest
men of antiquity, including Caesar and Hannibal and Pope Joan, may have
been very glad, at my time of life or Alain’s, to follow his example.
’Tis a misfortune common to all; and really,’ said I, bowing
to myself before the mirror like one who should dance the minuet, ‘when
the result is so successful as this, who would do anything but applaud?’
My toilet concluded, I marched on to fresh surprises. My chamber,
my new valet and my new clothes had been beyond hope: the dinner, the
soup, the whole bill of fare was a revelation of the powers there are
in man. I had not supposed it lay in the genius of any cook to
create, out of common beef and mutton, things so different and dainty.
The wine was of a piece, the doctor a most agreeable companion; nor
could I help reflecting on the prospect that all this wealth, comfort
and handsome profusion might still very possibly become mine.
Here were a change indeed, from the common soldier and the camp kettle,
the prisoner and his prison rations, the fugitive and the horrors of
the covered cart!
CHAPTER XVII - THE DESPATCH-BOX
The doctor had scarce finished his meal before he hastened with an apology
to attend upon his patient; and almost immediately after I was myself
summoned and ushered up the great staircase and along interminable corridors
to the bedside of my great-uncle the Count. You are to think that
up to the present moment I had not set eyes on this formidable personage,
only on the evidences of his wealth and kindness. You are to think
besides that I had heard him miscalled and abused from my earliest childhood
up. The first of the émigrés could never
expect a good word in the society in which my father moved. Even
yet the reports I received were of a doubtful nature; even Romaine had
drawn of him no very amiable portrait; and as I was ushered into the
room, it was a critical eye that I cast on my great-uncle. He
lay propped on pillows in a little cot no greater than a camp-bed, not
visibly breathing. He was about eighty years of age, and looked
it; not that his face was much lined, but all the blood and colour seemed
to have faded from his body, and even his eyes, which last he kept usually
closed as though the light distressed him. There was an unspeakable
degree of slyness in his expression, which kept me ill at ease; he seemed
to lie there with his arms folded, like a spider waiting for prey.
His speech was very deliberate and courteous, but scarce louder than
a sigh.
‘I bid you welcome, Monsieur le Vicomte Anne,’ said
he, looking at me hard with his pale eyes, but not moving on his pillows.
‘I have sent for you, and I thank you for the obliging expedition
you have shown. It is my misfortune that I cannot rise to receive
you. I trust you have been reasonably well entertained?’
‘Monsieur mon oncle,’ I said, bowing very low, ‘I
am come at the summons of the head of my family.’
‘It is well,’ he said. ‘Be seated. I should
be glad to hear some news - if that can be called news that is already
twenty years old - of how I have the pleasure to see you here.’
By the coldness of his address, not more than by the nature of the times
that he bade me recall, I was plunged in melancholy. I felt myself
surrounded as with deserts of friendlessness, and the delight of my
welcome was turned to ashes in my mouth.
‘That is soon told, monseigneur,’ said I. ‘I
understand that I need tell you nothing of the end of my unhappy parents?
It is only the story of the lost dog.’
‘You are right. I am sufficiently informed of that deplorable
affair; it is painful to me. My nephew, your father, was a man
who would not be advised,’ said he. ‘Tell me, if you
please, simply of yourself.’
‘I am afraid I must run the risk of harrowing your sensibility
in the beginning,’ said I, with a bitter smile, ‘because
my story begins at the foot of the guillotine. When the list came
out that night, and her name was there, I was already old enough, not
in years but in sad experience, to understand the extent of my misfortune.
She - ’ I paused. ‘Enough that she arranged
with a friend, Madame de Chasserades, that she should take charge of
me, and by the favour of our jailers I was suffered to remain in the
shelter of the Abbaye. That was my only refuge; there was
no corner of France that I could rest the sole of my foot upon except
the prison. Monsieur le Comte, you are as well aware as I can
be what kind of a life that was, and how swiftly death smote in that
society. I did not wait long before the name of Madame de Chasserades
succeeded to that of my mother on the list. She passed me on to
Madame de Noytot; she, in her turn, to Mademoiselle de Braye; and there
were others. I was the one thing permanent; they were all transient
as clouds; a day or two of their care, and then came the last farewell
and - somewhere far off in that roaring Paris that surrounded us - the
bloody scene. I was the cherished one, the last comfort, of these
dying women. I have been in pitched fights, my lord, and I never
knew such courage. It was all done smiling, in the tone of good
society; belle maman was the name I was taught to give to each;
and for a day or two the new “pretty mamma” would make much
of me, show me off, teach me the minuet, and to say my prayers; and
then, with a tender embrace, would go the way of her predecessors, smiling.
There were some that wept too. There was a childhood! All
the time Monsieur de Culemberg kept his eye on me, and would have had
me out of the Abbaye and in his own protection, but my “pretty
mammas” one after another resisted the idea. Where could
I be safer? they argued; and what was to become of them without the
darling of the prison? Well, it was soon shown how safe I was!
The dreadful day of the massacre came; the prison was overrun; none
paid attention to me, not even the last of my “pretty mammas,”
for she had met another fate. I was wandering distracted, when
I was found by some one in the interests of Monsieur de Culemberg.
I understand he was sent on purpose; I believe, in order to reach the
interior of the prison, he had set his hand to nameless barbarities:
such was the price paid for my worthless, whimpering little life!
He gave me his hand; it was wet, and mine was reddened; he led me unresisting.
I remember but the one circumstance of my flight - it was my last view
of my last pretty mamma. Shall I describe it to you?’ I
asked the Count, with a sudden fierceness.
‘Avoid unpleasant details,’ observed my great-uncle gently.
At these words a sudden peace fell upon me. I had been angry with
the man before; I had not sought to spare him; and now, in a moment,
I saw that there was nothing to spare. Whether from natural heartlessness
or extreme old age, the soul was not at home; and my benefactor, who
had kept the fire lit in my room for a month past - my only relative
except Alain, whom I knew already to be a hired spy - had trodden out
the last sparks of hope and interest.
‘Certainly,’ said I; ‘and, indeed, the day for them
is nearly over. I was taken to Monsieur de Culemberg’s,
- I presume, sir, that you know the Abbe de Culemberg?’
He indicated assent without opening his eyes.
‘He was a very brave and a very learned man - ’
‘And a very holy one,’ said my uncle civilly.
‘And a very holy one, as you observe,’ I continued.
‘He did an infinity of good, and through all the Terror kept himself
from the guillotine. He brought me up, and gave me such education
as I have. It was in his house in the country at Dammarie, near
Melun, that I made the acquaintance of your agent, Mr. Vicary, who lay
there in hiding, only to fall a victim at the last to a gang of chauffeurs.’
‘That poor Mr. Vicary!’ observed my uncle. ‘He
had been many times in my interests to France, and this was his first
failure. Quel charmant homme, n’est-ce pas?’
‘Infinitely so,’ said I. ‘But I would not willingly
detain you any further with a story, the details of which it must naturally
be more or less unpleasant for you to hear. Suffice it that, by
M. de Culemberg’s own advice, I said farewell at eighteen to that
kind preceptor and his books, and entered the service of France; and
have since then carried arms in such a manner as not to disgrace my
family.’
‘You narrate well; vous aves la voix chaude,’ said
my uncle, turning on his pillows as if to study me. ‘I have
a very good account of you by Monsieur de Mauseant, whom you helped
in Spain. And you had some education from the Abbe de Culemberg,
a man of a good house? Yes, you will do very well. You have
a good manner and a handsome person, which hurts nothing. We are
all handsome in the family; even I myself, I have had my successes,
the memories of which still charm me. It is my intention, my nephew,
to make of you my heir. I am not very well content with my other
nephew, Monsieur le Vicomte: he has not been respectful, which is the
flattery due to age. And there are other matters.’
I was half tempted to throw back in his face that inheritance so coldly
offered. At the same time I had to consider that he was an old
man, and, after all, my relation; and that I was a poor one, in considerable
straits, with a hope at heart which that inheritance might yet enable
me to realise. Nor could I forget that, however icy his manners,
he had behaved to me from the first with the extreme of liberality and
- I was about to write, kindness, but the word, in that connection,
would not come. I really owed the man some measure of gratitude,
which it would be an ill manner to repay if I were to insult him on
his deathbed.
‘Your will, monsieur, must ever be my rule,’ said I, bowing.
‘You have wit, monsieur mon neveu,’ said he, ‘the
best wit - the wit of silence. Many might have deafened me with
their gratitude. Gratitude!’ he repeated, with a peculiar
intonation, and lay and smiled to himself. ‘But to approach
what is more important. As a prisoner of war, will it be possible
for you to be served heir to English estates? I have no idea:
long as I have dwelt in England, I have never studied what they call
their laws. On the other hand, how if Romaine should come too
late? I have two pieces of business to be transacted - to die,
and to make my will; and, however desirous I may be to serve you, I
cannot postpone the first in favour of the second beyond a very few
hours.’
‘Well, sir, I must then contrive to be doing as I did before,’
said I.
‘Not so,’ said the Count. ‘I have an alternative.
I have just drawn my balance at my banker’s, a considerable sum,
and I am now to place it in your hands. It will be so much for
you and so much less - ’ he paused, and smiled with an air of
malignity that surprised me. ‘But it is necessary it should
be done before witnesses. Monsieur le Vicomte is of a particular
disposition, and an unwitnessed donation may very easily be twisted
into a theft.’
He touched a bell, which was answered by a man having the appearance
of a confidential valet. To him he gave a key.
‘Bring me the despatch-box that came yesterday, La Ferriere,’
said he. ‘You will at the same time present my compliments
to Dr. Hunter and M. l’Abbe, and request them to step for a few
moments to my room.’
The despatch-box proved to be rather a bulky piece of baggage, covered
with Russia leather. Before the doctor and an excellent old smiling
priest it was passed over into my hands with a very clear statement
of the disposer’s wishes; immediately after which, though the
witnesses remained behind to draw up and sign a joint note of the transaction,
Monsieur de Kéroual dismissed me to my own room, La Ferriere
following with the invaluable box.
At my chamber door I took it from him with thanks, and entered alone.
Everything had been already disposed for the night, the curtains drawn
and the fire trimmed; and Rowley was still busy with my bedclothes.
He turned round as I entered with a look of welcome that did my heart
good. Indeed, I had never a much greater need of human sympathy,
however trivial, than at that moment when I held a fortune in my arms.
In my uncle’s room I had breathed the very atmosphere of disenchantment.
He had gorged my pockets; he had starved every dignified or affectionate
sentiment of a man. I had received so chilling an impression of
age and experience that the mere look of youth drew me to confide in
Rowley: he was only a boy, his heart must beat yet, he must still retain
some innocence and natural feelings, he could blurt out follies with
his mouth, he was not a machine to utter perfect speech! At the
same time, I was beginning to outgrow the painful impressions of my
interview; my spirits were beginning to revive; and at the jolly, empty
looks of Mr. Rowley, as he ran forward to relieve me of the box, St.
Ives became himself again.
‘Now, Rowley, don’t be in a hurry,’ said I.
‘This is a momentous juncture. Man and boy, you have been
in my service about three hours. You must already have observed
that I am a gentleman of a somewhat morose disposition, and there is
nothing that I more dislike than the smallest appearance of familiarity.
Mr. Pole or Mr. Powl, probably in the spirit of prophecy, warned you
against this danger.’
‘Yes, Mr. Anne,’ said Rowley blankly.
‘Now there has just arisen one of those rare cases, in which I
am willing to depart from my principles. My uncle has given me
a box - what you would call a Christmas box. I don’t know
what’s in it, and no more do you: perhaps I am an April fool,
or perhaps I am already enormously wealthy; there might be five hundred
pounds in this apparently harmless receptacle!’
‘Lord, Mr. Anne!’ cried Rowley.
‘Now, Rowley, hold up your right hand and repeat the words of
the oath after me,’ said I, laying the despatch-box on the table.
‘Strike me blue if I ever disclose to Mr. Powl, or Mr. Powl’s
Viscount, or anything that is Mr. Powl’s, not to mention Mr. Dawson
and the doctor, the treasures of the following despatch-box; and strike
me sky-blue scarlet if I do not continually maintain, uphold, love,
honour and obey, serve, and follow to the four corners of the earth
and the waters that are under the earth, the hereinafter before-mentioned
(only that I find I have neglected to mention him) Viscount Anne de
Kéroual de St.-Yves, commonly known as Mr. Rowley’s Viscount.
So be it. Amen.’
He took the oath with the same exaggerated seriousness as I gave it
to him.
‘Now,’ said I. ‘Here is the key for you; I will
hold the lid with both hands in the meanwhile.’ He turned
the key. ‘Bring up all the candles in the room, and range
them along-side. What is it to be? A live gorgon, a Jack-in-the-box,
or a spring that fires a pistol? On your knees, sir, before the
prodigy!’
So saying, I turned the despatch-box upside down upon the table.
At sight of the heap of bank paper and gold that lay in front of us,
between the candles, or rolled upon the floor alongside, I stood astonished.
‘O Lord!’ cried Mr. Rowley; ‘oh Lordy, Lordy, Lord!’
and he scrambled after the fallen guineas. ‘O my, Mr. Anne!
what a sight o’ money! Why, it’s like a blessed story-book.
It’s like the Forty Thieves.’
‘Now Rowley, let’s be cool, let’s be businesslike,’
said I. ‘Riches are deceitful, particularly when you haven’t
counted them; and the first thing we have to do is to arrive at the
amount of my - let me say, modest competency. If I’m not
mistaken, I have enough here to keep you in gold buttons all the rest
of your life. You collect the gold, and I’ll take the paper.’
Accordingly, down we sat together on the hearthrug, and for some time
there was no sound but the creasing of bills and the jingling of guineas,
broken occasionally by the exulting exclamations of Rowley. The
arithmetical operation on which we were embarked took long, and it might
have been tedious to others; not to me nor to my helper.
‘Ten thousand pounds!’ I announced at last.
‘Ten thousand!’ echoed Mr. Rowley.
And we gazed upon each other.
The greatness of this fortune took my breath away. With that sum
in my hands, I need fear no enemies. People are arrested, in nine
cases out of ten, not because the police are astute, but because they
themselves run short of money; and I had here before me in the despatch-box
a succession of devices and disguises that insured my liberty.
Not only so; but, as I felt with a sudden and overpowering thrill, with
ten thousand pounds in my hands I was become an eligible suitor.
What advances I had made in the past, as a private soldier in a military
prison, or a fugitive by the wayside, could only be qualified or, indeed,
excused as acts of desperation. And now, I might come in by the
front door; I might approach the dragon with a lawyer at my elbow, and
rich settlements to offer. The poor French prisoner, Champdivers,
might be in a perpetual danger of arrest; but the rich travelling Englishman,
St.-Ives, in his post-chaise, with his despatch-box by his side, could
smile at fate and laugh at locksmiths. I repeated the proverb,
exulting, Love laughs at locksmiths! In a moment, by the
mere coming of this money, my love had become possible - it had come
near, it was under my hand - and it may be by one of the curiosities
of human nature, but it burned that instant brighter.
‘Rowley,’ said I, ‘your Viscount is a made man.’
‘Why, we both are, sir,’ said Rowley.
‘Yes, both,’ said I; ‘and you shall dance at the wedding;’
and I flung at his head a bundle of bank notes, and had just followed
it up with a handful of guineas, when the door opened, and Mr. Romaine
appeared upon the threshold.
CHAPTER XVIII - MR. ROMAINE CALLS ME NAMES
Feeling very much of a fool to be thus taken by surprise, I scrambled
to my feet and hastened to make my visitor welcome. He did not
refuse me his hand; but he gave it with a coldness and distance for
which I was quite unprepared, and his countenance, as he looked on me,
was marked in a strong degree with concern and severity.
‘So, sir, I find you here?’ said he, in tones of little
encouragement. ‘Is that you, George? You can run away;
I have business with your master.’
He showed Rowley out, and locked the door behind him. Then he
sat down in an armchair on one side of the fire, and looked at me with
uncompromising sternness.
‘I am hesitating how to begin,’ said he. ‘In
this singular labyrinth of blunders and difficulties that you have prepared
for us, I am positively hesitating where to begin. It will perhaps
be best that you should read, first of all, this paragraph.’
And he handed over to me a newspaper.
The paragraph in question was brief. It announced the recapture
of one of the prisoners recently escaped from Edinburgh Castle; gave
his name, Clausel, and added that he had entered into the particulars
of the recent revolting murder in the Castle, and denounced the murderer:-
‘It is a common soldier called Champdivers, who had himself escaped,
and is in all probability involved in the common fate of his comrades.
In spite of the activity along all the Forth and the East Coast, nothing
has yet been seen of the sloop which these desperadoes seized at Grangemouth,
and it is now almost certain that they have found a watery grave.’
At the reading of this paragraph, my heart turned over. In a moment
I saw my castle in the air ruined; myself changed from a mere military
fugitive into a hunted murderer, fleeing from the gallows; my love,
which had a moment since appeared so near to me, blotted from the field
of possibility. Despair, which was my first sentiment, did not,
however, endure for more than a moment. I saw that my companions
had indeed succeeded in their unlikely design; and that I was supposed
to have accompanied and perished along with them by shipwreck - a most
probable ending to their enterprise. If they thought me at the
bottom of the North Sea, I need not fear much vigilance on the streets
of Edinburgh. Champdivers was wanted: what was to connect him
with St. Ives? Major Chevenix would recognise me if he met me;
that was beyond bargaining: he had seen me so often, his interest had
been kindled to so high a point, that I could hope to deceive him by
no stratagem of disguise. Well, even so; he would have a competition
of testimony before him: he knew Clausel, he knew me, and I was sure
he would decide for honour. At the same time the image of Flora
shot up in my mind’s eye with such a radiancy as fairly overwhelmed
all other considerations; the blood sprang to every corner of my body,
and I vowed I would see and win her, if it cost my neck.
‘Very annoying, no doubt,’ said I, as I returned the paper
to Mr. Romaine.
‘Is annoying your word for it?’ said he.
‘Exasperating, if you like,’ I admitted.
‘And true?’ he inquired.
‘Well, true in a sense,’ said I. ‘But perhaps
I had better answer that question by putting you in possession of the
facts?’
‘I think so, indeed,’ said he.
I narrated to him as much as seemed necessary of the quarrel, the duel,
the death of Goguelat, and the character of Clausel. He heard
me through in a forbidding silence, nor did he at all betray the nature
of his sentiments, except that, at the episode of the scissors, I could
observe his mulberry face to turn three shades paler.
‘I suppose I may believe you?’ said he, when I had done.
‘Or else conclude this interview,’ said I.
‘Can you not understand that we are here discussing matters of
the gravest import? Can you not understand that I feel myself
weighed with a load of responsibility on your account - that you should
take this occasion to air your fire-eating manners against your own
attorney? There are serious hours in life, Mr. Anne,’ he
said severely. ‘A capital charge, and that of a very brutal
character and with singularly unpleasant details; the presence of the
man Clausel, who (according to your account of it) is actuated by sentiments
of real malignity, and prepared to swear black white; all the other
witnesses scattered and perhaps drowned at sea; the natural prejudice
against a Frenchman and a runaway prisoner: this makes a serious total
for your lawyer to consider, and is by no means lessened by the incurable
folly and levity of your own disposition.’
‘I beg your pardon!’ said I.
‘Oh, my expressions have been selected with scrupulous accuracy,’
he replied. ‘How did I find you, sir, when I came to announce
this catastrophe? You were sitting on the hearthrug playing, like
a silly baby, with a servant, were you not, and the floor all scattered
with gold and bank paper? There was a tableau for you! It
was I who came, and you were lucky in that. It might have been
any one - your cousin as well as another.’
‘You have me there, sir,’ I admitted. ‘I had
neglected all precautions, and you do right to be angry. Apropos,
Mr. Romaine, how did you come yourself, and how long have you been in
the house?’ I added, surprised, on the retrospect, not to have
heard him arrive.
‘I drove up in a chaise and pair,’ he returned. ‘Any
one might have heard me. But you were not listening, I suppose?
being so extremely at your ease in the very house of your enemy, and
under a capital charge! And I have been long enough here to do
your business for you. Ah, yes, I did it, God forgive me! - did
it before I so much as asked you the explanation of the paragraph.
For some time back the will has been prepared; now it is signed; and
your uncle has heard nothing of your recent piece of activity.
Why? Well, I had no fancy to bother him on his death-bed: you
might be innocent; and at bottom I preferred the murderer to the spy.’
No doubt of it but the man played a friendly part; no doubt also that,
in his ill-temper and anxiety, he expressed himself unpalatably.
‘You will perhaps find me over delicate,’ said I.
‘There is a word you employed - ’
‘I employ the words of my brief, sir,’ he cried, striking
with his hand on the newspaper. ‘It is there in six letters.
And do not be so certain - you have not stood your trial yet.
It is an ugly affair, a fishy business. It is highly disagreeable.
I would give my hand off - I mean I would give a hundred pound down,
to have nothing to do with it. And, situated as we are, we must
at once take action. There is here no choice. You must at
once quit this country, and get to France, or Holland, or, indeed, to
Madagascar.’
‘There may be two words to that,’ said I.
‘Not so much as one syllable!’ he retorted. ‘Here
is no room for argument. The case is nakedly plain. In the
disgusting position in which you have found means to place yourself,
all that is to be hoped for is delay. A time may come when we
shall be able to do better. It cannot be now: now it would be
the gibbet.’
‘You labour under a false impression, Mr. Romaine,’ said
I. ‘I have no impatience to figure in the dock. I
am even as anxious as yourself to postpone my first appearance there.
On the other hand, I have not the slightest intention of leaving this
country, where I please myself extremely. I have a good address,
a ready tongue, an English accent that passes, and, thanks to the generosity
of my uncle, as much money as I want. It would be hard indeed
if, with all these advantages, Mr. St. Ives should not be able to live
quietly in a private lodging, while the authorities amuse themselves
by looking for Champdivers. You forget, there is no connection
between these two personages.’
‘And you forget your cousin,’ retorted Romaine. ‘There
is the link. There is the tongue of the buckle. He knows
you are Champdivers.’ He put up his hand as if to listen.
‘And, for a wager, here he is himself!’ he exclaimed.
As when a tailor takes a piece of goods upon his counter, and rends
it across, there came to our ears from the avenue the long tearing sound
of a chaise and four approaching at the top speed of the horses.
And, looking out between the curtains, we beheld the lamps skimming
on the smooth ascent.
‘Ay,’ said Romaine, wiping the window-pane that he might
see more clearly. ‘Ay, that is he by the driving!
So he squanders money along the king’s highway, the triple idiot!
gorging every man he meets with gold for the pleasure of arriving -
where? Ah, yes, where but a debtor’s jail, if not a criminal
prison!’
‘Is he that kind of a man?’ I said, staring on these lamps
as though I could decipher in them the secret of my cousin’s character.
‘You will find him a dangerous kind,’ answered the lawyer.
‘For you, these are the lights on a lee shore! I find I
fall in a muse when I consider of him; what a formidable being he once
was, and what a personable! and how near he draws to the moment that
must break him utterly! we none of us like him here; we hate him, rather;
and yet I have a sense - I don’t think at my time of life it can
be pity - but a reluctance rather, to break anything so big and figurative,
as though he were a big porcelain pot or a big picture of high price.
Ay, there is what I was waiting for!’ he cried, as the lights
of a second chaise swam in sight. ‘It is he beyond a doubt.
The first was the signature and the next the flourish. Two chaises,
the second following with the baggage, which is always copious and ponderous,
and one of his valets: he cannot go a step without a valet.’
‘I hear you repeat the word big,’ said I. ‘But
it cannot be that he is anything out of the way in stature.’
‘No,’ said the attorney. ‘About your height,
as I guessed for the tailors, and I see nothing wrong with the result.
But, somehow, he commands an atmosphere; he has a spacious manner; and
he has kept up, all through life, such a volume of racket about his
personality, with his chaises and his racers and his dicings, and I
know not what - that somehow he imposes! It seems, when the farce
is done, and he locked in Fleet prison - and nobody left but Buonaparte
and Lord Wellington and the Hetman Platoff to make a work about - the
world will be in a comparison quite tranquil. But this is beside
the mark,’ he added, with an effort, turning again from the window.
‘We are now under fire, Mr. Anne, as you soldiers would say, and
it is high time we should prepare to go into action. He must not
see you; that would be fatal. All that he knows at present is
that you resemble him, and that is much more than enough. If it
were possible, it would be well he should not know you were in the house.’
‘Quite impossible, depend upon it,’ said I. ‘Some
of the servants are directly in his interests, perhaps in his pay: Dawson,
for an example.’
‘My own idea!’ cried Romaine. ‘And at least,’
he added, as the first of the chaises drew up with a dash in front of
the portico, ‘it is now too late. Here he is.’
We stood listening, with a strange anxiety, to the various noises that
awoke in the silent house: the sound of doors opening and closing, the
sound of feet near at hand and farther off. It was plain the arrival
of my cousin was a matter of moment, almost of parade, to the household.
And suddenly, out of this confused and distant bustle, a rapid and light
tread became distinguishable. We heard it come upstairs, draw
near along the corridor, pause at the door, and a stealthy and hasty
rapping succeeded.
‘Mr. Anne - Mr. Anne, sir! Let me in!’ said the voice
of Rowley.
We admitted the lad, and locked the door again behind him.
‘It’s him, sir,’ he panted. ‘He’ve
come.’
‘You mean the Viscount?’ said I. ‘So we supposed.
But come, Rowley - out with the rest of it! You have more to tell
us, or your face belies you !’
‘Mr. Anne, I do,’ he said. ‘Mr. Romaine, sir,
you’re a friend of his, ain’t you?’
‘Yes, George, I am a friend of his,’ said Romaine, and,
to my great surprise, laid his hand upon my shoulder.
‘Well, it’s this way,’ said Rowley - ‘Mr. Powl
have been at me! It’s to play the spy! I thought he
was at it from the first! From the first I see what he was after
- coming round and round, and hinting things! But to-night he
outs with it plump! I’m to let him hear all what you’re
to do beforehand, he says; and he gave me this for an arnest’
- holding up half a guinea; ‘and I took it, so I did! Strike
me sky-blue scarlet?’ says he, adducing the words of the mock
oath; and he looked askance at me as he did so.
I saw that he had forgotten himself, and that he knew it. The
expression of his eye changed almost in the passing of the glance from
the significant to the appealing - from the look of an accomplice to
that of a culprit; and from that moment he became the model of a well-drilled
valet.
‘Sky-blue scarlet?’ repeated the lawyer. ‘Is
the fool delirious?’
‘No,’ said I; ‘he is only reminding me of something.’
‘Well - and I believe the fellow will be faithful,’ said
Romaine. ‘So you are a friend of Mr. Anne’s’
too?’ he added to Rowley.
‘If you please, sir,’ said Rowley.
‘’Tis something sudden,’ observed Romaine; ‘but
it may be genuine enough. I believe him to be honest. He
comes of honest people. Well, George Rowley, you might embrace
some early opportunity to earn that half-guinea, by telling Mr. Powl
that your master will not leave here till noon to-morrow, if he go even
then. Tell him there are a hundred things to be done here, and
a hundred more that can only be done properly at my office in Holborn.
Come to think of it - we had better see to that first of all,’
he went on, unlocking the door. ‘Get hold of Powl, and see.
And be quick back, and clear me up this mess.’
Mr. Rowley was no sooner gone than the lawyer took a pinch of snuff,
and regarded me with somewhat of a more genial expression.
‘Sir,’ said he, ‘it is very fortunate for you that
your face is so strong a letter of recommendation. Here am I,
a tough old practitioner, mixing myself up with your very distressing
business; and here is this farmer’s lad, who has the wit to take
a bribe and the loyalty to come and tell you of it - all, I take it,
on the strength of your appearance. I wish I could imagine how
it would impress a jury!’ says he.
‘And how it would affect the hangman, sir?’ I asked
‘Absit omen!’ said Mr. Romaine devoutly.
We were just so far in our talk, when I heard a sound that brought my
heart into my mouth: the sound of some one slyly trying the handle of
the door. It had been preceded by no audible footstep. Since
the departure of Rowley our wing of the house had been entirely silent.
And we had every right to suppose ourselves alone, and to conclude that
the new-comer, whoever he might be, was come on a clandestine, if not
a hostile, errand.
‘Who is there?’ asked Romaine.
‘It’s only me, sir,’ said the soft voice of Dawson.
‘It’s the Viscount, sir. He is very desirous to speak
with you on business.’
‘Tell him I shall come shortly, Dawson,’ said the lawyer.
‘I am at present engaged.’
‘Thank you, sir!’ said Dawson.
And we heard his feet draw off slowly along the corridor.
‘Yes,’ said Mr. Romaine, speaking low, and maintaining the
attitude of one intently listening, ‘there is another foot.
I cannot be deceived!’
‘I think there was indeed!’ said I. ‘And what
troubles me - I am not sure that the other has gone entirely away.
By the time it got the length of the head of the stair the tread was
plainly single.’
‘Ahem - blockaded?’ asked the lawyer.
‘A siege en règle!’ I exclaimed.
‘Let us come farther from the door,’ said Romaine, ‘and
reconsider this damnable position. Without doubt, Alain was this
moment at the door. He hoped to enter and get a view of you, as
if by accident. Baffled in this, has he stayed himself, or has
he planted Dawson here by way of sentinel?’
‘Himself, beyond a doubt,’ said I. ‘And yet
to what end? He cannot think to pass the night there!’
‘If it were only possible to pay no heed!’ said Mr. Romaine.
‘But this is the accursed drawback of your position. We
can do nothing openly. I must smuggle you out of this room and
out of this house like seizable goods; and how am I to set about it
with a sentinel planted at your very door?’
‘There is no good in being agitated,’ said I.
‘None at all,’ he acquiesced. ‘And, come to
think of it, it is droll enough that I should have been that very moment
commenting on your personal appearance, when your cousin came upon this
mission. I was saying, if you remember, that your face was as
good or better than a letter of recommendation. I wonder if M.
Alain would be like the rest of us - I wonder what he would think of
it?’
Mr. Romaine was sitting in a chair by the fire with his back to the
windows, and I was myself kneeling on the hearthrug and beginning mechanically
to pick up the scattered bills, when a honeyed voice joined suddenly
in our conversation.
‘He thinks well of it, Mr. Romaine. He begs to join himself
to that circle of admirers which you indicate to exist already.’
CHAPTER XIX - THE DEVIL AND ALL AT AMERSHAM PLACE
Never did two human creatures get to their feet with more alacrity than
the lawyer and myself. We had locked and barred the main gates
of the citadel; but unhappily we had left open the bath-room sally-port;
and here we found the voice of the hostile trumpets sounding from within,
and all our defences taken in reverse. I took but the time to
whisper Mr. Romaine in the ear: ‘Here is another tableau for you!’
at which he looked at me a moment with a kind of pathos, as who should
say, ‘Don’t hit a man when he’s down.’
Then I transferred my eyes to my enemy.
He had his hat on, a little on one side: it was a very tall hat, raked
extremely, and had a narrow curling brim. His hair was all curled
out in masses like an Italian mountebank - a most unpardonable fashion.
He sported a huge tippeted overcoat of frieze, such as watchmen wear,
only the inside was lined with costly furs, and he kept it half open
to display the exquisite linen, the many-coloured waistcoat, and the
profuse jewellery of watch-chains and brooches underneath. The
leg and the ankle were turned to a miracle. It is out of the question
that I should deny the resemblance altogether, since it has been remarked
by so many different persons whom I cannot reasonably accuse of a conspiracy.
As a matter of fact, I saw little of it and confessed to nothing.
Certainly he was what some might call handsome, of a pictorial, exuberant
style of beauty, all attitude, profile, and impudence: a man whom I
could see in fancy parade on the grand stand at a race-meeting or swagger
in Piccadilly, staring down the women, and stared at himself with admiration
by the coal-porters. Of his frame of mind at that moment his face
offered a lively if an unconscious picture. He was lividly pale,
and his lip was caught up in a smile that could almost be called a snarl,
of a sheer, arid malignity that appalled me and yet put me on my mettle
for the encounter. He looked me up and down, then bowed and took
off his hat to me.
‘My cousin, I presume?’ he said.
‘I understand I have that honour,’ I replied.
‘The honour is mine,’ said he, and his voice shook as he
said it.
‘I should make you welcome, I believe,’ said I.
‘Why?’ he inquired. ‘This poor house has been
my home for longer than I care to claim. That you should already
take upon yourself the duties of host here is to be at unnecessary pains.
Believe me, that part would be more becomingly mine. And, by the
way, I must not fail to offer you my little compliment. It is
a gratifying surprise to meet you in the dress of a gentleman, and to
see’ - with a circular look upon the scattered bills - ‘that
your necessities have already been so liberally relieved.’
I bowed with a smile that was perhaps no less hateful than his own.
‘There are so many necessities in this world,’ said I.
‘Charity has to choose. One gets relieved, and some other,
no less indigent, perhaps indebted, must go wanting.’
‘Malice is an engaging trait,’ said he.
‘And envy, I think?’ was my reply.
He must have felt that he was not getting wholly the better of this
passage at arms; perhaps even feared that he should lose command of
his temper, which he reined in throughout the interview as with a red-hot
curb, for he flung away from me at the word, and addressed the lawyer
with insulting arrogance.
‘Mr. Romaine,’ he said, ‘since when have you presumed
to give orders in this house?’
‘I am not prepared to admit that I have given any,’ replied
Romaine; ‘certainly none that did not fall in the sphere of my
responsibilities.’
‘By whose orders, then, am I denied entrance to my uncle’s
room?’ said my cousin.
‘By the doctor’s, sir,’ replied Romaine; ‘and
I think even you will admit his faculty to give them.’
‘Have a care, sir,’ cried Alain. ‘Do not be
puffed up with your position. It is none so secure, Master Attorney.
I should not wonder in the least if you were struck off the rolls for
this night’s work, and the next I should see of you were when
I flung you alms at a pothouse door to mend your ragged elbows.
The doctor’s orders? But I believe I am not mistaken!
You have to-night transacted business with the Count; and this needy
young gentleman has enjoyed the privilege of still another interview,
in which (as I am pleased to see) his dignity has not prevented his
doing very well for himself. I wonder that you should care to
prevaricate with me so idly.’
‘I will confess so much,’ said Mr. Romaine, ‘if you
call it prevarication. The order in question emanated from the
Count himself. He does not wish to see you.’
‘For which I must take the word of Mr. Daniel Romaine?’
asked Alain.
‘In default of any better,’ said Romaine.
There was an instantaneous convulsion in my cousin’s face, and
I distinctly heard him gnash his teeth at this reply; but, to my surprise,
he resumed in tones of almost good humour:
‘Come, Mr. Romaine, do not let us be petty!’ He drew
in a chair and sat down. ‘Understand you have stolen a march
upon me. You have introduced your soldier of Napoleon, and (how,
I cannot conceive) he has been apparently accepted with favour.
I ask no better proof than the funds with which I find him literally
surrounded - I presume in consequence of some extravagance of joy at
the first sight of so much money. The odds are so far in your
favour, but the match is not yet won. Questions will arise of
undue influence, of sequestration, and the like: I have my witnesses
ready. I tell it you cynically, for you cannot profit by the knowledge;
and, if the worst come to the worst, I have good hopes of recovering
my own and of ruining you.’
‘You do what you please,’ answered Romaine; ‘but I
give it you for a piece of good advice, you had best do nothing in the
matter. You will only make yourself ridiculous; you will only
squander money, of which you have none too much, and reap public mortification.’
‘Ah, but there you make the common mistake, Mr. Romaine!’
returned Alain. ‘You despise your adversary. Consider,
if you please, how very disagreeable I could make myself, if I chose.
Consider the position of your protégé - an escaped
prisoner! But I play a great game. I condemn such petty
opportunities.’
At this Romaine and I exchanged a glance of triumph. It seemed
manifest that Alain had as yet received no word of Clausel’s recapture
and denunciation. At the same moment the lawyer, thus relieved
of the instancy of his fear, changed his tactics. With a great
air of unconcern, he secured the newspaper, which still lay open before
him on the table.
‘I think, Monsieur Alain, that you labour under some illusion,’
said he. ‘Believe me, this is all beside the mark.
You seem to be pointing to some compromise. Nothing is further
from my views. You suspect me of an inclination to trifle with
you, to conceal how things are going. I cannot, on the other hand,
be too early or too explicit in giving you information which concerns
you (I must say) capitally. Your great-uncle has to-night cancelled
his will, and made a new one in favour of your cousin Anne. Nay,
and you shall hear it from his own lips, if you choose! I will
take so much upon me,’ said the lawyer, rising. ‘Follow
me, if you please, gentlemen.’
Mr. Romaine led the way out of the room so briskly, and was so briskly
followed by Alain, that I had hard ado to get the remainder of the money
replaced and the despatch-box locked, and to overtake them, even by
running ere they should be lost in that maze of corridors, my uncle’s
house. As it was, I went with a heart divided; and the thought
of my treasure thus left unprotected, save by a paltry lid and lock
that any one might break or pick open, put me in a perspiration whenever
I had the time to remember it. The lawyer brought us to a room,
begged us to be seated while he should hold a consultation with the
doctor, and, slipping out of another door, left Alain and myself closeted
together.
Truly he had done nothing to ingratiate himself; his every word had
been steeped in unfriendliness, envy, and that contempt which (as it
is born of anger) it is possible to support without humiliation.
On my part, I had been little more conciliating; and yet I began to
be sorry for this man, hired spy as I knew him to be. It seemed
to me less than decent that he should have been brought up in the expectation
of this great inheritance, and now, at the eleventh hour, be tumbled
forth out of the house door and left to himself, his poverty and his
debts - those debts of which I had so ungallantly reminded him so short
a time before. And we were scarce left alone ere I made haste
to hang out a flag of truce.
‘My cousin,’ said I, ‘trust me, you will not find
me inclined to be your enemy.’
He paused in front of me - for he had not accepted the lawyer’s
invitation to be seated, but walked to and fro in the apartment - took
a pinch of snuff, and looked at me while he was taking it with an air
of much curiosity.
‘Is it even so?’ said he. ‘Am I so far favoured
by fortune as to have your pity? Infinitely obliged, my cousin
Anne! But these sentiments are not always reciprocal, and I warn
you that the day when I set my foot on your neck, the spine shall break.
Are you acquainted with the properties of the spine?’ he asked
with an insolence beyond qualification.
It was too much. ‘I am acquainted also with the properties
of a pair of pistols,’ said I, toising him.
‘No, no, no!’ says he, holding up his finger. ‘I
will take my revenge how and when I please. We are enough of the
same family to understand each other, perhaps; and the reason why I
have not had you arrested on your arrival, why I had not a picket of
soldiers in the first clump of evergreens, to await and prevent your
coming - I, who knew all, before whom that pettifogger, Romaine, has
been conspiring in broad daylight to supplant me - is simply this: that
I had not made up my mind how I was to take my revenge.’
At that moment he was interrupted by the tolling of a bell. As
we stood surprised and listening, it was succeeded by the sound of many
feet trooping up the stairs and shuffling by the door of our room.
Both, I believe, had a great curiosity to set it open, which each, owing
to the presence of the other, resisted; and we waited instead in silence,
and without moving, until Romaine returned and bade us to my uncle’s
presence.
He led the way by a little crooked passage, which brought us out in
the sick-room, and behind the bed. I believe I have forgotten
to remark that the Count’s chamber was of considerable dimensions.
We beheld it now crowded with the servants and dependants of the house,
from the doctor and the priest to Mr. Dawson and the housekeeper, from
Dawson down to Rowley and the last footman in white calves, the last
plump chambermaid in her clean gown and cap, and the last ostler in
a stable waiscoat. This large congregation of persons (and I was
surprised to see how large it was) had the appearance, for the most
part, of being ill at ease and heartily bewildered, standing on one
foot, gaping like zanies, and those who were in the corners nudging
each other and grinning aside. My uncle, on the other hand, who
was raised higher than I had yet seen him on his pillows, wore an air
of really imposing gravity. No sooner had we appeared behind him,
than he lifted his voice to a good loudness, and addressed the assemblage.
‘I take you all to witness - can you hear me? - I take you all
to witness that I recognise as my heir and representative this gentleman,
whom most of you see for the first time, the Viscount Anne de St.-Yves,
my nephew of the younger line. And I take you to witness at the
same time that, for very good reasons known to myself, I have discarded
and disinherited this other gentleman whom you all know, the Viscount
de St.-Yves. I have also to explain the unusual trouble to which
I have put you all - and, since your supper was not over, I fear I may
even say annoyance. It has pleased M. Alain to make some threats
of disputing my will, and to pretend that there are among your number
certain estimable persons who may be trusted to swear as he shall direct
them. It pleases me thus to put it out of his power and to stop
the mouths of his false witnesses. I am infinitely obliged by
your politeness, and I have the honour to wish you all a very good evening.’
As the servants, still greatly mystified, crowded out of the sickroom
door, curtseying, pulling the forelock, scraping with the foot, and
so on, according to their degree, I turned and stole a look at my cousin.
He had borne this crushing public rebuke without change of countenance.
He stood, now, very upright, with folded arms, and looking inscrutably
at the roof of the apartment. I could not refuse him at that moment
the tribute of my admiration. Still more so when, the last of
the domestics having filed through the doorway and left us alone with
my great-uncle and the lawyer, he took one step forward towards the
bed, made a dignified reverence, and addressed the man who had just
condemned him to ruin.
‘My lord,’ said he, ‘you are pleased to treat me in
a manner which my gratitude, and your state, equally forbid me to call
in question. It will be only necessary for me to call your attention
to the length of time in which I have been taught to regard myself as
your heir. In that position, I judged it only loyal to permit
myself a certain scale of expenditure. If I am now to be cut off
with a shilling as the reward of twenty years of service, I shall be
left not only a beggar, but a bankrupt.’
Whether from the fatigue of his recent exertion, or by a well-inspired
ingenuity of hate, my uncle had once more closed his eyes; nor did he
open them now. ‘Not with a shilling,’ he contented
himself with replying; and there stole, as he said it, a sort of smile
over his face, that flickered there conspicuously for the least moment
of time, and then faded and left behind the old impenetrable mask of
years, cunning, and fatigue. There could be no mistake: my uncle
enjoyed the situation as he had enjoyed few things in the last quarter
of a century. The fires of life scarce survived in that frail
body; but hatred, like some immortal quality, was still erect and unabated.
Nevertheless my cousin persevered.
‘I speak at a disadvantage,’ he resumed. ‘My
supplanter, with perhaps more wisdom than delicacy, remains in the room,’
and he cast a glance at me that might have withered an oak tree.
I was only too willing to withdraw, and Romaine showed as much alacrity
to make way for my departure. But my uncle was not to be moved.
In the same breath of a voice, and still without opening his eyes, he
bade me remain.
‘It is well,’ said Alain. ‘I cannot then go
on to remind you of the twenty years that have passed over our heads
in England, and the services I may have rendered you in that time.
It would be a position too odious. Your lordship knows me too
well to suppose I could stoop to such ignominy. I must leave out
all my defence - your lordship wills it so! I do not know what
are my faults; I know only my punishment, and it is greater than I have
the courage to face. My uncle, I implore your pity: pardon me
so far; do not send me for life into a debtors’ jail - a pauper
debtor.’
‘Chat et vieux, pardonnez?’ said my uncle, quoting
from La Fontaine; and then, opening a pale-blue eye full on Alain, he
delivered with some emphasis:
‘La jeunesse se flatte et croit tout obtenir;
La vieillesse est impitoyable.’
The blood leaped darkly into Alain’s face. He turned to
Romaine and me, and his eyes flashed.
‘It is your turn now,’ he said. ‘At least it
shall be prison for prison with the two viscounts.’
‘Not so, Mr. Alain, by your leave,’ said Romaine.
‘There are a few formalities to be considered first.’
But Alain was already striding towards the door.
‘Stop a moment, stop a moment!’ cried Romaine. ‘Remember
your own counsel not to despise an adversary.’
Alain turned.
‘If I do not despise I hate you!’ he cried, giving a loose
to his passion. ‘Be warned of that, both of you.’
‘I understand you to threaten Monsieur le Vicomte Anne,’
said the lawyer. ‘Do you know, I would not do that.
I am afraid, I am very much afraid, if you were to do as you propose,
you might drive me into extremes.’
‘You have made me a beggar and a bankrupt,’ said Alain.
What extreme is left?’
‘I scarce like to put a name upon it in this company,’ replied
Romaine. ‘But there are worse things than even bankruptcy,
and worse places than a debtors’ jail.’
The words were so significantly said that there went a visible thrill
through Alain; sudden as a sword-stroke, he fell pale again.
‘I do not understand you,’ said he.
‘O yes, you do,’ returned Romaine. ‘I believe
you understand me very well. You must not suppose that all this
time, while you were so very busy, others were entirely idle.
You must not fancy, because I am an Englishman, that I have not the
intelligence to pursue an inquiry. Great as is my regard for the
honour of your house, M. Alain de St.-Yves, if I hear of you moving
directly or indirectly in this matter, I shall do my duty, let it cost
what it will: that is, I shall communicate the real name of the Buonapartist
spy who signs his letters Rue Grégoire de Tours.’
I confess my heart was already almost altogether on the side of my insulted
and unhappy cousin; and if it had not been before, it must have been
so now, so horrid was the shock with which he heard his infamy exposed.
Speech was denied him; he carried his hand to his neckcloth; he staggered;
I thought he must have fallen. I ran to help him, and at that
he revived, recoiled before me, and stood there with arms stretched
forth as if to preserve himself from the outrage of my touch.
‘Hands off!’ he somehow managed to articulate.
‘You will now, I hope,’ pursued the lawyer, without any
change of voice, ‘understand the position in which you are placed,
and how delicately it behoves you to conduct yourself. Your arrest
hangs, if I may so express myself, by a hair; and as you will be under
the perpetual vigilance of myself and my agents, you must look to it
narrowly that you walk straight. Upon the least dubiety, I will
take action.’ He snuffed, looking critically at the tortured
man. ‘And now let me remind you that your chaise is at the
door. This interview is agitating to his lordship - it cannot
be agreeable for you - and I suggest that it need not be further drawn
out. It does not enter into the views of your uncle, the Count,
that you should again sleep under this roof.’
As Alain turned and passed without a word or a sign from the apartment,
I instantly followed. I suppose I must be at bottom possessed
of some humanity; at least, this accumulated torture, this slow butchery
of a man as by quarters of rock, had wholly changed my sympathies.
At that moment I loathed both my uncle and the lawyer for their coldblooded
cruelty.
Leaning over the banisters, I was but in time to hear his hasty footsteps
in that hall that had been crowded with servants to honour his coming,
and was now left empty against his friendless departure. A moment
later, and the echoes rang, and the air whistled in my ears, as he slammed
the door on his departing footsteps. The fury of the concussion
gave me (had one been still wanted) a measure of the turmoil of his
passions. In a sense, I felt with him; I felt how he would have
gloried to slam that door on my uncle, the lawyer, myself, and the whole
crowd of those who had been witnesses to his humiliation.
CHAPTER XX - AFTER THE STORM
No sooner was the house clear of my cousin than I began to reckon up,
ruefully enough, the probable results of what had passed. Here
were a number of pots broken, and it looked to me as if I should have
to pay for all! Here had been this proud, mad beast goaded and
baited both publicly and privately, till he could neither hear nor see
nor reason; whereupon the gate had been set open, and he had been left
free to go and contrive whatever vengeance he might find possible.
I could not help thinking it was a pity that, whenever I myself was
inclined to be upon my good behaviour, some friends of mine should always
determine to play a piece of heroics and cast me for the hero - or the
victim - which is very much the same. The first duty of heroics
is to be of your own choosing. When they are not that, they are
nothing. And I assure you, as I walked back to my own room, I
was in no very complaisant humour: thought my uncle and Mr. Romaine
to have played knuckle-bones with my life and prospects; cursed them
for it roundly; had no wish more urgent than to avoid the pair of them;
and was quite knocked out of time, as they say in the ring, to find
myself confronted with the lawyer.
He stood on my hearthrug, leaning on the chimney-piece, with a gloomy,
thoughtful brow, as I was pleased to see, and not in the least as though
he were vain of the late proceedings.
‘Well?’ said I. ‘You have done it now!’
‘Is he gone?’ he asked.
‘He is gone,’ said I. ‘We shall have the devil
to pay with him when he comes back.’
‘You are right,’ said the lawyer, ‘and very little
to pay him with but flams and fabrications, like to-night’s.’
‘To-night’s?’ I repeated.
‘Ay, to-night’s!’ said he.
‘To-night’s what?’ I cried.
‘To-night’s flams and fabrications.’
‘God be good to me, sir,’ said I, ‘have I something
more to admire in your conduct than ever I had suspected?
You cannot think how you interest me! That it was severe, I knew;
I had already chuckled over that. But that it should be false
also! In what sense, dear sir?’
I believe I was extremely offensive as I put the question, but the lawyer
paid no heed.
‘False in all senses of the word,’ he replied seriously.
‘False in the sense that they were not true, and false in the
sense that they were not real; false in the sense that I boasted, and
in the sense that I lied. How can I arrest him? Your uncle
burned the papers! I told you so - but doubtless you have forgotten
- the day I first saw you in Edinburgh Castle. It was an act of
generosity; I have seen many of these acts, and always regretted - always
regretted! “That shall be his inheritance,” he said,
as the papers burned; he did not mean that it should have proved so
rich a one. How rich, time will tell.’
‘I beg your pardon a hundred thousand times, my dear sir, but
it strikes me you have the impudence - in the circumstances, I may call
it the indecency - to appear cast down?’
‘It is true,’ said he: ‘I am. I am cast down.
I am literally cast down. I feel myself quite helpless against
your cousin.’
‘Now, really!’ I asked. ‘Is this serious?
And is it perhaps the reason why you have gorged the poor devil with
every species of insult? and why you took such surprising pains to supply
me with what I had so little need of - another enemy? That you
were helpless against them? “Here is my last missile,”
say you; “my ammunition is quite exhausted: just wait till I get
the last in - it will irritate, it cannot hurt him. There - you
see! - he is furious now, and I am quite helpless. One more prod,
another kick: now he is a mere lunatic! Stand behind me; I am
quite helpless!” Mr. Romaine, I am asking myself as to the
background or motive of this singular jest, and whether the name of
it should not be called treachery?’
‘I can scarce wonder,’ said he. ‘In truth it
has been a singular business, and we are very fortunate to be out of
it so well. Yet it was not treachery: no, no, Mr. Anne, it was
not treachery; and if you will do me the favour to listen to me for
the inside of a minute, I shall demonstrate the same to you beyond cavil.’
He seemed to wake up to his ordinary briskness. ‘You see
the point?’ he began. ‘He had not yet read the newspaper,
but who could tell when he might? He might have had that damned
journal in his pocket, and how should we know? We were - I may
say, we are - at the mercy of the merest twopenny accident.’
‘Why, true,’ said I: ‘I had not thought of that.’
‘I warrant you,’ cried Romaine, ‘you had supposed
it was nothing to be the hero of an interesting notice in the journals!
You had supposed, as like as not, it was a form of secrecy! But
not so in the least. A part of England is already buzzing with
the name of Champdivers; a day or two more and the mail will have carried
it everywhere: so wonderful a machine is this of ours for disseminating
intelligence! Think of it! When my father was born - but
that is another story. To return: we had here the elements of
such a combustion as I dread to think of - your cousin and the journal.
Let him but glance an eye upon that column of print, and where were
we? It is easy to ask; not so easy to answer, my young friend.
And let me tell you, this sheet is the Viscount’s usual reading.
It is my conviction he had it in his pocket.’
‘I beg your pardon, sir,’ said I. ‘I have been
unjust. I did not appreciate my danger.’
‘I think you never do,’ said he.
‘But yet surely that public scene - ’ I began.
‘It was madness. I quite agree with you,’ Mr. Romaine
interrupted. ‘But it was your uncle’s orders, Mr.
Anne, and what could I do? Tell him you were the murderer of Goguelat?
I think not.’
‘No, sure!’ said I. ‘That would but have been
to make the trouble thicker. We were certainly in a very ill posture.’
‘You do not yet appreciate how grave it was,’ he replied.
‘It was necessary for you that your cousin should go, and go at
once. You yourself had to leave to-night under cover of darkness,
and how could you have done that with the Viscount in the next room?
He must go, then; he must leave without delay. And that was the
difficulty.’
‘Pardon me, Mr. Romaine, but could not my uncle have bidden him
go?’ I asked.
‘Why, I see I must tell you that this is not so simple as it sounds,’
he replied. ‘You say this is your uncle’s house, and
so it is. But to all effects and purposes it is your cousin’s
also. He has rooms here; has had them coming on for thirty years
now, and they are filled with a prodigious accumulation of trash - stays,
I dare say, and powder-puffs, and such effeminate idiocy - to which
none could dispute his title, even suppose any one wanted to.
We had a perfect right to bid him go, and he had a perfect right to
reply, “Yes, I will go, but not without my stays and cravats.
I must first get together the nine-hundred-and-ninety-nine chestsfull
of insufferable rubbish, that I have spent the last thirty years collecting
- and may very well spend the next thirty hours a-packing of.”
And what should we have said to that?’
‘By way of repartee?’ I asked. ‘Two tall footmen
and a pair of crabtree cudgels, I suggest.’
‘The Lord deliver me from the wisdom of laymen!’ cried Romaine.
‘Put myself in the wrong at the beginning of a lawsuit?
No, indeed! There was but one thing to do, and I did it, and burned
my last cartridge in the doing of it. I stunned him. And
it gave us three hours, by which we should make haste to profit; for
if there is one thing sure, it is that he will be up to time again to-morrow
in the morning.’
‘Well,’ said I, ‘I own myself an idiot. Well
do they say, an old soldier, an old innocent! For I guessed
nothing of all this.’
‘And, guessing it, have you the same objections to leave England?’
he inquired.
‘The same,’ said I.
‘It is indispensable,’ he objected.
‘And it cannot be,’ I replied. ‘Reason has nothing
to say in the matter; and I must not let you squander any of yours.
It will be enough to tell you this is an affair of the heart.’
‘Is it even so?’ quoth Romaine, nodding his head.
‘And I might have been sure of it. Place them in a hospital,
put them in a jail in yellow overalls, do what you will, young Jessamy
finds young Jenny. O, have it your own way; I am too old a hand
to argue with young gentlemen who choose to fancy themselves in love;
I have too much experience, thank you. Only, be sure that you
appreciate what you risk: the prison, the dock, the gallows, and the
halter - terribly vulgar circumstances, my young friend; grim, sordid,
earnest; no poetry in that!’
‘And there I am warned,’ I returned gaily. ‘No
man could be warned more finely or with a greater eloquence. And
I am of the same opinion still. Until I have again seen that lady,
nothing shall induce me to quit Great Britain. I have besides
- ’
And here I came to a full stop. It was upon my tongue to have
told him the story of the drovers, but at the first word of it my voice
died in my throat. There might be a limit to the lawyer’s
toleration, I reflected. I had not been so long in Britain altogether;
for the most part of that time I had been by the heels in limbo in Edinburgh
Castle; and already I had confessed to killing one man with a pair of
scissors; and now I was to go on and plead guilty to having settled
another with a holly stick! A wave of discretion went over me
as cold and as deep as the sea.
‘In short, sir, this is a matter of feeling,’ I concluded,
‘and nothing will prevent my going to Edinburgh.’
If I had fired a pistol in his ear he could not have been more startled.
‘To Edinburgh?’ he repeated. ‘Edinburgh? where
the very paving-stones know you!’
‘Then is the murder out!’ said I. ‘But, Mr.
Romaine, is there not sometimes safety in boldness? Is it not
a common-place of strategy to get where the enemy least expects you?
And where would he expect me less?’
‘Faith, there is something in that, too!’ cried the lawyer.
‘Ay, certainly, a great deal in that. All the witnesses
drowned but one, and he safe in prison; you yourself changed beyond
recognition - let us hope - and walking the streets of the very town
you have illustrated by your - well, your eccentricity! It is
not badly combined, indeed!’
‘You approve it, then?’ said I.
‘O, approve!’ said he; ‘there is no question of approval.
There is only one course which I could approve, and that were to escape
to France instanter.’
‘You do not wholly disapprove, at least?’ I substituted.
‘Not wholly; and it would not matter if I did,’ he replied.
‘Go your own way; you are beyond argument. And I am not
sure that you will run more danger by that course than by any other.
Give the servants time to get to bed and fall asleep, then take a country
cross-road and walk, as the rhyme has it, like blazes all night.
In the morning take a chaise or take the mail at pleasure, and continue
your journey with all the decorum and reserve of which you shall be
found capable.’
‘I am taking the picture in,’ I said. ‘Give
me time. ’Tis the tout ensemble I must see: the whole
as opposed to the details.’
‘Mountebank!’ he murmured.
‘Yes, I have it now; and I see myself with a servant, and that
servant is Rowley,’ said I.
‘So as to have one more link with your uncle?’ suggested
the lawyer. ‘Very judicious!’
‘And, pardon me, but that is what it is,’ I exclaimed.
‘Judicious is the word. I am not making a deception fit
to last for thirty years; I do not found a palace in the living granite
for the night. This is a shelter tent - a flying picture - seen,
admired, and gone again in the wink of an eye. What is wanted,
in short, is a trompe-l’œil that shall be good enough
for twelve hours at an inn: is it not so?’
‘It is, and the objection holds. Rowley is but another danger,’
said Romaine.
‘Rowley,’ said I, ‘will pass as a servant from a distance
- as a creature seen poised on the dicky of a bowling chaise.
He will pass at hand as a smart, civil fellow one meets in the inn corridor,
and looks back at, and asks, and is told, “Gentleman’s servant
in Number 4.” He will pass, in fact, all round, except with
his personal friends! My dear sir, pray what do you expect?
Of course if we meet my cousin, or if we meet anybody who took part
in the judicious exhibition of this evening, we are lost; and who’s
denying it? To every disguise, however good and safe, there is
always the weak point; you must always take (let us say - and to take
a simile from your own waistcoat pocket) a snuff box-full of risk.
You’ll get it just as small with Rowley as with anybody else.
And the long and short of it is, the lad’s honest, he likes me,
I trust him; he is my servant, or nobody.’
‘He might not accept,’ said Romaine.
‘I bet you a thousand pounds he does!’ cried I. ‘But
no matter; all you have to do is to send him out to-night on this cross-country
business, and leave the thing to me. I tell you, he will be my
servant, and I tell you, he will do well.’
I had crossed the room, and was already overhauling my wardrobe as I
spoke.
‘Well,’ concluded the lawyer, with a shrug, ‘one risk
with another: à la guerre comme à la guerre, as
you would say. Let the brat come and be useful, at least.’
And he was about to ring the bell, when his eye was caught by my researches
in the wardrobe. ‘Do not fall in love with these coats,
waistcoats, cravats, and other panoply and accoutrements by which you
are now surrounded. You must not run the post as a dandy.
It is not the fashion, even.’
‘You are pleased to be facetious, sir,’ said I; ‘and
not according to knowledge. These clothes are my life, they are
my disguise; and since I can take but few of them, I were a fool indeed
if I selected hastily! Will you understand, once and for all,
what I am seeking? To be invisible, is the first point; the second,
to be invisible in a post-chaise and with a servant. Can you not
perceive the delicacy of the quest? Nothing must be too coarse,
nothing too fine; rien de voyant, rien qui détonne; so
that I may leave everywhere the inconspicuous image of a handsome young
man of a good fortune travelling in proper style, whom the landlord
will forget in twelve hours - and the chambermaid perhaps remember,
God bless her! with a sigh. This is the very fine art of dress.’
‘I have practised it with success for fifty years,’ said
Romaine, with a chuckle. ‘A black suit and a clean shirt
is my infallible recipe.’
‘You surprise me; I did not think you would be shallow!’
said I, lingering between two coats. ‘Pray, Mr. Romaine,
have I your head? or did you travel post and with a smartish servant?’
‘Neither, I admit,’ said he.
‘Which change the whole problem,’ I continued. ‘I
have to dress for a smartish servant and a Russia leather despatch-box.’
That brought me to a stand. I came over and looked at the box
with a moment’s hesitation. ‘Yes,’ I resumed.
‘Yes, and for the despatch-box! It looks moneyed and landed;
it means I have a lawyer. It is an invaluable property.
But I could have wished it to hold less money. The responsibility
is crushing. Should I not do more wisely to take five hundred
pounds, and intrust the remainder with you, Mr. Romaine?’
‘If you are sure you will not want it,’ answered Romaine.
‘I am far from sure of that,’ cried I. ‘In the
first place, as a philosopher. This is the first time I have been
at the head of a large sum, and it is conceivable - who knows himself?
- that I may make it fly. In the second place, as a fugitive.
Who knows what I may need? The whole of it may be inadequate.
But I can always write for more.’
‘You do not understand,’ he replied. ‘I break
off all communication with you here and now. You must give me
a power of attorney ere you start to-night, and then be done with me
trenchantly until better days.’
I believe I offered some objection.
‘Think a little for once of me!’ said Romaine. ‘I
must not have seen you before to-night. To-night we are to have
had our only interview, and you are to have given me the power; and
to-night I am to have lost sight of you again - I know not whither,
you were upon business, it was none of my affairs to question you!
And this, you are to remark, in the interests of your own safety much
more than mine.’
‘I am not even to write to you?’ I said, a little bewildered.
‘I believe I am cutting the last strand that connects you with
common sense,’ he replied. ‘But that is the plain
English of it. You are not even to write; and if you did, I would
not answer.’
‘A letter, however - ’ I began.
‘Listen to me,’ interrupted Romaine. ‘So soon
as your cousin reads the paragraph, what will he do? Put the police
upon looking into my correspondence! So soon as you write to me,
in short, you write to Bow Street; and if you will take my advice, you
will date that letter from France.’
‘The devil!’ said I, for I began suddenly to see that this
might put me out of the way of my business.
‘What is it now?’ says he.
‘There will be more to be done, then, before we can part,’
I answered.
‘I give you the whole night,’ said he. ‘So long
as you are off ere daybreak, I am content.’
‘In short, Mr. Romaine,’ said I, ‘I have had so much
benefit of your advice and services that I am loth to sever the connection,
and would even ask a substitute. I would be obliged for a letter
of introduction to one of your own cloth in Edinburgh - an old man for
choice, very experienced, very respectable, and very secret. Could
you favour me with such a letter?’
‘Why, no,’ said he. ‘Certainly not. I
will do no such thing, indeed.’
‘It would be a great favour, sir,’ I pleaded.
‘It would be an unpardonable blunder,’ he replied.
‘What? Give you a letter of introduction? and when the police
come, I suppose, I must forget the circumstance? No, indeed.
Talk of it no more.’
‘You seem to be always in the right,’ said I. ‘The
letter would be out of the question, I quite see that. But the
lawyer’s name might very well have dropped from you in the way
of conversation; having heard him mentioned, I might profit by the circumstance
to introduce myself; and in this way my business would be the better
done, and you not in the least compromised.’
‘What is this business?’ said Romaine.
‘I have not said that I had any,’ I replied. ‘It
might arise. This is only a possibility that I must keep in view.’
‘Well,’ said he, with a gesture of the hands, ‘I mention
Mr. Robbie; and let that be an end of it! - Or wait!’ he added,
‘I have it. Here is something that will serve you for an
introduction, and cannot compromise me.’ And he wrote his
name and the Edinburgh lawyer’s address on a piece of card and
tossed it to me.
CHAPTER XXI - I BECOME THE OWNER OF A CLARET-COLOURED CHAISE
What with packing, signing papers, and partaking of an excellent cold
supper in the lawyer’s room, it was past two in the morning before
we were ready for the road. Romaine himself let us out of a window
in a part of the house known to Rowley: it appears it served as a kind
of postern to the servants’ hall, by which (when they were in
the mind for a clandestine evening) they would come regularly in and
out; and I remember very well the vinegar aspect of the lawyer on the
receipt of this piece of information - how he pursed his lips, jutted
his eyebrows, and kept repeating, ‘This must be seen to, indeed!
this shall be barred to-morrow in the morning!’ In this
preoccupation, I believe he took leave of me without observing it; our
things were handed out; we heard the window shut behind us; and became
instantly lost in a horrid intricacy of blackness and the shadow of
woods.
A little wet snow kept sleepily falling, pausing, and falling again;
it seemed perpetually beginning to snow and perpetually leaving off;
and the darkness was intense. Time and again we walked into trees;
time and again found ourselves adrift among garden borders or stuck
like a ram in the thicket. Rowley had possessed himself of the
matches, and he was neither to be terrified nor softened. ‘No,
I will not, Mr. Anne, sir,’ he would reply. ‘You know
he tell me to wait till we were over the ’ill. It’s
only a little way now. Why, and I thought you was a soldier, too!’
I was at least a very glad soldier when my valet consented at last to
kindle a thieves’ match. From this, we easily lit the lantern;
and thenceforward, through a labyrinth of woodland paths, were conducted
by its uneasy glimmer. Both booted and great-coated, with tall
hats much of a shape, and laden with booty in the form of a despatch-box,
a case of pistols, and two plump valises, I thought we had very much
the look of a pair of brothers returning from the sack of Amersham Place.
We issued at last upon a country by-road where we might walk abreast
and without precaution. It was nine miles to Aylesbury, our immediate
destination; by a watch, which formed part of my new outfit, it should
be about half-past three in the morning; and as we did not choose to
arrive before daylight, time could not be said to press. I gave
the order to march at ease.
‘Now, Rowley,’ said I, ‘so far so good. You
have come, in the most obliging manner in the world, to carry these
valises. The question is, what next? What are we to do at
Aylesbury? or, more particularly, what are you? Thence, I go on
a journey. Are you to accompany me?’
He gave a little chuckle. ‘That’s all settled already,
Mr. Anne, sir,’ he replied. ‘Why, I’ve got my
things here in the valise - a half a dozen shirts and what not; I’m
all ready, sir: just you lead on: you’ll see.’
‘The devil you have!’ said I. ‘You made pretty
sure of your welcome.’
‘If you please, sir,’ said Rowley.
He looked up at me, in the light of the lantern, with a boyish shyness
and triumph that awoke my conscience. I could never let this innocent
involve himself in the perils and difficulties that beset my course,
without some hint of warning, which it was a matter of extreme delicacy
to make plain enough and not too plain.
‘No, no,’ said I; ‘you may think you have made a choice,
but it was blindfold, and you must make it over again. The Count’s
service is a good one; what are you leaving it for? Are you not
throwing away the substance for the shadow? No, do not answer
me yet. You imagine that I am a prosperous nobleman, just declared
my uncle’s heir, on the threshold of the best of good fortune,
and, from the point of view of a judicious servant, a jewel of a master
to serve and stick to? Well, my boy, I am nothing of the kind,
nothing of the kind.’
As I said the words, I came to a full stop and held up the lantern to
his face. He stood before me, brilliantly illuminated on the background
of impenetrable night and falling snow, stricken to stone between his
double burden like an ass between two panniers, and gaping at me like
a blunderbuss. I had never seen a face so predestined to be astonished,
or so susceptible of rendering the emotion of surprise; and it tempted
me as an open piano tempts the musician.
‘Nothing of the sort, Rowley,’ I continued, in a churchyard
voice. ‘These are appearances, petty appearances.
I am in peril, homeless, hunted. I count scarce any one in England
who is not my enemy. From this hour I drop my name, my title;
I become nameless; my name is proscribed. My liberty, my life,
hang by a hair. The destiny which you will accept, if you go forth
with me, is to be tracked by spies, to hide yourself under a false name,
to follow the desperate pretences and perhaps share the fate of a murderer
with a price upon his head.’
His face had been hitherto beyond expectation, passing from one depth
to another of tragic astonishment, and really worth paying to see; but
at this it suddenly cleared. ‘Oh, I ain’t afraid!’
he said; and then, choking into laughter, ‘why, I see it from
the first!’
I could have beaten him. But I had so grossly overshot the mark
that I suppose it took me two good miles of road and half an hour of
elocution to persuade him I had been in earnest. In the course
of which I became so interested in demonstrating my present danger that
I forgot all about my future safety, and not only told him the story
of Goguelat, but threw in the business of the drovers as well, and ended
by blurting out that I was a soldier of Napoleon’s and a prisoner
of war.
This was far from my views when I began; and it is a common complaint
of me that I have a long tongue. I believe it is a fault beloved
by fortune. Which of you considerate fellows would have done a
thing at once so foolhardy and so wise as to make a confidant of a boy
in his teens, and positively smelling of the nursery? And when
had I cause to repent it? There is none so apt as a boy to be
the adviser of any man in difficulties such as mine. To the beginnings
of virile common sense he adds the last lights of the child’s
imagination; and he can fling himself into business with that superior
earnestness that properly belongs to play. And Rowley was a boy
made to my hand. He had a high sense of romance, and a secret
cultus for all soldiers and criminals. His travelling library
consisted of a chap-book life of Wallace and some sixpenny parts of
the ‘Old Bailey Sessions Papers’ by Gurney the shorthand
writer; and the choice depicts his character to a hair. You can
imagine how his new prospects brightened on a boy of this disposition.
To be the servant and companion of a fugitive, a soldier, and a murderer,
rolled in one - to live by stratagems, disguises, and false names, in
an atmosphere of midnight and mystery so thick that you could cut it
with a knife - was really, I believe, more dear to him than his meals,
though he was a great trencherman, and something of a glutton besides.
For myself, as the peg by which all this romantic business hung, I was
simply idolised from that moment; and he would rather have sacrificed
his hand than surrendered the privilege of serving me.
We arranged the terms of our campaign, trudging amicably in the snow,
which now, with the approach of morning, began to fall to purpose.
I chose the name of Ramornie, I imagine from its likeness to Romaine;
Rowley, from an irresistible conversion of ideas, I dubbed Gammon.
His distress was laughable to witness: his own choice of an unassuming
nickname had been Claude Duval! We settled our procedure at the
various inns where we should alight, rehearsed our little manners like
a piece of drill until it seemed impossible we should ever be taken
unprepared; and in all these dispositions, you maybe sure the despatch-box
was not forgotten. Who was to pick it up, who was to set it down,
who was to remain beside it, who was to sleep with it - there was no
contingency omitted, all was gone into with the thoroughness of a drill-sergeant
on the one hand and a child with a new plaything on the other.
‘I say, wouldn’t it look queer if you and me was to come
to the post-house with all this luggage?’ said Rowley.
‘I dare say,’ I replied. ‘But what else is to
be done?’
‘Well, now, sir - you hear me,’ says Rowley. ‘I
think it would look more natural-like if you was to come to the post-house
alone, and with nothing in your ’ands - more like a gentleman,
you know. And you might say that your servant and baggage was
a-waiting for you up the road. I think I could manage, somehow,
to make a shift with all them dratted things - leastways if you was
to give me a ’and up with them at the start.’
‘And I would see you far enough before I allowed you to try, Mr.
Rowley!’ I cried. ‘Why, you would be quite defenceless!
A footpad that was an infant child could rob you. And I should
probably come driving by to find you in a ditch with your throat cut.
But there is something in your idea, for all that; and I propose we
put it in execution no farther forward than the next corner of a lane.’
Accordingly, instead of continuing to aim for Aylesbury, we headed by
cross-roads for some point to the northward of it, whither I might assist
Rowley with the baggage, and where I might leave him to await my return
in the post-chaise.
It was snowing to purpose, the country all white, and ourselves walking
snowdrifts, when the first glimmer of the morning showed us an inn upon
the highwayside. Some distance off, under the shelter of a corner
of the road and a clump of trees, I loaded Rowley with the whole of
our possessions, and watched him till he staggered in safety into the
doors of the Green Dragon, which was the sign of the house.
Thence I walked briskly into Aylesbury, rejoicing in my freedom and
the causeless good spirits that belong to a snowy morning; though, to
be sure, long before I had arrived the snow had again ceased to fall,
and the eaves of Aylesbury were smoking in the level sun. There
was an accumulation of gigs and chaises in the yard, and a great bustle
going forward in the coffee-room and about the doors of the inn.
At these evidences of so much travel on the road I was seized with a
misgiving lest it should be impossible to get horses, and I should be
detained in the precarious neighbourhood of my cousin. Hungry
as I was, I made my way first of all to the postmaster, where he stood
- a big, athletic, horsey-looking man, blowing into a key in the corner
of the yard.
On my making my modest request, he awoke from his indifference into
what seemed passion.
‘A po’-shay and ’osses!’ he cried. ‘Do
I look as if I ’ad a po’-shay and ’osses? Damn
me, if I ’ave such a thing on the premises. I don’t
make ’osses and chaises - I ’ire ’em.
You might be God Almighty!’ said he; and instantly, as if he had
observed me for the first time, he broke off, and lowered his voice
into the confidential. ‘Why, now that I see you are a gentleman,’
said he, ‘I’ll tell you what! If you like to buy,
I have the article to fit you. Second-’and shay by Lycett,
of London. Latest style; good as new. Superior fittin’s,
net on the roof, baggage platform, pistol ’olsters - the most
com-plete and the most gen-teel turn-out I ever see! The ’ole
for seventy-five pound! It’s as good as givin’ her
away!’
‘Do you propose I should trundle it myself, like a hawker’s
barrow?’ said I. ‘Why, my good man, if I had to stop
here, anyway, I should prefer to buy a house and garden!’
‘Come and look at her!’ he cried; and, with the word, links
his arm in mine and carries me to the outhouse where the chaise was
on view.
It was just the sort of chaise that I had dreamed of for my purpose:
eminently rich, inconspicuous, and genteel; for, though I thought the
postmaster no great authority, I was bound to agree with him so far.
The body was painted a dark claret, and the wheels an invisible green.
The lamp and glasses were bright as silver; and the whole equipage had
an air of privacy and reserve that seemed to repel inquiry and disarm
suspicion. With a servant like Rowley, and a chaise like this,
I felt that I could go from the Land’s End to John o’ Groat’s
House amid a population of bowing ostlers. And I suppose I betrayed
in my manner the degree in which the bargain tempted me.
‘Come,’ cried the postmaster - ‘I’ll make it
seventy, to oblige a friend!’
‘The point is: the horses,’ said I.
‘Well,’ said he, consulting his watch, ‘it’s
now gone the ’alf after eight. What time do you want her
at the door?’
‘Horses and all?’ said I.
‘‘Osses and all!’ says he. ‘One good turn
deserves another. You give me seventy pound for the shay, and
I’ll ’oss it for you. I told you I didn’t make
’osses; but I can make ’em, to oblige a friend.’
What would you have? It was not the wisest thing in the world
to buy a chaise within a dozen miles of my uncle’s house; but
in this way I got my horses for the next stage. And by any other
it appeared that I should have to wait. Accordingly I paid the
money down - perhaps twenty pounds too much, though it was certainly
a well-made and well-appointed vehicle - ordered it round in half an
hour, and proceeded to refresh myself with breakfast.
The table to which I sat down occupied the recess of a bay-window, and
commanded a view of the front of the inn, where I continued to be amused
by the successive departures of travellers - the fussy and the offhand,
the niggardly and the lavish - all exhibiting their different characters
in that diagnostic moment of the farewell: some escorted to the stirrup
or the chaise door by the chamberlain, the chambermaids and the waiters
almost in a body, others moving off under a cloud, without human countenance.
In the course of this I became interested in one for whom this ovation
began to assume the proportions of a triumph; not only the under-servants,
but the barmaid, the landlady, and my friend the postmaster himself,
crowding about the steps to speed his departure. I was aware,
at the same time, of a good deal of merriment, as though the traveller
were a man of a ready wit, and not too dignified to air it in that society.
I leaned forward with a lively curiosity; and the next moment I had
blotted myself behind the teapot. The popular traveller had turned
to wave a farewell; and behold! he was no other than my cousin Alain.
It was a change of the sharpest from the angry, pallid man I had seen
at Amersham Place. Ruddy to a fault, illuminated with vintages,
crowned with his curls like Bacchus, he now stood before me for an instant,
the perfect master of himself, smiling with airs of conscious popularity
and insufferable condescension. He reminded me at once of a royal
duke, or an actor turned a little elderly, and of a blatant bagman who
should have been the illegitimate son of a gentleman. A moment
after he was gliding noiselessly on the road to London.
I breathed again. I recognised, with heartfelt gratitude, how
lucky I had been to go in by the stable-yard instead of the hostelry
door, and what a fine occasion of meeting my cousin I had lost by the
purchase of the claret-coloured chaise! The next moment I remembered
that there was a waiter present. No doubt but he must have observed
me when I crouched behind the breakfast equipage; no doubt but he must
have commented on this unusual and undignified behaviour; and it was
essential that I should do something to remove the impression.
‘Waiter!’ said I, ‘that was the nephew of Count Carwell
that just drove off, wasn’t it?’
‘Yes, sir: Viscount Carwell we calls him,’ he replied.
‘Ah, I thought as much,’ said I. ‘Well, well,
damn all these Frenchmen, say I!’
‘You may say so indeed, sir,’ said the waiter. ‘They
ain’t not to say in the same field with our ’ome-raised
gentry.’
‘Nasty tempers?’ I suggested.
‘Beas’ly temper, sir, the Viscount ’ave,’ said
the waiter with feeling. ‘Why, no longer agone than this
morning, he was sitting breakfasting and reading in his paper.
I suppose, sir, he come on some pilitical information, or it might be
about ’orses, but he raps his ’and upon the table sudden
and calls for curacoa. It gave me quite a turn, it did; he did
it that sudden and ’ard. Now, sir, that may be manners in
France, but hall I can say is, that I’m not used to it.’
‘Reading the paper, was he?’ said I. ‘What paper,
eh?’
‘Here it is, sir,’ exclaimed the waiter. ‘Seems
like as if he’d dropped it.’
And picking it off the floor he presented it to me.
I may say that I was quite prepared, that I already knew what to expect;
but at sight of the cold print my heart stopped beating. There
it was: the fulfilment of Romaine’s apprehension was before me;
the paper was laid open at the capture of Clausel. I felt as if
I could take a little curacoa myself, but on second thoughts called
for brandy. It was badly wanted; and suddenly I observed the waiter’s
eye to sparkle, as it were, with some recognition; made certain he had
remarked the resemblance between me and Alain; and became aware - as
by a revelation - of the fool’s part I had been playing.
For I had now managed to put my identification beyond a doubt, if Alain
should choose to make his inquiries at Aylesbury; and, as if that were
not enough, I had added, at an expense of seventy pounds, a clue by
which he might follow me through the length and breadth of England,
in the shape of the claret-coloured chaise! That elegant equipage
(which I began to regard as little better than a claret-coloured ante-room
to the hangman’s cart) coming presently to the door, I left my
breakfast in the middle and departed; posting to the north as diligently
as my cousin Alain was posting to the south, and putting my trust (such
as it was) in an opposite direction and equal speed.
CHAPTER XXII - CHARACTER AND ACQUIREMENTS OF MR. ROWLEY
I am not certain that I had ever really appreciated before that hour
the extreme peril of the adventure on which I was embarked. The
sight of my cousin, the look of his face - so handsome, so jovial at
the first sight, and branded with so much malignity as you saw it on
the second - with his hyperbolical curls in order, with his neckcloth
tied as if for the conquests of love, setting forth (as I had no doubt
in the world he was doing) to clap the Bow Street runners on my trail,
and cover England with handbills, each dangerous as a loaded musket,
convinced me for the first time that the affair was no less serious
than death. I believe it came to a near touch whether I should
not turn the horses’ heads at the next stage and make directly
for the coast. But I was now in the position of a man who should
have thrown his gage into the den of lions; or, better still, like one
who should have quarrelled overnight under the influence of wine, and
now, at daylight, in a cold winter’s morning, and humbly sober,
must make good his words. It is not that I thought any the less,
or any the less warmly, of Flora. But, as I smoked a grim segar
that morning in a corner of the chaise, no doubt I considered, in the
first place, that the letter-post had been invented, and admitted privately
to myself, in the second, that it would have been highly possible to
write her on a piece of paper, seal it, and send it skimming by the
mail, instead of going personally into these egregious dangers, and
through a country that I beheld crowded with gibbets and Bow Street
officers. As for Sim and Candlish, I doubt if they crossed my
mind.
At the Green Dragon Rowley was waiting on the doorsteps with the luggage,
and really was bursting with unpalatable conversation.
‘Who do you think we’ve ’ad ’ere, sir?’
he began breathlessly, as the chaise drove off. ‘Red Breasts’;
and he nodded his head portentously.
‘Red Breasts?’ I repeated, for I stupidly did not understand
at the moment an expression I had often heard.
‘Ah!’ said he. ‘Red weskits. Runners.
Bow Street runners. Two on’ em, and one was Lavender himself!
I hear the other say quite plain, “Now, Mr. Lavender, if
you’re ready.” They was breakfasting as nigh me as
I am to that postboy. They’re all right; they ain’t
after us. It’s a forger; and I didn’t send them off
on a false scent - O no! I thought there was no use in having
them over our way; so I give them “very valuable information,”
Mr. Lavender said, and tipped me a tizzy for myself; and they’re
off to Luton. They showed me the ’andcuffs, too - the other
one did - and he clicked the dratted things on my wrist; and I tell
you, I believe I nearly went off in a swound! There’s something
so beastly in the feel of them! Begging your pardon, Mr. Anne,’
he added, with one of his delicious changes from the character of the
confidential schoolboy into that of the trained, respectful servant.
Well, I must not be proud! I cannot say I found the subject of
handcuffs to my fancy; and it was with more asperity than was needful
that I reproved him for the slip about the name.
‘Yes, Mr. Ramornie,’ says he, touching his hat. ‘Begging
your pardon, Mr. Ramornie. But I’ve been very piticular,
sir, up to now; and you may trust me to be very piticular in the future.
It were only a slip, sir.’
‘My good boy,’ said I, with the most imposing severity,
‘there must be no slips. Be so good as to remember that
my life is at stake.’
I did not embrace the occasion of telling him how many I had made myself.
It is my principle that an officer must never be wrong. I have
seen two divisions beating their brains out for a fortnight against
a worthless and quite impregnable castle in a pass: I knew we were only
doing it for discipline, because the General had said so at first, and
had not yet found any way out of his own words; and I highly admired
his force of character, and throughout these operations thought my life
exposed in a very good cause. With fools and children, which included
Rowley, the necessity was even greater. I proposed to myself to
be infallible; and even when he expressed some wonder at the purchase
of the claret-coloured chaise, I put him promptly in his place.
In our situation, I told him, everything had to be sacrificed to appearances;
doubtless, in a hired chaise, we should have had more freedom, but look
at the dignity! I was so positive, that I had sometimes almost
convinced myself. Not for long, you may be certain! This
detestable conveyance always appeared to me to be laden with Bow Street
officers, and to have a placard upon the back of it publishing my name
and crimes. If I had paid seventy pounds to get the thing, I should
not have stuck at seven hundred to be safely rid of it.
And if the chaise was a danger, what an anxiety was the despatch-box
and its golden cargo! I had never had a care but to draw my pay
and spend it; I had lived happily in the regiment, as in my father’s
house, fed by the great Emperor’s commissariat as by ubiquitous
doves of Elijah - or, my faith! if anything went wrong with the commissariat,
helping myself with the best grace in the world from the next peasant!
And now I began to feel at the same time the burthen of riches and the
fear of destitution. There were ten thousand pounds in the despatch-box,
but I reckoned in French money, and had two hundred and fifty thousand
agonies; I kept it under my hand all day, I dreamed of it at night.
In the inns, I was afraid to go to dinner and afraid to go to sleep.
When I walked up a hill I durst not leave the doors of the claret-coloured
chaise. Sometimes I would change the disposition of the funds:
there were days when I carried as much as five or six thousand pounds
on my own person, and only the residue continued to voyage in the treasure-chest
- days when I bulked all over like my cousin, crackled to a touch with
bank paper, and had my pockets weighed to bursting-point with sovereigns.
And there were other days when I wearied of the thing - or grew ashamed
of it - and put all the money back where it had come from: there let
it take its chance, like better people! In short, I set Rowley
a poor example of consistency, and in philosophy, none at all.
Little he cared! All was one to him so long as he was amused,
and I never knew any one amused more easily. He was thrillingly
interested in life, travel, and his own melodramatic position.
All day he would be looking from the chaise windows with ebullitions
of gratified curiosity, that were sometimes justified and sometimes
not, and that (taken altogether) it occasionally wearied me to be obliged
to share. I can look at horses, and I can look at trees too, although
not fond of it. But why should I look at a lame horse, or a tree
that was like the letter Y? What exhilaration could I feel in
viewing a cottage that was the same colour as ‘the second from
the miller’s’ in some place where I had never been, and
of which I had not previously heard? I am ashamed to complain,
but there were moments when my juvenile and confidential friend weighed
heavy on my hands. His cackle was indeed almost continuous, but
it was never unamiable. He showed an amiable curiosity when he
was asking questions; an amiable guilelessness when he was conferring
information. And both he did largely. I am in a position
to write the biographies of Mr. Rowley, Mr. Rowley’s father and
mother, his Aunt Eliza, and the miller’s dog; and nothing but
pity for the reader, and some misgivings as to the law of copyright,
prevail on me to withhold them.
A general design to mould himself upon my example became early apparent,
and I had not the heart to check it. He began to mimic my carriage;
he acquired, with servile accuracy, a little manner I had of shrugging
the shoulders; and I may say it was by observing it in him that I first
discovered it in myself. One day it came out by chance that I
was of the Catholic religion. He became plunged in thought, at
which I was gently glad. Then suddenly -
‘Odd-rabbit it! I’ll be Catholic too!’ he broke
out. ‘You must teach me it, Mr. Anne - I mean, Ramornie.’
I dissuaded him: alleging that he would find me very imperfectly informed
as to the grounds and doctrines of the Church, and that, after all,
in the matter of religions, it was a very poor idea to change.
‘Of course, my Church is the best,’ said I; ‘but that
is not the reason why I belong to it: I belong to it because it was
the faith of my house. I wish to take my chances with my own people,
and so should you. If it is a question of going to hell, go to
hell like a gentleman with your ancestors.’
‘Well, it wasn’t that,’ he admitted. ‘I
don’t know that I was exactly thinking of hell. Then there’s
the inquisition, too. That’s rather a cawker, you know.’
‘And I don’t believe you were thinking of anything in the
world,’ said I - which put a period to his respectable conversion.
He consoled himself by playing for awhile on a cheap flageolet, which
was one of his diversions, and to which I owed many intervals of peace.
When he first produced it, in the joints, from his pocket, he had the
duplicity to ask me if I played upon it. I answered, no; and he
put the instrument away with a sigh and the remark that he had thought
I might. For some while he resisted the unspeakable temptation,
his fingers visibly itching and twittering about his pocket, even his
interest in the landscape and in sporadic anecdote entirely lost.
Presently the pipe was in his hands again; he fitted, unfitted, refitted,
and played upon it in dumb show for some time.
‘I play it myself a little,’ says he.
‘Do you?’ said I, and yawned.
And then he broke down.
‘Mr. Ramornie, if you please, would it disturb you, sir, if I
was to play a chune?’ he pleaded. And from that hour, the
tootling of the flageolet cheered our way.
He was particularly keen on the details of battles, single combats,
incidents of scouting parties, and the like. These he would make
haste to cap with some of the exploits of Wallace, the only hero with
whom he had the least acquaintance. His enthusiasm was genuine
and pretty. When he learned we were going to Scotland, ‘Well,
then,’ he broke out, ‘I’ll see where Wallace lived!’
And presently after, he fell to moralising. ‘It’s
a strange thing, sir,’ he began, ‘that I seem somehow to
have always the wrong sow by the ear. I’m English after
all, and I glory in it. My eye! don’t I, though! Let
some of your Frenchies come over here to invade, and you’ll see
whether or not! Oh, yes, I’m English to the backbone, I
am. And yet look at me! I got hold of this ’ere William
Wallace and took to him right off; I never heard of such a man before!
And then you came along, and I took to you. And both the two of
you were my born enemies! I - I beg your pardon, Mr. Ramornie,
but would you mind it very much if you didn’t go for to do anything
against England’ - he brought the word out suddenly, like something
hot - ‘when I was along of you?’
I was more affected than I can tell.
‘Rowley,’ I said, ‘you need have no fear. By
how much I love my own honour, by so much I will take care to protect
yours. We are but fraternising at the outposts, as soldiers do.
When the bugle calls, my boy, we must face each other, one for England,
one for France, and may God defend the right!’
So I spoke at the moment; but for all my brave airs, the boy had wounded
me in a vital quarter. His words continued to ring in my hearing.
There was no remission all day of my remorseful thoughts; and that night
(which we lay at Lichfield, I believe) there was no sleep for me in
my bed. I put out the candle and lay down with a good resolution;
and in a moment all was light about me like a theatre, and I saw myself
upon the stage of it playing ignoble parts. I remembered France
and my Emperor, now depending on the arbitrament of war, bent down,
fighting on their knees and with their teeth against so many and such
various assailants. And I burned with shame to be here in England,
cherishing an English fortune, pursuing an English mistress, and not
there, to handle a musket in my native fields, and to manure them with
my body if I fell. I remembered that I belonged to France.
All my fathers had fought for her, and some had died; the voice in my
throat, the sight of my eyes, the tears that now sprang there, the whole
man of me, was fashioned of French earth and born of a French mother;
I had been tended and caressed by a succession of the daughters of France,
the fairest, the most ill-starred; and I had fought and conquered shoulder
to shoulder with her sons. A soldier, a noble, of the proudest
and bravest race in Europe, it had been left to the prattle of a hobbledehoy
lackey in an English chaise to recall me to the consciousness of duty.
When I saw how it was I did not lose time in indecision. The old
classical conflict of love and honour being once fairly before me, it
did not cost me a thought. I was a Saint-Yves de Kéroual;
and I decided to strike off on the morrow for Wakefield and Burchell
Fenn, and embark, as soon as it should be morally possible, for the
succour of my downtrodden fatherland and my beleaguered Emperor.
Pursuant on this resolve, I leaped from bed, made a light, and as the
watchman was crying half-past two in the dark streets of Lichfield,
sat down to pen a letter of farewell to Flora. And then - whether
it was the sudden chill of the night, whether it came by association
of ideas from the remembrance of Swanston Cottage I know not, but there
appeared before me - to the barking of sheep-dogs - a couple of snuffy
and shambling figures, each wrapped in a plaid, each armed with a rude
staff; and I was immediately bowed down to have forgotten them so long,
and of late to have thought of them so cavalierly.
Sure enough there was my errand! As a private person I was neither
French nor English; I was something else first: a loyal gentleman, an
honest man. Sim and Candlish must not be left to pay the penalty
of my unfortunate blow. They held my honour tacitly pledged to
succour them; and it is a sort of stoical refinement entirely foreign
to my nature to set the political obligation above the personal and
private. If France fell in the interval for the lack of Anne de
St.-Yves, fall she must! But I was both surprised and humiliated
to have had so plain a duty bound upon me for so long - and for so long
to have neglected and forgotten it. I think any brave man will
understand me when I say that I went to bed and to sleep with a conscience
very much relieved, and woke again in the morning with a light heart.
The very danger of the enterprise reassured me: to save Sim and Candlish
(suppose the worst to come to the worst) it would be necessary for me
to declare myself in a court of justice, with consequences which I did
not dare to dwell upon; it could never be said that I had chosen the
cheap and the easy - only that in a very perplexing competition of duties
I had risked my life for the most immediate.
We resumed the journey with more diligence: thenceforward posted day
and night; did not halt beyond what was necessary for meals; and the
postillions were excited by gratuities, after the habit of my cousin
Alain. For twopence I could have gone farther and taken four horses;
so extreme was my haste, running as I was before the terrors of an awakened
conscience. But I feared to be conspicuous. Even as it was,
we attracted only too much attention, with our pair and that white elephant,
the seventy-pounds-worth of claret-coloured chaise.
Meanwhile I was ashamed to look Rowley in the face. The young
shaver had contrived to put me wholly in the wrong; he had cost me a
night’s rest and a severe and healthful humiliation; and I was
grateful and embarrassed in his society. This would never do;
it was contrary to all my ideas of discipline; if the officer has to
blush before the private, or the master before the servant, nothing
is left to hope for but discharge or death. I hit upon the idea
of teaching him French; and accordingly, from Lichfield, I became the
distracted master, and he the scholar - how shall I say? indefatigable,
but uninspired. His interest never flagged. He would hear
the same word twenty times with profound refreshment, mispronounce it
in several different ways, and forget it again with magical celerity.
Say it happened to be stirrup. ‘No, I don’t
seem to remember that word, Mr. Anne,’ he would say: ‘it
don’t seem to stick to me, that word don’t.’
And then, when I had told it him again, ‘Etrier!’
he would cry. ‘To be sure! I had it on the tip of
my tongue. Eterier!’ (going wrong already, as if
by a fatal instinct). ‘What will I remember it by, now?
Why, interior, to be sure! I’ll remember it by its
being something that ain’t in the interior of a horse.’
And when next I had occasion to ask him the French for stirrup, it was
a toss-up whether he had forgotten all about it, or gave me exterior
for an answer. He was never a hair discouraged. He seemed
to consider that he was covering the ground at a normal rate.
He came up smiling day after day. ‘Now, sir, shall we do
our French?’ he would say; and I would put questions, and elicit
copious commentary and explanation, but never the shadow of an answer.
My hands fell to my sides; I could have wept to hear him. When
I reflected that he had as yet learned nothing, and what a vast deal
more there was for him to learn, the period of these lessons seemed
to unroll before me vast as eternity, and I saw myself a teacher of
a hundred, and Rowley a pupil of ninety, still hammering on the rudiments!
The wretched boy, I should say, was quite unspoiled by the inevitable
familiarities of the journey. He turned out at each stage the
pink of serving-lads, deft, civil, prompt, attentive, touching his hat
like an automaton, raising the status of Mr. Ramornie in the eyes of
all the inn by his smiling service, and seeming capable of anything
in the world but the one thing I had chosen - learning French!
CHAPTER XXIII - THE ADVENTURE OF THE RUNAWAY COUPLE
The country had for some time back been changing in character.
By a thousand indications I could judge that I was again drawing near
to Scotland. I saw it written in the face of the hills, in the
growth of the trees, and in the glint of the waterbrooks that kept the
high-road company. It might have occurred to me, also, that I
was, at the same time, approaching a place of some fame in Britain -
Gretna Green. Over these same leagues of road - which Rowley and
I now traversed in the claret-coloured chaise, to the note of the flageolet
and the French lesson - how many pairs of lovers had gone bowling northwards
to the music of sixteen scampering horseshoes; and how many irate persons,
parents, uncles, guardians, evicted rivals, had come tearing after,
clapping the frequent red face to the chaise-window, lavishly shedding
their gold about the post-houses, sedulously loading and re-loading,
as they went, their avenging pistols! But I doubt if I had thought
of it at all, before a wayside hazard swept me into the thick of an
adventure of this nature; and I found myself playing providence with
other people’s lives, to my own admiration at the moment - and
subsequently to my own brief but passionate regret.
At rather an ugly corner of an uphill reach I came on the wreck of a
chaise lying on one side in the ditch, a man and a woman in animated
discourse in the middle of the road, and the two postillions, each with
his pair of horses, looking on and laughing from the saddle.
‘Morning breezes! here’s a smash!’ cried Rowley, pocketing
his flageolet in the middle of the Tight Little Island.
I was perhaps more conscious of the moral smash than the physical -
more alive to broken hearts than to broken chaises; for, as plain as
the sun at morning, there was a screw loose in this runaway match.
It is always a bad sign when the lower classes laugh: their taste in
humour is both poor and sinister; and for a man, running the posts with
four horses, presumably with open pockets, and in the company of the
most entrancing little creature conceivable, to have come down so far
as to be laughed at by his own postillions, was only to be explained
on the double hypothesis, that he was a fool and no gentleman.
I have said they were man and woman. I should have said man and
child. She was certainly not more than seventeen, pretty as an
angel, just plump enough to damn a saint, and dressed in various shades
of blue, from her stockings to her saucy cap, in a kind of taking gamut,
the top note of which she flung me in a beam from her too appreciative
eye. There was no doubt about the case: I saw it all. From
a boarding-school, a black-board, a piano, and Clementi’s Sonatinas,
the child had made a rash adventure upon life in the company of a half-bred
hawbuck; and she was already not only regretting it, but expressing
her regret with point and pungency.
As I alighted they both paused with that unmistakable air of being interrupted
in a scene. I uncovered to the lady and placed my services at
their disposal.
It was the man who answered. ‘There’s no use in shamming,
sir,’ said he. ‘This lady and I have run away, and
her father’s after us: road to Gretna, sir. And here have
these nincompoops spilt us in the ditch and smashed the chaise!’
‘Very provoking,’ said I.
‘I don’t know when I’ve been so provoked!’ cried
he, with a glance down the road, of mortal terror.
‘The father is no doubt very much incensed?’ I pursued civilly.
‘O God!’ cried the hawbuck. ‘In short, you see,
we must get out of this. And I’ll tell you what - it may
seem cool, but necessity has no law - if you would lend us your chaise
to the next post-house, it would be the very thing, sir.’
‘I confess it seems cool,’ I replied.
‘What’s that you say, sir?’ he snapped.
‘I was agreeing with you,’ said I. ‘Yes, it
does seem cool; and what is more to the point, it seems unnecessary.
This thing can be arranged in a more satisfactory manner otherwise,
I think. You can doubtless ride?’
This opened a door on the matter of their previous dispute, and the
fellow appeared life-sized in his true colours. ‘That’s
what I’ve been telling her: that, damn her! she must ride!’
he broke out. ‘And if the gentleman’s of the same
mind, why, damme, you shall!’
As he said so, he made a snatch at her wrist, which she evaded with
horror.
I stepped between them.
‘No, sir,’ said I; ‘the lady shall not.’
He turned on me raging. ‘And who are you to interfere?’
he roared.
‘There is here no question of who I am,’ I replied.
‘I may be the devil or the Archbishop of Canterbury for what you
know, or need know. The point is that I can help you - it appears
that nobody else can; and I will tell you how I propose to do it.
I will give the lady a seat in my chaise, if you will return the compliment
by allowing my servant to ride one of your horses.’
I thought he would have sprung at my throat.
‘You have always the alternative before you: to wait here for
the arrival of papa,’ I added.
And that settled him. He cast another haggard look down the road,
and capitulated.
‘I am sure, sir, the lady is very much obliged to you,’
he said, with an ill grace.
I gave her my hand; she mounted like a bird into the chaise; Rowley,
grinning from ear to ear, closed the door behind us; the two impudent
rascals of post-boys cheered and laughed aloud as we drove off; and
my own postillion urged his horses at once into a rattling trot.
It was plain I was supposed by all to have done a very dashing act,
and ravished the bride from the ravisher.
In the meantime I stole a look at the little lady. She was in
a state of pitiable discomposure, and her arms shook on her lap in her
black lace mittens.
‘Madam - ’ I began.
And she, in the same moment, finding her voice: ‘O, what you must
think of me!’
‘Madam,’ said I, ‘what must any gentleman think when
he sees youth, beauty and innocence in distress? I wish I could
tell you that I was old enough to be your father; I think we must give
that up,’ I continued, with a smile. ‘But I will tell
you something about myself which ought to do as well, and to set that
little heart at rest in my society. I am a lover. May I
say it of myself - for I am not quite used to all the niceties of English
- that I am a true lover? There is one whom I admire, adore, obey;
she is no less good than she is beautiful; if she were here, she would
take you to her arms: conceive that she has sent me - that she has said
to me, “Go, be her knight!”’
‘O, I know she must be sweet, I know she must be worthy of you!’
cried the little lady. ‘She would never forget female decorum
- nor make the terrible erratum I’ve done!’
And at this she lifted up her voice and wept.
This did not forward matters: it was in vain that I begged her to be
more composed and to tell me a plain, consecutive tale of her misadventures;
but she continued instead to pour forth the most extraordinary mixture
of the correct school miss and the poor untutored little piece of womanhood
in a false position - of engrafted pedantry and incoherent nature.
‘I am certain it must have been judicial blindness,’ she
sobbed. ‘I can’t think how I didn’t see it,
but I didn’t; and he isn’t, is he? And then a curtain
rose . . . O, what a moment was that! But I knew at once that
you were; you had but to appear from your carriage, and I knew
it, O, she must be a fortunate young lady! And I have no fear
with you, none - a perfect confidence.’
‘Madam,’ said I, ‘a gentleman.’
‘That’s what I mean - a gentleman,’ she exclaimed.
‘And he - and that - he isn’t. O, how shall
I dare meet father!’ And disclosing to me her tear-stained
face, and opening her arms with a tragic gesture: ‘And I am quite
disgraced before all the young ladies, my school-companions!’
she added.
‘O, not so bad as that!’ I cried. ‘Come, come,
you exaggerate, my dear Miss - ? Excuse me if I am too familiar:
I have not yet heard your name.’
‘My name is Dorothy Greensleeves, sir: why should I conceal it?
I fear it will only serve to point an adage to future generations, and
I had meant so differently! There was no young female in the county
more emulous to be thought well of than I. And what a fall was
there! O, dear me, what a wicked, piggish donkey of a girl I have
made of myself, to be sure! And there is no hope! O, Mr. - ’
And at that she paused and asked my name.
I am not writing my eulogium for the Academy; I will admit it was unpardonably
imbecile, but I told it her. If you had been there - and seen
her, ravishingly pretty and little, a baby in years and mind - and heard
her talking like a book, with so much of schoolroom propriety in her
manner, with such an innocent despair in the matter - you would probably
have told her yours. She repeated it after me.
‘I shall pray for you all my life,’ she said. ‘Every
night, when I retire to rest, the last thing I shall do is to remember
you by name.’
Presently I succeeded in winning from her her tale, which was much what
I had anticipated: a tale of a schoolhouse, a walled garden, a fruit-tree
that concealed a bench, an impudent raff posturing in church, an exchange
of flowers and vows over the garden wall, a silly schoolmate for a confidante,
a chaise and four, and the most immediate and perfect disenchantment
on the part of the little lady. ‘And there is nothing to
be done!’ she wailed in conclusion. ‘My error is irretrievable,
I am quite forced to that conclusion. O, Monsieur de Saint-Yves!
who would have thought that I could have been such a blind, wicked donkey!’
I should have said before - only that I really do not know when it came
in - that we had been overtaken by the two post-boys, Rowley and Mr.
Bellamy, which was the hawbuck’s name, bestriding the four post-horses;
and that these formed a sort of cavalry escort, riding now before, now
behind the chaise, and Bellamy occasionally posturing at the window
and obliging us with some of his conversation. He was so ill-received
that I declare I was tempted to pity him, remembering from what a height
he had fallen, and how few hours ago it was since the lady had herself
fled to his arms, all blushes and ardour. Well, these great strokes
of fortune usually befall the unworthy, and Bellamy was now the legitimate
object of my commiseration and the ridicule of his own post-boys!
‘Miss Dorothy,’ said I, ‘you wish to be delivered
from this man?’
‘O, if it were possible!’ she cried. ‘But not
by violence.’
‘Not in the least, ma’am,’ I replied. ‘The
simplest thing in life. We are in a civilised country; the man’s
a malefactor - ’
‘O, never!’ she cried. ‘Do not even dream it!
With all his faults, I know he is not that.’
‘Anyway, he’s in the wrong in this affair - on the wrong
side of the law, call it what you please,’ said I; and with that,
our four horsemen having for the moment headed us by a considerable
interval, I hailed my post-boy and inquired who was the nearest magistrate
and where he lived. Archdeacon Clitheroe, he told me, a prodigious
dignitary, and one who lived but a lane or two back, and at the distance
of only a mile or two out of the direct road. I showed him the
king’s medallion.
‘Take the lady there, and at full gallop,’ I cried.
‘Right, sir! Mind yourself,’ says the postillion.
And before I could have thought it possible, he had turned the carriage
to the rightabout and we were galloping south.
Our outriders were quick to remark and imitate the manoeuvre, and came
flying after us with a vast deal of indiscriminate shouting; so that
the fine, sober picture of a carriage and escort, that we had presented
but a moment back, was transformed in the twinkling of an eye into the
image of a noisy fox-chase. The two postillions and my own saucy
rogue were, of course, disinterested actors in the comedy; they rode
for the mere sport, keeping in a body, their mouths full of laughter,
waving their hats as they came on, and crying (as the fancy struck them)
Tally-ho!’ ‘Stop, thief!’ ‘A highwayman!
A highwayman!’ It was otherguess work with Bellamy.
That gentleman no sooner observed our change of direction than he turned
his horse with so much violence that the poor animal was almost cast
upon its side, and launched her in immediate and desperate pursuit.
As he approached I saw that his face was deadly white and that he carried
a drawn pistol in his hand. I turned at once to the poor little
bride that was to have been, and now was not to be; she, upon her side,
deserting the other window, turned as if to meet me.
‘O, O, don’t let him kill me!’ she screamed.
‘Never fear,’ I replied.
Her face was distorted with terror. Her hands took hold upon me
with the instinctive clutch of an infant. The chaise gave a flying
lurch, which took the feet from under me and tumbled us anyhow upon
the seat. And almost in the same moment the head of Bellamy appeared
in the window which Missy had left free for him.
Conceive the situation! The little lady and I were falling - or
had just fallen - backward on the seat, and offered to the eye a somewhat
ambiguous picture. The chaise was speeding at a furious pace,
and with the most violent leaps and lurches, along the highway.
Into this bounding receptacle Bellamy interjected his head, his pistol
arm, and his pistol; and since his own horse was travelling still faster
than the chaise, he must withdraw all of them again in the inside of
the fraction of a minute. He did so, but he left the charge of
the pistol behind him - whether by design or accident I shall never
know, and I dare say he has forgotten! Probably he had only meant
to threaten, in hopes of causing us to arrest our flight. In the
same moment came the explosion and a pitiful cry from Missy; and my
gentleman, making certain he had struck her, went down the road pursued
by the furies, turned at the first corner, took a flying leap over the
thorn hedge, and disappeared across country in the least possible time.
Rowley was ready and eager to pursue; but I withheld him, thinking we
were excellently quit of Mr. Bellamy, at no more cost than a scratch
on the forearm and a bullet-hole in the left-hand claret-coloured panel.
And accordingly, but now at a more decent pace, we proceeded on our
way to Archdeacon Clitheroe’s, Missy’s gratitude and admiration
were aroused to a high pitch by this dramatic scene, and what she was
pleased to call my wound. She must dress it for me with her handkerchief,
a service which she rendered me even with tears. I could well
have spared them, not loving on the whole to be made ridiculous, and
the injury being in the nature of a cat’s scratch. Indeed,
I would have suggested for her kind care rather the cure of my coat-sleeve,
which had suffered worse in the encounter; but I was too wise to risk
the anti-climax. That she had been rescued by a hero, that the
hero should have been wounded in the affray, and his wound bandaged
with her handkerchief (which it could not even bloody), ministered incredibly
to the recovery of her self-respect; and I could hear her relate the
incident to ‘the young ladies, my school-companions,’ in
the most approved manner of Mrs. Radcliffe! To have insisted on
the torn coat-sleeve would have been unmannerly, if not inhuman.
Presently the residence of the archdeacon began to heave in sight.
A chaise and four smoking horses stood by the steps, and made way for
us on our approach; and even as we alighted there appeared from the
interior of the house a tall ecclesiastic, and beside him a little,
headstrong, ruddy man, in a towering passion, and brandishing over his
head a roll of paper. At sight of him Miss Dorothy flung herself
on her knees with the most moving adjurations, calling him father, assuring
him she was wholly cured and entirely repentant of her disobedience,
and entreating forgiveness; and I soon saw that she need fear no great
severity from Mr. Greensleeves, who showed himself extraordinarily fond,
loud, greedy of caresses and prodigal of tears.
To give myself a countenance, as well as to have all ready for the road
when I should find occasion, I turned to quit scores with Bellamy’s
two postillions. They had not the least claim on me, but one of
which they were quite ignorant - that I was a fugitive. It is
the worst feature of that false position that every gratuity becomes
a case of conscience. You must not leave behind you any one discontented
nor any one grateful. But the whole business had been such a ‘hurrah-boys’
from the beginning, and had gone off in the fifth act so like a melodrama,
in explosions, reconciliations, and the rape of a post-horse, that it
was plainly impossible to keep it covered. It was plain it would
have to be talked over in all the inn-kitchens for thirty miles about,
and likely for six months to come. It only remained for me, therefore,
to settle on that gratuity which should be least conspicuous - so large
that nobody could grumble, so small that nobody would be tempted to
boast. My decision was hastily and nor wisely taken. The
one fellow spat on his tip (so he called it) for luck; the other developing
a sudden streak of piety, prayed God bless me with fervour. It
seemed a demonstration was brewing, and I determined to be off at once.
Bidding my own post-boy and Rowley be in readiness for an immediate
start, I reascended the terrace and presented myself, hat in hand, before
Mr. Greensleeves and the archdeacon.
‘You will excuse me, I trust,’ said I. ‘I think
shame to interrupt this agreeable scene of family effusion, which I
have been privileged in some small degree to bring about.’
And at these words the storm broke.
‘Small degree! small degree, sir!’ cries the father; ‘that
shall not pass, Mr. St. Eaves! If I’ve got my darling back,
and none the worse for that vagabone rascal, I know whom I have to thank.
Shake hands with me - up to the elbows, sir! A Frenchman you may
be, but you’re one of the right breed, by God! And, by God,
sir, you may have anything you care to ask of me, down to Dolly’s
hand, by God!’
All this he roared out in a voice surprisingly powerful from so small
a person. Every word was thus audible to the servants, who had
followed them out of the house and now congregated about us on the terrace,
as well as to Rowley and the five postillions on the gravel sweep below.
The sentiments expressed were popular; some ass, whom the devil moved
to be my enemy, proposed three cheers, and they were given with a will.
To hear my own name resounding amid acclamations in the hills of Westmorland
was flattering, perhaps; but it was inconvenient at a moment when (as
I was morally persuaded) police handbills were already speeding after
me at the rate of a hundred miles a day.
Nor was that the end of it. The archdeacon must present his compliments,
and pressed upon me some of his West India sherry, and I was carried
into a vastly fine library, where I was presented to his lady wife.
While we were at sherry in the library, ale was handed round upon the
terrace. Speeches were made, hands were shaken, Missy (at her
father’s request) kissed me farewell, and the whole party reaccompanied
me to the terrace, where they stood waving hats and handkerchiefs, and
crying farewells to all the echoes of the mountains until the chaise
had disappeared.
The echoes of the mountains were engaged in saying to me privately:
‘You fool, you have done it now!’
‘They do seem to have got ’old of your name, Mr. Anne,’
said Rowley. ‘It weren’t my fault this time.’
‘It was one of those accidents that can never be foreseen,’
said I, affecting a dignity that I was far from feeling. ‘Some
one recognised me.’
‘Which on ’em, Mr. Anne?’ said the rascal.
‘That is a senseless question; it can make no difference who it
was,’ I returned.
‘No, nor that it can’t!’ cried Rowley. ‘I
say, Mr. Anne, sir, it’s what you would call a jolly mess, ain’t
it? looks like “clean bowled-out in the middle stump,” don’t
it?’
‘I fail to understand you, Rowley.’
‘Well, what I mean is, what are we to do about this one?’
pointing to the postillion in front of us, as he alternately hid and
revealed his patched breeches to the trot of his horse. ‘He
see you get in this morning under Mr. Ramornie - I was very piticular
to Mr. Ramornie you, if you remember, sir - and he see you get
in again under Mr. Saint Eaves, and whatever’s he going to see
you get out under? that’s what worries me, sir. It don’t
seem to me like as if the position was what you call stratetegic!’
‘Parrrbleu! will you let me be!’ I cried. ‘I
have to think; you cannot imagine how your constant idiotic prattle
annoys me.’
‘Beg pardon, Mr. Anne,’ said he; and the next moment, ‘You
wouldn’t like for us to do our French now, would you, Mr. Anne?’
‘Certainly not,’ said I. ‘Play upon your flageolet.’
The which he did with what seemed to me to be irony.
Conscience doth make cowards of us all! I was so downcast by my
pitiful mismanagement of the morning’s business that I shrank
from the eye of my own hired infant, and read offensive meanings into
his idle tootling.
I took off my coat, and set to mending it, soldier-fashion, with a needle
and thread. There is nothing more conducive to thought, above
all in arduous circumstances; and as I sewed, I gradually gained a clearness
upon my affairs. I must be done with the claret-coloured chaise
at once. It should be sold at the next stage for what it would
bring. Rowley and I must take back to the road on our four feet,
and after a decent interval of trudging, get places on some coach for
Edinburgh again under new names! So much trouble and toil, so
much extra risk and expense and loss of time, and all for a slip of
the tongue to a little lady in blue!
CHAPTER XXIV - THE INN-KEEPER OF KIRKBY-LONSDALE
I had hitherto conceived and partly carried out an ideal that was dear
to my heart. Rowley and I descended from our claret-coloured chaise,
a couple of correctly dressed, brisk, bright-eyed young fellows, like
a pair of aristocratic mice; attending singly to our own affairs, communicating
solely with each other, and that with the niceties and civilities of
drill. We would pass through the little crowd before the door
with high-bred preoccupation, inoffensively haughty, after the best
English pattern; and disappear within, followed by the envy and admiration
of the bystanders, a model master and servant, point-device in every
part. It was a heavy thought to me, as we drew up before the inn
at Kirkby-Lonsdale, that this scene was now to be enacted for the last
time. Alas! and had I known it, it was to go of with so inferior
a grace!
I had been injudiciously liberal to the post-boys of the chaise and
four. My own post-boy, he of the patched breeches, now stood before
me, his eyes glittering with greed, his hand advanced. It was
plain he anticipated something extraordinary by way of a pourboire;
and considering the marches and counter-marches by which I had extended
the stage, the military character of our affairs with Mr. Bellamy, and
the bad example I had set before him at the archdeacon’s, something
exceptional was certainly to be done. But these are always nice
questions, to a foreigner above all: a shade too little will suggest
niggardliness, a shilling too much smells of hush-money. Fresh
from the scene at the archdeacon’s, and flushed by the idea that
I was now nearly done with the responsibilities of the claret-coloured
chaise, I put into his hands five guineas; and the amount served only
to waken his cupidity.
‘O, come, sir, you ain’t going to fob me of with this?
Why, I seen fire at your side!’ he cried.
It would never do to give him more; I felt I should become the fable
of Kirkby-Lonsdale if I did; and I looked him in the face, sternly but
still smiling, and addressed him with a voice of uncompromising firmness.
‘If you do not like it, give it back,’ said I.
He pocketed the guineas with the quickness of a conjurer, and, like
a base-born cockney as he was, fell instantly to casting dirt.
‘’Ave your own way of it, Mr. Ramornie - leastways Mr. St.
Eaves, or whatever your blessed name may be. Look ’ere’
- turning for sympathy to the stable-boys - ‘this is a blessed
business. Blessed ’ard, I calls it. ’Ere I takes
up a blessed son of a pop-gun what calls hisself anything you care to
mention, and turns out to be a blessed mounseer at the end of
it! ’Ere ’ave I been drivin’ of him up and down
all day, a-carrying off of gals, a-shootin’ of pistyils, and a-drinkin’
of sherry and hale; and wot does he up and give me but a blank, blank,
blanketing blank!’
The fellow’s language had become too powerful for reproduction,
and I passed it by.
Meanwhile I observed Rowley fretting visibly at the bit; another moment,
and he would have added a last touch of the ridiculous to our arrival
by coming to his hands with the postillion.
‘Rowley!’ cried I reprovingly.
Strictly it should have been Gammon; but in the hurry of the moment,
my fault (I can only hope) passed unperceived. At the same time
I caught the eye of the postmaster. He was long and lean, and
brown and bilious; he had the drooping nose of the humourist, and the
quick attention of a man of parts. He read my embarrassment in
a glance, stepped instantly forward, sent the post-boy to the rightabout
with half a word, and was back next moment at my side.
‘Dinner in a private room, sir? Very well. John, No.
4! What wine would you care to mention? Very well, sir.
Will you please to order fresh horses? Not, sir? Very well.’
Each of these expressions was accompanied by something in the nature
of a bow, and all were prefaced by something in the nature of a smile,
which I could very well have done without. The man’s politeness
was from the teeth outwards; behind and within, I was conscious of a
perpetual scrutiny: the scene at his doorstep, the random confidences
of the post-boy, had not been thrown away on this observer; and it was
under a strong fear of coming trouble that I was shown at last into
my private room. I was in half a mind to have put off the whole
business. But the truth is, now my name had got abroad, my fear
of the mail that was coming, and the handbills it should contain, had
waxed inordinately, and I felt I could never eat a meal in peace till
I had severed my connection with the claret-coloured chaise.
Accordingly, as soon as I had done with dinner, I sent my compliments
to the landlord and requested he should take a glass of wine with me.
He came; we exchanged the necessary civilities, and presently I approached
my business.
‘By the bye,’ said I, ‘we had a brush down the road
to-day. I dare say you may have heard of it?’
He nodded.
‘And I was so unlucky as to get a pistol ball in the panel of
my chaise,’ I continued, ‘which makes it simply useless
to me. Do you know any one likely to buy?’
‘I can well understand that,’ said the landlord, ‘I
was looking at it just now; it’s as good as ruined, is that chaise.
General rule, people don’t like chaises with bullet-holes.’
‘Too much Romance of the Forest?’ I suggested, recalling
my little friend of the morning, and what I was sure had been her favourite
reading - Mrs. Radcliffe’s novels.
‘Just so,’ said he. ‘They may be right, they
may be wrong; I’m not the judge. But I suppose it’s
natural, after all, for respectable people to like things respectable
about them; not bullet-holes, nor puddles of blood, nor men with aliases.’
I took a glass of wine and held it up to the light to show that my hand
was steady.
‘Yes,’ said I, ‘I suppose so.’
‘You have papers, of course, showing you are the proper owner?’
he inquired.
‘There is the bill, stamped and receipted,’ said I, tossing
it across to him.
He looked at it.
‘This all you have?’ he asked.
‘It is enough, at least,’ said I. ‘It shows
you where I bought and what I paid for it.’
‘Well, I don’t know,’ he said. ‘You want
some paper of identification.’
‘To identify the chaise?’ I inquired.
‘Not at all: to identify you,’ said he.
‘My good sir, remember yourself!’ said I. ‘The
title-deeds of my estate are in that despatch-box; but you do not seriously
suppose that I should allow you to examine them?’
‘Well, you see, this paper proves that some Mr. Ramornie paid
seventy guineas for a chaise,’ said the fellow. ‘That’s
all well and good; but who’s to prove to me that you are Mr. Ramornie?’
‘Fellow!’ cried I.
‘O, fellow as much as you please!’ said he. ‘Fellow,
with all my heart! That changes nothing. I am fellow, of
course - obtrusive fellow, impudent fellow, if you like - but who are
you? I hear of you with two names; I hear of you running away
with young ladies, and getting cheered for a Frenchman, which seems
odd; and one thing I will go bail for, that you were in a blue fright
when the post-boy began to tell tales at my door. In short, sir,
you may be a very good gentleman; but I don’t know enough about
you, and I’ll trouble you for your papers, or to go before a magistrate.
Take your choice; if I’m not fine enough, I hope the magistrates
are.’
‘My good man,’ I stammered, for though I had found my voice,
I could scarce be said to have recovered my wits, ‘this is most
unusual, most rude. Is it the custom in Westmorland that gentlemen
should be insulted?’
‘That depends,’ said he. ‘When it’s suspected
that gentlemen are spies it is the custom; and a good custom,
too. No no,’ he broke out, perceiving me to make a movement.
‘Both hands upon the table, my gentleman! I want no pistol
balls in my chaise panels.’
‘Surely, sir, you do me strange injustice!’ said I, now
the master of myself. ‘You see me sitting here, a monument
of tranquillity: pray may I help myself to wine without umbraging you?’
I took this attitude in sheer despair. I had no plan, no hope.
The best I could imagine was to spin the business out some minutes longer,
then capitulate. At least, I would not capituatle one moment too
soon.
‘Am I to take that for no?’ he asked.
‘Referring to your former obliging proposal?’ said I.
‘My good sir, you are to take it, as you say, for “No.”
Certainly I will not show you my deeds; certainly I will not rise from
table and trundle out to see your magistrates. I have too much
respect for my digestion, and too little curiosity in justices of the
peace.’
He leaned forward, looked me nearly in the face, and reached out one
hand to the bell-rope. ‘See here, my fine fellow!’
said he. ‘Do you see that bell-rope? Let me tell you,
there’s a boy waiting below: one jingle, and he goes to fetch
the constable.’
‘Do you tell me so?’ said I. ‘Well, there’s
no accounting for tastes! I have a prejudice against the society
of constables, but if it is your fancy to have one in for the dessert
- ’ I shrugged my shoulders lightly. ‘Really,
you know,’ I added, ‘this is vastly entertaining.
I assure you, I am looking on, with all the interest of a man of the
world, at the development of your highly original character.’
He continued to study my face without speech, his hand still on the
button of the bell-rope, his eyes in mine; this was the decisive heat.
My face seemed to myself to dislimn under his gaze, my expression to
change, the smile (with which I had began) to degenerate into the grin
of the man upon the rack. I was besides harassed with doubts.
An innocent man, I argued, would have resented the fellow’s impudence
an hour ago; and by my continued endurance of the ordeal, I was simply
signing and sealing my confession; in short, I had reached the end of
my powers.
‘Have you any objection to my putting my hands in my breeches
pockets?’ I inquired. ‘Excuse me mentioning it, but
you showed yourself so extremely nervous a moment back.’
My voice was not all I could have wished, but it sufficed. I could
hear it tremble, but the landlord apparently could not. He turned
away and drew a long breath, and you may be sure I was quick to follow
his example.
‘You’re a cool hand at least, and that’s the sort
I like,’ said he. ‘Be you what you please, I’ll
deal square. I’ll take the chaise for a hundred pound down,
and throw the dinner in.’
‘I beg your pardon,’ I cried, wholly mystified by this form
of words.
‘You pay me a hundred down,’ he repeated, ‘and I’ll
take the chaise. It’s very little more than it cost,’
he added, with a grin, ‘and you know you must get it off your
hands somehow.’
I do not know when I have been better entertained than by this impudent
proposal. It was broadly funny, and I suppose the least tempting
offer in the world. For all that, it came very welcome, for it
gave me the occasion to laugh. This I did with the most complete
abandonment, till the tears ran down my cheeks; and ever and again,
as the fit abated, I would get another view of the landlord’s
face, and go off into another paroxysm.
‘You droll creature, you will be the death of me yet!’ I
cried, drying my eyes.
My friend was now wholly disconcerted; he knew not where to look, nor
yet what to say; and began for the first time to conceive it possible
he was mistaken.
‘You seem rather to enjoy a laugh, sir,’ said he.
‘O, yes! I am quite an original,’ I replied, and laughed
again.
Presently, in a changed voice, he offered me twenty pounds for the chaise;
I ran him up to twenty-five, and closed with the offer: indeed, I was
glad to get anything; and if I haggled, it was not in the desire of
gain, but with the view at any price of securing a safe retreat.
For although hostilities were suspended, he was yet far from satisfied;
and I could read his continued suspicions in the cloudy eye that still
hovered about my face. At last they took shape in words.
‘This is all very well,’ says he: ‘you carry it off
well; but for all that, I must do my duty.’
I had my strong effect in reserve; it was to burn my ships with a vengeance!
I rose. ‘Leave the room,’ said I. ‘This
is insuperable. Is the man mad?’ And then, as if already
half-ashamed of my passion: ‘I can take a joke as well as any
one,’ I added; ‘but this passes measure. Send my servant
and the bill.’
When he had left me alone, I considered my own valour with amazement.
I had insulted him; I had sent him away alone; now, if ever, he would
take what was the only sensible resource, and fetch the constable.
But there was something instinctively treacherous about the man which
shrank from plain courses. And, with all his cleverness, he missed
the occasion of fame. Rowley and I were suffered to walk out of
his door, with all our baggage, on foot, with no destination named,
except in the vague statement that we were come ‘to view the lakes’;
and my friend only watched our departure with his chin in his hand,
still moodily irresolute.
I think this one of my great successes. I was exposed, unmasked,
summoned to do a perfectly natural act, which must prove my doom and
which I had not the slightest pretext for refusing. I kept my
head, stuck to my guns, and, against all likelihood, here I was once
more at liberty and in the king’s highway. This was a strong
lesson never to despair; and, at the same time, how many hints to be
cautious! and what a perplexed and dubious business the whole question
of my escape now appeared! That I should have risked perishing
upon a trumpery question of a pourboire, depicted in lively colours
the perils that perpetually surrounded us. Though, to be sure,
the initial mistake had been committed before that; and if I had not
suffered myself to be drawn a little deep in confidences to the innocent
Dolly, there need have been no tumble at the inn of Kirkby-Lonsdale.
I took the lesson to heart, and promised myself in the future to be
more reserved. It was none of my business to attend to broken
chaises or shipwrecked travellers. I had my hands full of my own
affairs; and my best defence would be a little more natural selfishness
and a trifle less imbecile good-nature.
CHAPTER XXV - I MEET A CHEERFUL EXTRAVAGANT
I pass over the next fifty or sixty leagues of our journey without comment.
The reader must be growing weary of scenes of travel; and for my own
part I have no cause to recall these particular miles with any pleasure.
We were mainly occupied with attempts to obliterate our trail, which
(as the result showed) were far from successful; for, on my cousin following,
he was able to run me home with the least possible loss of time, following
the claret-coloured chaise to Kirkby-Lonsdale, where I think the landlord
must have wept to learn what he had missed, and tracing us thereafter
to the doors of the coach-office in Edinburgh without a single check.
Fortune did not favour me, and why should I recapitulate the details
of futile precautions which deceived nobody, and wearisome arts which
proved to be artless?
The day was drawing to an end when Mr. Rowley and I bowled into Edinburgh
to the stirring sound of the guard’s bugle and the clattering
team. I was here upon my field of battle; on the scene of my former
captivity, escape and exploits; and in the same city with my love.
My heart expanded; I have rarely felt more of a hero. All down
the Bridges I sat by the driver with my arms folded and my face set,
unflinchingly meeting every eye, and prepared every moment for a cry
of recognition. Hundreds of the population were in the habit of
visiting the Castle, where it was my practice (before the days of Flora)
to make myself conspicuous among the prisoners; and I think it an extraordinary
thing that I should have encountered so few to recognise me. But
doubtless a clean chin is a disguise in itself; and the change is great
from a suit of sulphur-yellow to fine linen, a well-fitting mouse-coloured
great-coat furred in black, a pair of tight trousers of fashionable
cut, and a hat of inimitable curl. After all, it was more likely
that I should have recognised our visitors, than that they should have
identified the modish gentleman with the miserable prisoner in the Castle.
I was glad to set foot on the flagstones, and to escape from the crowd
that had assembled to receive the mail. Here we were, with but
little daylight before us, and that on Saturday afternoon, the eve of
the famous Scottish Sabbath, adrift in the New Town of Edinburgh, and
overladen with baggage. We carried it ourselves. I would
not take a cab, nor so much as hire a porter, who might afterwards serve
as a link between my lodgings and the mail, and connect me again with
the claret-coloured chaise and Aylesbury. For I was resolved to
break the chain of evidence for good, and to begin life afresh (so far
as regards caution) with a new character. The first step was to
find lodgings, and to find them quickly. This was the more needful
as Mr. Rowley and I, in our smart clothes and with our cumbrous burthen,
made a noticeable appearance in the streets at that time of the day
and in that quarter of the town, which was largely given up to fine
folk, bucks and dandies and young ladies, or respectable professional
men on their way home to dinner.
On the north side of St. James’ Square I was so happy as to spy
a bill in a third-floor window. I was equally indifferent to cost
and convenience in my choice of a lodging - ‘any port in a storm’
was the principle on which I was prepared to act; and Rowley and I made
at once for the common entrance and sealed the stair.
We were admitted by a very sour-looking female in bombazine. I
gathered she had all her life been depressed by a series of bereavements,
the last of which might very well have befallen her the day before;
and I instinctively lowered my voice when I addressed her. She
admitted she had rooms to let - even showed them to us - a sitting-room
and bedroom in a suite, commanding a fine prospect to the Firth
and Fifeshire, and in themselves well proportioned and comfortably furnished,
with pictures on the wall, shells on the mantelpiece, and several books
upon the table which I found afterwards to be all of a devotional character,
and all presentation copies, ‘to my Christian friend,’ or
‘to my devout acquaintance in the Lord, Bethiah McRankine.’
Beyond this my ‘Christian friend’ could not be made to advance:
no, not even to do that which seemed the most natural and pleasing thing
in the world - I mean to name her price - but stood before us shaking
her head, and at times mourning like the dove, the picture of depression
and defence. She had a voice the most querulous I have ever heard,
and with this she produced a whole regiment of difficulties and criticisms.
She could not promise an attendance.
‘Well, madam,’ said I, ‘and what is my servant for?’
‘Him?’ she asked. ‘Be gude to us! Is he
your servant?’
‘I am sorry, ma’am, he meets with your disapproval.’
‘Na, I never said that. But he’s young. He’ll
be a great breaker, I’m thinkin’. Ay! he’ll
be a great responsibeelity to ye, like. Does he attend to his
releegion?’
‘Yes, m’m,’ returned Rowley, with admirable promptitude,
and, immediately closing his eyes, as if from habit, repeated the following
distich with more celerity than fervour:-
‘Matthew, Mark, Luke and John
Bless the bed that I lie on!’
‘Nhm!’ said the lady, and maintained an awful silence.
‘Well, ma’am,’ said I, ‘it seems we are never
to hear the beginning of your terms, let alone the end of them.
Come - a good movement! and let us be either off or on.’
She opened her lips slowly. ‘Ony raferences?’ she
inquired, in a voice like a bell.
I opened my pocket-book and showed her a handful of bank bills.
‘I think, madam, that these are unexceptionable,’ said I.
‘Ye’ll be wantin’ breakfast late?’ was her reply.
‘Madam, we want breakfast at whatever hour it suits you to give
it, from four in the morning till four in the afternoon!’ I cried.
‘Only tell us your figure, if your mouth be large enough to let
it out!’
‘I couldnae give ye supper the nicht,’ came the echo.
‘We shall go out to supper, you incorrigible female!’ I
vowed, between laughter and tears. ‘Here - this is going
to end! I want you for a landlady - let me tell you that! - and
I am going to have my way. You won’t tell me what you charge?
Very well; I will do without! I can trust you! You don’t
seem to know when you have a good lodger; but I know perfectly when
I have an honest landlady! Rowley, unstrap the valises!’
Will it be credited? The monomaniac fell to rating me for my indiscretion!
But the battle was over; these were her last guns, and more in the nature
of a salute than of renewed hostilities. And presently she condescended
on very moderate terms, and Rowley and I were able to escape in quest
of supper. Much time had, however, been lost; the sun was long
down, the lamps glimmered along the streets, and the voice of a watchman
already resounded in the neighbouring Leith Road. On our first
arrival I had observed a place of entertainment not far off, in a street
behind the Register House. Thither we found our way, and sat down
to a late dinner alone. But we had scarce given our orders before
the door opened, and a tall young fellow entered with something of a
lurch, looked about him, and approached the same table.
‘Give you good evening, most grave and reverend seniors!’
said he. ‘Will you permit a wanderer, a pilgrim - the pilgrim
of love, in short - to come to temporary anchor under your lee?
I care not who knows it, but I have a passionate aversion from the bestial
practice of solitary feeding!’
‘You are welcome, sir,’ said I, ‘if I may take upon
me so far to play the host in a public place.’
He looked startled, and fixed a hazy eye on me, as he sat down.
‘Sir,’ said he, ‘you are a man not without some tincture
of letters, I perceive! What shall we drink, sir?’
I mentioned I had already called for a pot of porter.
‘A modest pot - the seasonable quencher?’ said he.
‘Well, I do not know but what I could look at a modest pot myself!
I am, for the moment, in precarious health. Much study hath heated
my brain, much walking wearied my - well, it seems to be more my eyes!’
‘You have walked far, I dare say?’ I suggested.
‘Not so much far as often,’ he replied. ‘There
is in this city - to which, I think, you are a stranger? Sir,
to your very good health and our better acquaintance! - there is, in
this city of Dunedin, a certain implication of streets which reflects
the utmost credit on the designer and the publicans - at every hundred
yards is seated the Judicious Tavern, so that persons of contemplative
mind are secure, at moderate distances, of refreshment. I have
been doing a trot in that favoured quarter, favoured by art and nature.
A few chosen comrades - enemies of publicity and friends to wit and
wine - obliged me with their society. “Along the cool, sequestered
vale of Register Street we kept the uneven tenor of our way,”
sir.’
‘It struck me, as you came in - ’ I began.
‘O, don’t make any bones about it!’ he interrupted.
‘Of course it struck you! and let me tell you I was devilish lucky
not to strike myself. When I entered this apartment I shone “with
all the pomp and prodigality of brandy and water,” as the poet
Gray has in another place expressed it. Powerful bard, Gray! but
a niminy-piminy creature, afraid of a petticoat and a bottle - not a
man, sir, not a man! Excuse me for being so troublesome, but what
the devil have I done with my fork? Thank you, I am sure.
Temulentia, quoad me ipsum, brevis colligo est. I sit and
eat, sir, in a London fog. I should bring a link-boy to table
with me; and I would too, if the little brutes were only washed!
I intend to found a Philanthropical Society for Washing the Deserving
Poor and Shaving Soldiers. I am pleased to observe that, although
not of an unmilitary bearing, you are apparently shaved. In my
calendar of the virtues shaving comes next to drinking. A gentleman
may be a low-minded ruffian without sixpence, but he will always be
close shaved. See me, with the eye of fancy, in the chill hours
of the morning, say about a quarter to twelve, noon - see me awake!
First thing of all, without one thought of the plausible but unsatisfactory
small beer, or the healthful though insipid soda-water, I take the deadly
razor in my vacillating grasp; I proceed to skate upon the margin of
eternity. Stimulating thought! I bleed, perhaps, but with
medicable wounds. The stubble reaped, I pass out of my chamber,
calm but triumphant. To employ a hackneyed phrase, I would not
call Lord Wellington my uncle! I, too, have dared, perhaps bled,
before the imminent deadly shaving-table.’
In this manner the bombastic fellow continued to entertain me all through
dinner, and by a common error of drunkards, because he had been extremely
talkative himself, leaped to the conclusion that he had chanced on very
genial company. He told me his name, his address; he begged we
should meet again; finally he proposed that I should dine with him in
the country at an early date.
‘The dinner is official,’ he explained. ‘The
office-bearers and Senatus of the University of Cramond - an educational
institution in which I have the honour to be Professor of Nonsense -
meet to do honour to our friend Icarus, at the old-established howff,
Cramond Bridge. One place is vacant, fascinating stranger, - I
offer it to you!’
‘And who is your friend Icarus?’ I asked,
‘The aspiring son of Daedalus!’ said he. ‘Is
it possible that you have never heard the name of Byfield?’
‘Possible and true,’ said I.
‘And is fame so small a thing?’ cried he. ‘Byfield,
sir, is an aeronaut. He apes the fame of a Lunardi, and is on
the point of offering to the inhabitants - I beg your pardon, to the
nobility and gentry of our neighbourhood - the spectacle of an ascension.
As one of the gentry concerned I may be permitted to remark that I am
unmoved. I care not a Tinker’s Damn for his ascension.
No more - I breathe it in your ear - does anybody else. The business
is stale, sir, stale. Lunardi did it, and overdid it. A
whimsical, fiddling, vain fellow, by all accounts - for I was at that
time rocking in my cradle. But once was enough. If Lunardi
went up and came down, there was the matter settled. We prefer
to grant the point. We do not want to see the experiment repeated
ad nauseam by Byfield, and Brown, and Butler, and Brodie, and
Bottomley. Ah! if they would go up and not come down again!
But this is by the question. The University of Cramond delights
to honour merit in the man, sir, rather than utility in the profession;
and Byfield, though an ignorant dog, is a sound reliable drinker, and
really not amiss over his cups. Under the radiance of the kindly
jar partiality might even credit him with wit.’
It will be seen afterwards that this was more my business than I thought
it at the time. Indeed, I was impatient to be gone. Even
as my friend maundered ahead a squall burst, the jaws of the rain were
opened against the coffee-house windows, and at that inclement signal
I remembered I was due elsewhere.
CHAPTER XXVI - THE COTTAGE AT NIGHT
At the door I was nearly blown back by the unbridled violence of the
squall, and Rowley and I must shout our parting words. All the
way along Princes Street (whither my way led) the wind hunted me behind
and screamed in my ears. The city was flushed with bucketfuls
of rain that tasted salt from the neighbouring ocean. It seemed
to darken and lighten again in the vicissitudes of the gusts.
Now you would say the lamps had been blown out from end to end of the
long thoroughfare; now, in a lull, they would revive, re-multiply, shine
again on the wet pavements, and make darkness sparingly visible.
By the time I had got to the corner of the Lothian Road there was a
distinct improvement. For one thing, I had now my shoulder to
the wind; for a second, I came in the lee of my old prison-house, the
Castle; and, at any rate, the excessive fury of the blast was itself
moderating. The thought of what errand I was on re-awoke within
me, and I seemed to breast the rough weather with increasing ease.
With such a destination, what mattered a little buffeting of wind or
a sprinkle of cold water? I recalled Flora’s image, I took
her in fancy to my arms, and my heart throbbed. And the next moment
I had recognised the inanity of that fool’s paradise. If
I could spy her taper as she went to bed, I might count myself lucky.
I had about two leagues before me of a road mostly uphill, and now deep
in mire. So soon as I was clear of the last street lamp, darkness
received me - a darkness only pointed by the lights of occasional rustic
farms, where the dogs howled with uplifted heads as I went by.
The wind continued to decline: it had been but a squall, not a tempest.
The rain, on the other hand, settled into a steady deluge, which had
soon drenched me thoroughly. I continued to tramp forward in the
night, contending with gloomy thoughts and accompanied by the dismal
ululation of the dogs. What ailed them that they should have been
thus wakeful, and perceived the small sound of my steps amid the general
reverberation of the rain, was more than I could fancy. I remembered
tales with which I had been entertained in childhood. I told myself
some murderer was going by, and the brutes perceived upon him the faint
smell of blood; and the next moment, with a physical shock, I had applied
the words to my own case!
Here was a dismal disposition for a lover. ‘Was ever lady
in this humour wooed?’ I asked myself, and came near turning back.
It is never wise to risk a critical interview when your spirits are
depressed, your clothes muddy, and your hands wet! But the boisterous
night was in itself favourable to my enterprise: now, or perhaps never,
I might find some way to have an interview with Flora; and if I had
one interview (wet clothes, low spirits and all), I told myself there
would certainly be another.
Arrived in the cottage-garden I found the circumstances mighty inclement.
From the round holes in the shutters of the parlour, shafts of candle-light
streamed forth; elsewhere the darkness was complete. The trees,
the thickets, were saturated; the lower parts of the garden turned into
a morass. At intervals, when the wind broke forth again, there
passed overhead a wild coil of clashing branches; and between whiles
the whole enclosure continuously and stridently resounded with the rain.
I advanced close to the window and contrived to read the face of my
watch. It was half-past seven; they would not retire before ten,
they might not before midnight, and the prospect was unpleasant.
In a lull of the wind I could hear from the inside the voice of Flora
reading aloud; the words of course inaudible - only a flow of undecipherable
speech, quiet, cordial, colourless, more intimate and winning, more
eloquent of her personality, but not less beautiful than song.
And the next moment the clamour of a fresh squall broke out about the
cottage; the voice was drowned in its bellowing, and I was glad to retreat
from my dangerous post.
For three egregious hours I must now suffer the elements to do their
worst upon me, and continue to hold my ground in patience. I recalled
the least fortunate of my services in the field: being out-sentry of
the pickets in weather no less vile, sometimes unsuppered and with nothing
to look forward to by way of breakfast but musket-balls; and they seemed
light in comparison. So strangely are we built: so much more strong
is the love of woman than the mere love of life.
At last my patience was rewarded. The light disappeared from the
parlour and reappeared a moment after in the room above. I was
pretty well informed for the enterprise that lay before me. I
knew the lair of the dragon - that which was just illuminated.
I knew the bower of my Rosamond, and how excellently it was placed on
the ground-level, round the flank of the cottage and out of earshot
of her formidable aunt. Nothing was left but to apply my knowledge.
I was then at the bottom of the garden, whether I had gone (Heaven save
the mark!) for warmth, that I might walk to and fro unheard and keep
myself from perishing. The night had fallen still, the wind ceased;
the noise of the rain had much lightened, if it had not stopped, and
was succeeded by the dripping of the garden trees. In the midst
of this lull, and as I was already drawing near to the cottage, I was
startled by the sound of a window-sash screaming in its channels; and
a step or two beyond I became aware of a gush of light upon the darkness.
It fell from Flora’s window, which she had flung open on the night,
and where she now sat, roseate and pensive, in the shine of two candles
falling from behind, her tresses deeply embowering and shading her;
the suspended comb still in one hand, the other idly clinging to the
iron stanchions with which the window was barred.
Keeping to the turf, and favoured by the darkness of the night and the
patter of the rain which was now returning, though without wind, I approached
until I could almost have touched her. It seemed a grossness of
which I was incapable to break up her reverie by speech. I stood
and drank her in with my eyes; how the light made a glory in her hair,
and (what I have always thought the most ravishing thing in nature)
how the planes ran into each other, and were distinguished, and how
the hues blended and varied, and were shaded off, between the cheek
and neck. At first I was abashed: she wore her beauty like an
immediate halo of refinement; she discouraged me like an angel, or what
I suspect to be the next most discouraging, a modern lady. But
as I continued to gaze, hope and life returned to me; I forgot my timidity,
I forgot the sickening pack of wet clothes with which I stood burdened,
I tingled with new blood.
Still unconscious of my presence, still gazing before her upon the illuminated
image of the window, the straight shadows of the bars, the glinting
of pebbles on the path, and the impenetrable night on the garden and
the hills beyond it, she heaved a deep breath that struck upon my heart
like an appeal.
‘Why does Miss Gilchrist sigh?’ I whispered. ‘Does
she recall absent friends?’
She turned her head swiftly in my direction; it was the only sign of
surprise she deigned to make. At the same time I stepped into
the light and bowed profoundly.
‘You!’ she said. ‘Here?’
‘Yes, I am here,’ I replied. ‘I have come very
far, it may be a hundred and fifty leagues, to see you. I have
waited all this night in your garden. Will Miss Gilchrist not
offer her hand - to a friend in trouble?’
She extended it between the bars, and I dropped upon one knee on the
wet path and kissed it twice. At the second it was withdrawn suddenly,
methought with more of a start than she had hitherto displayed.
I regained my former attitude, and we were both silent awhile.
My timidity returned on me tenfold. I looked in her face for any
signals of anger, and seeing her eyes to waver and fall aside from mine,
augured that all was well.
‘You must have been mad to come here!’ she broke out.
‘Of all places under heaven this is no place for you to come.
And I was just thinking you were safe in France!’
‘You were thinking of me!’ I cried.
‘Mr. St. Ives, you cannot understand your danger,’ she replied.
‘I am sure of it, and yet I cannot find it in my heart to tell
you. O, be persuaded, and go!’
‘I believe I know the worst. But I was never one to set
an undue value on life, the life that we share with beasts. My
university has been in the wars, not a famous place of education, but
one where a man learns to carry his life in his hand as lightly as a
glove, and for his lady or his honour to lay it as lightly down.
You appeal to my fears, and you do wrong. I have come to Scotland
with my eyes quite open to see you and to speak with you - it may be
for the last time. With my eyes quite open, I say; and if I did
not hesitate at the beginning do you think that I would draw back now?’
‘You do not know!’ she cried, with rising agitation.
‘This country, even this garden, is death to you. They all
believe it; I am the only one that does not. If they hear you
now, if they heard a whisper - I dread to think of it. O, go,
go this instant. It is my prayer.’
‘Dear lady, do not refuse me what I have come so far to seek;
and remember that out of all the millions in England there is no other
but yourself in whom I can dare confide. I have all the world
against me; you are my only ally; and as I have to speak, you have to
listen. All is true that they say of me, and all of it false at
the same time. I did kill this man Goguelat - it was that you
meant?’
She mutely signed to me that it was; she had become deadly pale.
‘But I killed him in fair fight. Till then, I had never
taken a life unless in battle, which is my trade. But I was grateful,
I was on fire with gratitude, to one who had been good to me, who had
been better to me than I could have dreamed of an angel, who had come
into the darkness of my prison like sunrise. The man Goguelat
insulted her. O, he had insulted me often, it was his favourite
pastime, and he might insult me as he pleased - for who was I?
But with that lady it was different. I could never forgive myself
if I had let it pass. And we fought, and he fell, and I have no
remorse.’
I waited anxiously for some reply. The worst was now out, and
I knew that she had heard of it before; but it was impossible for me
to go on with my narrative without some shadow of encouragement.
‘You blame me?’
‘No, not at all. It is a point I cannot speak on - I am
only a girl. I am sure you were in the right: I have always said
so - to Ronald. Not, of course, to my aunt. I am afraid
I let her speak as she will. You must not think me a disloyal
friend; and even with the Major - I did not tell you he had become quite
a friend of ours - Major Chevenix, I mean - he has taken such a fancy
to Ronald! It was he that brought the news to us of that hateful
Clausel being captured, and all that he was saying. I was indignant
with him. I said - I dare say I said too much - and I must say
he was very good-natured. He said, “You and I, who are his
friends, know that Champdivers is innocent. But what is
the use of saying it?” All this was in the corner of the
room in what they call an aside. And then he said, “Give
me a chance to speak to you in private, I have much to tell you.”
And he did. And told me just what you did - that it was an affair
of honour, and no blame attached to you. O, I must say I like
that Major Chevenix!’
At this I was seized with a great pang of jealousy. I remembered
the first time that he had seen her, the interest that he seemed immediately
to conceive; and I could not but admire the dog for the use he had been
ingenious enough to make of our acquaintance in order to supplant me.
All is fair in love and war. For all that, I was now no less anxious
to do the speaking myself than I had been before to hear Flora.
At least, I could keep clear of the hateful image of Major Chevenix.
Accordingly I burst at once on the narrative of my adventures.
It was the same as you have read, but briefer, and told with a very
different purpose. Now every incident had a particular bearing,
every by-way branched off to Rome - and that was Flora.
When I had begun to speak I had kneeled upon the gravel withoutside
the low window, rested my arms upon the sill, and lowered my voice to
the most confidential whisper. Flora herself must kneel upon the
other side, and this brought our heads upon a level with only the bars
between us. So placed, so separated, it seemed that our proximity,
and the continuous and low sounds of my pleading voice, worked progressively
and powerfully on her heart, and perhaps not less so on my own.
For these spells are double-edged. The silly birds may be charmed
with the pipe of the fowler, which is but a tube of reeds. Not
so with a bird of our own feather! As I went on, and my resolve
strengthened, and my voice found new modulations, and our faces were
drawn closer to the bars and to each other, not only she, but I, succumbed
to the fascination, and were kindled by the charm. We make love,
and thereby ourselves fall the deeper in it. It is with the heart
only that one captures a heart.
‘And now,’ I continued, ‘I will tell you what you
can still do for me. I run a little risk just now, and you see
for yourself how unavoidable it is for any man of honour. But
if - but in case of the worst I do not choose to enrich either my enemies
or the Prince Regent. I have here the bulk of what my uncle gave
me. Eight thousand odd pounds. Will you take care of it
for me? Do not think of it merely as money; take and keep it as
a relic of your friend or some precious piece of him. I may have
bitter need of it ere long. Do you know the old country story
of the giant who gave his heart to his wife to keep for him, thinking
it safer to repose on her loyalty than his own strength? Flora,
I am the giant - a very little one: will you be the keeper of my life?
It is my heart I offer you in this symbol. In the sight of God,
if you will have it, I give you my name, I endow you with my money.
If the worst come, if I may never hope to call you wife, let me at least
think that you will use my uncle’s legacy as my widow.’
‘No, not that,’ she said. ‘Never that.’
‘What then?’ I said. ‘What else, my angel?
What are words to me? There is but one name that I care to know
you by. Flora, my love!’
‘Anne!’ she said.
What sound is so full of music as one’s own name uttered for the
first time in the voice of her we love!
‘My darling!’ said I.
The jealous bars, set at the top and bottom in stone and lime, obstructed
the rapture of the moment; but I took her to myself as wholly as they
allowed. She did not shun my lips. My arms were wound round
her body, which yielded itself generously to my embrace. As we
so remained, entwined and yet severed, bruising our faces unconsciously
on the cold bars, the irony of the universe - or as I prefer to say,
envy of some of the gods - again stirred up the elements of that stormy
night. The wind blew again in the tree-tops; a volley of cold
sea-rain deluged the garden, and, as the deuce would have it, a gutter
which had been hitherto choked up began suddenly to play upon my head
and shoulders with the vivacity of a fountain. We parted with
a shock; I sprang to my feet, and she to hers, as though we had been
discovered. A moment after, but now both standing, we had again
approached the window on either side.
‘Flora,’ I said, ‘this is but a poor offer I can make
you.’
She took my hand in hers and clasped it to her bosom.
‘Rich enough for a queen!’ she said, with a lift in her
breathing that was more eloquent than words. ‘Anne, my brave
Anne! I would be glad to be your maidservant; I could envy that
boy Rowley. But, no!’ she broke off, ‘I envy no one
- I need not - I am yours.’
‘Mine,’ said I, ‘for ever! By this and this,
mine!’
‘All of me,’ she repeated. ‘Altogether and forever!’
And if the god were envious, he must have seen with mortification how
little he could do to mar the happiness of mortals. I stood in
a mere waterspout; she herself was wet, not from my embrace only, but
from the splashing of the storm. The candles had guttered out;
we were in darkness. I could scarce see anything but the shining
of her eyes in the dark room. To her I must have appeared as a
silhouette, haloed by rain and the spouting of the ancient Gothic gutter
above my head.
Presently we became more calm and confidential; and when that squall,
which proved to be the last of the storm, had blown by, fell into a
talk of ways and means. It seemed she knew Mr. Robbie, to whom
I had been so slenderly accredited by Romaine - was even invited to
his house for the evening of Monday, and gave me a sketch of the old
gentleman’s character which implied a great deal of penetration
in herself, and proved of great use to me in the immediate sequel.
It seemed he was an enthusiastic antiquary, and in particular a fanatic
of heraldry. I heard it with delight, for I was myself, thanks
to M. de Culemberg, fairly grounded in that science, and acquainted
with the blazons of most families of note in Europe. And I had
made up my mind - even as she spoke, it was my fixed determination,
though I was a hundred miles from saying it - to meet Flora on Monday
night as a fellow-guest in Mr. Robbie’s house.
I gave her my money - it was, of course, only paper I had brought.
I gave it her, to be her marriage-portion, I declared.
‘Not so bad a marriage-portion for a private soldier,’ I
told her, laughing, as I passed it through the bars.
‘O, Anne, and where am I to keep it?’ she cried. ‘If
my aunt should find it! What would I say!’
‘Next your heart,’ I suggested.
‘Then you will always be near your treasure,’ she cried,
‘for you are always there!’
We were interrupted by a sudden clearness that fell upon the night.
The clouds dispersed; the stars shone in every part of the heavens;
and, consulting my watch, I was startled to find it already hard on
five in the morning.
CHAPTER XXVII - THE SABBATH DAY
It was indeed high time I should be gone from Swanston; but what I was
to do in the meanwhile was another question. Rowley had received
his orders last night: he was to say that I had met a friend, and Mrs.
McRankine was not to expect me before morning. A good enough tale
in itself; but the dreadful pickle I was in made it out of the question.
I could not go home till I had found harbourage, a fire to dry my clothes
at, and a bed where I might lie till they were ready.
Fortune favoured me again. I had scarce got to the top of the
first hill when I spied a light on my left, about a furlong away.
It might be a case of sickness; what else it was likely to be - in so
rustic a neighbourhood, and at such an ungodly time of the morning -
was beyond my fancy. A faint sound of singing became audible,
and gradually swelled as I drew near, until at last I could make out
the words, which were singularly appropriate both to the hour and to
the condition of the singers. ‘The cock may craw, the day
may daw,’ they sang; and sang it with such laxity both in time
and tune, and such sentimental complaisance in the expression, as assured
me they had got far into the third bottle at least.
I found a plain rustic cottage by the wayside, of the sort called double,
with a signboard over the door; and, the lights within streaming forth
and somewhat mitigating the darkness of the morning, I was enabled to
decipher the inscription: ‘The Hunters’ Tryst, by Alexander
Hendry. Porter Ales, and British Spirits. Beds.’
My first knock put a period to the music, and a voice challenged tipsily
from within.
‘Who goes there?’ it said; and I replied, ‘A lawful
traveller.’
Immediately after, the door was unbarred by a company of the tallest
lads my eyes had ever rested on, all astonishingly drunk and very decently
dressed, and one (who was perhaps the drunkest of the lot) carrying
a tallow candle, from which he impartially bedewed the clothes of the
whole company. As soon as I saw them I could not help smiling
to myself to remember the anxiety with which I had approached.
They received me and my hastily-concocted story, that I had been walking
from Peebles and had lost my way, with incoherent benignity; jostled
me among them into the room where they had been sitting, a plain hedgerow
alehouse parlour, with a roaring fire in the chimney and a prodigious
number of empty bottles on the floor; and informed me that I was made,
by this reception, a temporary member of the Six-Feet-High Club,
an athletic society of young men in a good station, who made of the
Hunters’ Tryst a frequent resort. They told me I had intruded
on an ‘all-night sitting,’ following upon an ‘all-day
Saturday tramp’ of forty miles; and that the members would all
be up and ‘as right as ninepence’ for the noonday service
at some neighbouring church - Collingwood, if memory serves me right.
At this I could have laughed, but the moment seemed ill-chosen.
For, though six feet was their standard, they all exceeded that measurement
considerably; and I tasted again some of the sensations of childhood,
as I looked up to all these lads from a lower plane, and wondered what
they would do next. But the Six-Footers, if they were very drunk,
proved no less kind. The landlord and servants of the Hunters’
Tryst were in bed and asleep long ago. Whether by natural gift
or acquired habit they could suffer pandemonium to reign all over the
house, and yet lie ranked in the kitchen like Egyptian mummies, only
that the sound of their snoring rose and fell ceaselessly like the drone
of a bagpipe. Here the Six-Footers invaded them - in their citadel,
so to speak; counted the bunks and the sleepers; proposed to put me
in bed to one of the lasses, proposed to have one of the lasses out
to make room for me, fell over chairs, and made noise enough to waken
the dead: the whole illuminated by the same young torch-bearer, but
now with two candles, and rapidly beginning to look like a man in a
snowstorm. At last a bed was found for me, my clothes were hung
out to dry before the parlour fire, and I was mercifully left to my
repose.
I awoke about nine with the sun shining in my eyes. The landlord
came at my summons, brought me my clothes dried and decently brushed,
and gave me the good news that the Six-Feet-High Club were all abed
and sleeping off their excesses. Where they were bestowed was
a puzzle to me until (as I was strolling about the garden patch waiting
for breakfast) I came on a barn door, and, looking in, saw all the red
face mixed in the straw like plums in a cake. Quoth the stalwart
maid who brought me my porridge and bade me ’eat them while they
were hot,’ ‘Ay, they were a’ on the ran-dan last nicht!
Hout! they’re fine lads, and they’ll be nane the waur of
it. Forby Farbes’s coat. I dinna see wha’s to
get the creish off that!’ she added, with a sigh; in which, identifying
Forbes as the torch-bearer, I mentally joined.
It was a brave morning when I took the road; the sun shone, spring seemed
in the air, it smelt like April or May, and some over-venturous birds
sang in the coppices as I went by. I had plenty to think of, plenty
to be grateful for, that gallant morning; and yet I had a twitter at
my heart. To enter the city by daylight might be compared to marching
on a battery; every face that I confronted would threaten me like the
muzzle of a gun; and it came into my head suddenly with how much better
a countenance I should be able to do it if I could but improvise a companion.
Hard by Merchiston I was so fortunate as to observe a bulky gentleman
in broadcloth and gaiters, stooping with his head almost between his
knees, before a stone wall. Seizing occasion by the forelock,
I drew up as I came alongside and inquired what he had found to interest
him.
He turned upon me a countenance not much less broad than his back.
‘Why, sir,’ he replied, ‘I was even marvelling at
my own indefeasible stupeedity: that I should walk this way every week
of my life, weather permitting, and should never before have notticed
that stone,’ touching it at the same time with a goodly oak staff.
I followed the indication. The stone, which had been built sideways
into the wall, offered traces of heraldic sculpture. At once there
came a wild idea into my mind: his appearance tallied with Flora’s
description of Mr. Robbie; a knowledge of heraldry would go far to clinch
the proof; and what could be more desirable than to scrape an informal
acquaintance with the man whom I must approach next day with my tale
of the drovers, and whom I yet wished to please? I stooped in
turn.
‘A chevron,’ I said; ‘on a chief three mullets?
Looks like Douglas, does it not?’
‘Yes, sir, it does; you are right,’ said he: ‘it does
look like Douglas; though, without the tinctures, and the whole thing
being so battered and broken up, who shall venture an opinion?
But allow me to be more personal, sir. In these degenerate days
I am astonished you should display so much proficiency.’
‘O, I was well grounded in my youth by an old gentleman, a friend
of my family, and I may say my guardian,’ said I; ‘but I
have forgotten it since. God forbid I should delude you into thinking
me a herald, sir! I am only an ungrammatical amateur.’
‘And a little modesty does no harm even in a herald,’ says
my new acquaintance graciously.
In short, we fell together on our onward way, and maintained very amicable
discourse along what remained of the country road, past the suburbs,
and on into the streets of the New Town, which was as deserted and silent
as a city of the dead. The shops were closed, no vehicle ran,
cats sported in the midst of the sunny causeway; and our steps and voices
re-echoed from the quiet houses. It was the high-water, full and
strange, of that weekly trance to which the city of Edinburgh is subjected:
the apotheosis of the Sawbath; and I confess the spectacle wanted
not grandeur, however much it may have lacked cheerfulness. There
are few religious ceremonies more imposing. As we thus walked
and talked in a public seclusion the bells broke out ringing through
all the bounds of the city, and the streets began immediately to be
thronged with decent church-goers.
‘Ah!’ said my companion, ‘there are the bells!
Now, sir, as you are a stranger I must offer you the hospitality of
my pew. I do not know whether you are at all used with our Scottish
form; but in case you are not I will find your places for you; and Dr.
Henry Gray, of St. Mary’s (under whom I sit), is as good a preacher
as we have to show you.’
This put me in a quandary. It was a degree of risk I was scarce
prepared for. Dozens of people, who might pass me by in the street
with no more than a second look, would go on from the second to the
third, and from that to a final recognition, if I were set before them,
immobilised in a pew, during the whole time of service. An unlucky
turn of the head would suffice to arrest their attention. ‘Who
is that?’ they would think: ‘surely I should know him!’
and, a church being the place in all the world where one has least to
think of, it was ten to one they would end by remembering me before
the benediction. However, my mind was made up: I thanked my obliging
friend, and placed myself at his disposal.
Our way now led us into the north-east quarter of the town, among pleasant
new faubourgs, to a decent new church of a good size, where I was soon
seated by the side of my good Samaritan, and looked upon by a whole
congregation of menacing faces. At first the possibility of danger
kept me awake; but by the time I had assured myself there was none to
be apprehended, and the service was not in the least likely to be enlivened
by the arrest of a French spy, I had to resign myself to the task of
listening to Dr. Henry Gray.
As we moved out, after this ordeal was over, my friend was at once surrounded
and claimed by his acquaintances of the congregation; and I was rejoiced
to hear him addressed by the expected name of Robbie.
So soon as we were clear of the crowd - ‘Mr. Robbie?’ said
I, bowing.
‘The very same, sir,’ said he.
‘If I mistake not, a lawyer?’
‘A writer to His Majesty’s Signet, at your service.’
‘It seems we were predestined to be acquaintances!’ I exclaimed.
‘I have here a card in my pocket intended for you. It is
from my family lawyer. It was his last word, as I was leaving,
to ask to be remembered kindly, and to trust you would pass over so
informal an introduction.’
And I offered him the card.
‘Ay, ay, my old friend Daniel!’ says he, looking on the
card. ‘And how does my old friend Daniel?’
I gave a favourable view of Mr. Romaine’s health.
‘Well, this is certainly a whimsical incident,’ he continued.
‘And since we are thus met already - and so much to my advantage!
- the simplest thing will be to prosecute the acquaintance instantly.
Let me propose a snack between sermons, a bottle of my particular green
seal - and when nobody is looking we can talk blazons, Mr. Ducie!’
- which was the name I then used and had already incidentally mentioned,
in the vain hope of provoking a return in kind.
‘I beg your pardon, sir: do I understand you to invite me to your
house?’ said I.
‘That was the idea I was trying to convey,’ said he.
‘We have the name of hospitable people up here, and I would like
you to try mine.’
‘Mr. Robbie, I shall hope to try it some day, but not yet,’
I replied. ‘I hope you will not misunderstand me.
My business, which brings me to your city, is of a peculiar kind.
Till you shall have heard it, and, indeed, till its issue is known,
I should feel as if I had stolen your invitation.’
‘Well, well,’ said he, a little sobered, ‘it must
be as you wish, though you would hardly speak otherwise if you had committed
homicide! Mine is the loss. I must eat alone; a very pernicious
thing for a person of my habit of body, content myself with a pint of
skinking claret, and meditate the discourse. But about this business
of yours: if it is so particular as all that, it will doubtless admit
of no delay.’
‘I must confess, sir, it presses,’ I acknowledged.
‘Then, let us say to-morrow at half-past eight in the morning,’
said he; ‘and I hope, when your mind is at rest (and it does you
much honour to take it as you do), that you will sit down with me to
the postponed meal, not forgetting the bottle. You have my address?’
he added, and gave it me - which was the only thing I wanted.
At last, at the level of York Place, we parted with mutual civilities,
and I was free to pursue my way, through the mobs of people returning
from church, to my lodgings in St. James’ Square.
Almost at the house door whom should I overtake but my landlady in a
dress of gorgeous severity, and dragging a prize in her wake: no less
than Rowley, with the cockade in his hat, and a smart pair of tops to
his boots! When I said he was in the lady’s wake I spoke
but in metaphor. As a matter of fact he was squiring her, with
the utmost dignity, on his arm; and I followed them up the stairs, smiling
to myself.
Both were quick to salute me as soon as I was perceived, and Mrs. McRankine
inquired where I had been. I told her boastfully, giving her the
name of the church and the divine, and ignorantly supposing I should
have gained caste. But she soon opened my eyes. In the roots
of the Scottish character there are knots and contortions that not only
no stranger can understand, but no stranger can follow; he walks among
explosives; and his best course is to throw himself upon their mercy
- ‘Just as I am, without one plea,’ a citation from one
of the lady’s favourite hymns.
The sound she made was unmistakable in meaning, though it was impossible
to be written down; and I at once executed the manoeuvre I have recommended.
‘You must remember I am a perfect stranger in your city,’
said I. ‘If I have done wrong, it was in mere ignorance,
my dear lady; and this afternoon, if you will be so good as to take
me, I shall accompany you.’
But she was not to be pacified at the moment, and departed to her own
quarters murmuring.
‘Well, Rowley,’ said I; ‘and have you been to church?’
‘If you please, sir,’ he said.
‘Well, you have not been any less unlucky than I have,’
I returned. ‘And how did you get on with the Scottish form?’
‘Well, sir, it was pretty ’ard, the form was, and reether
narrow,’ he replied. ‘I don’t know w’y
it is, but it seems to me like as if things were a good bit changed
since William Wallace! That was a main queer church she took me
to, Mr. Anne! I don’t know as I could have sat it out, if
she ’adn’t ’a’ give me peppermints. She
ain’t a bad one at bottom, the old girl; she do pounce a bit,
and she do worry, but, law bless you, Mr. Anne, it ain’t nothink
really - she don’t mean it. W’y, she was down
on me like a ’undredweight of bricks this morning. You see,
last night she ’ad me in to supper, and, I beg your pardon, sir,
but I took the freedom of playing her a chune or two. She didn’t
mind a bit; so this morning I began to play to myself, and she flounced
in, and flew up, and carried on no end about Sunday!’
‘You see, Rowley,’ said I, ‘they’re all mad
up here, and you have to humour them. See and don’t quarrel
with Mrs. McRankine; and, above all, don’t argue with her, or
you’ll get the worst of it. Whatever she says, touch your
forelock and say, “If you please!” or “I beg pardon,
ma’am.” And let me tell you one thing: I am sorry,
but you have to go to church with her again this afternoon. That’s
duty, my boy!’
As I had foreseen, the bells had scarce begun before Mrs. McRankine
presented herself to be our escort, upon which I sprang up with readiness
and offered her my arm. Rowley followed behind. I was beginning
to grow accustomed to the risks of my stay in Edinburgh, and it even
amused me to confront a new churchful. I confess the amusement
did not last until the end; for if Dr. Gray were long, Mr. McCraw was
not only longer, but more incoherent, and the matter of his sermon (which
was a direct attack, apparently, on all the Churches of the world, my
own among the number), where it had not the tonic quality of personal
insult, rather inclined me to slumber. But I braced myself for
my life, kept up Rowley with the end of a pin, and came through it awake,
but no more.
Bethiah was quite conquered by this ‘mark of grace,’ though,
I am afraid, she was also moved by more worldly considerations.
The first is, the lady had not the least objection to go to church on
the arm of an elegantly dressed young gentleman, and be followed by
a spruce servant with a cockade in his hat. I could see it by
the way she took possession of us, found us the places in the Bible,
whispered to me the name of the minister, passed us lozenges, which
I (for my part) handed on to Rowley, and at each fresh attention stole
a little glance about the church to make sure she was observed.
Rowley was a pretty boy; you will pardon me if I also remembered that
I was a favourable-looking young man. When we grow elderly, how
the room brightens, and begins to look as it ought to look, on the entrance
of youth, grace, health, and comeliness! You do not want them
for yourself, perhaps not even for your son, but you look on smiling;
and when you recall their images - again, it is with a smile.
I defy you to see or think of them and not smile with an infinite and
intimate, but quite impersonal, pleasure. Well, either I know
nothing of women, or that was the case with Bethiah McRankine.
She had been to church with a cockade behind her, on the one hand; on
the other, her house was brightened by the presence of a pair of good-looking
young fellows of the other sex, who were always pleased and deferential
in her society and accepted her views as final.
These were sentiments to be encouraged; and, on the way home from church
- if church it could be called - I adopted a most insidious device to
magnify her interest. I took her into the confidence, that is,
of my love affair, and I had no sooner mentioned a young lady with whom
my affections were engaged than she turned upon me a face of awful gravity.
‘Is she bonny?’ she inquired.
I gave her full assurances upon that.
‘To what denoamination does she beloang?’ came next, and
was so unexpected as almost to deprive me of breath.
‘Upon my word, ma’am, I have never inquired,’ cried
I; ‘I only know that she is a heartfelt Christian, and that is
enough.’
‘Ay!’ she sighed, ‘if she has the root of the maitter!
There’s a remnant practically in most of the denoaminations.
There’s some in the McGlashanites, and some in the Glassites,
and mony in the McMillanites, and there’s a leeven even in the
Estayblishment.’
‘I have known some very good Papists even, if you go to that,’
said I.
‘Mr. Ducie, think shame to yoursel’!’ she cried.
‘Why, my dear madam! I only - ’ I began.
‘You shouldnae jest in sairious maitters,’ she interrupted.
On the whole, she entered into what I chose to tell her of our idyll
with avidity, like a cat licking her whiskers over a dish of cream;
and, strange to say - and so expansive a passion is that of love! -
that I derived a perhaps equal satisfaction from confiding in that breast
of iron. It made an immediate bond: from that hour we seemed to
be welded into a family-party; and I had little difficulty in persuading
her to join us and to preside over our tea-table. Surely there
was never so ill-matched a trio as Rowley, Mrs. McRankine, and the Viscount
Anne! But I am of the Apostle’s way, with a difference:
all things to all women! When I cannot please a woman, hang me
in my cravat!
CHAPTER XXVIII - EVENTS OF MONDAY: THE LAWYER’S PARTY
By half-past eight o’clock on the next morning, I was ringing
the bell of the lawyer’s office in Castle Street, where I found
him ensconced at a business table, in a room surrounded by several tiers
of green tin cases. He greeted me like an old friend.
‘Come away, sir, come away!’ said he. ‘Here
is the dentist ready for you, and I think I can promise you that the
operation will be practically painless.’
‘I am not so sure of that, Mr. Robbie,’ I replied, as I
shook hands with him. ‘But at least there shall be no time
lost with me.’
I had to confess to having gone a-roving with a pair of drovers and
their cattle, to having used a false name, to having murdered or half-murdered
a fellow-creature in a scuffle on the moors, and to having suffered
a couple of quite innocent men to lie some time in prison on a charge
from which I could have immediately freed them. All this I gave
him first of all, to be done with the worst of it; and all this he took
with gravity, but without the least appearance of surprise.
‘Now, sir,’ I continued, ‘I expect to have to pay
for my unhappy frolic, but I would like very well if it could be managed
without my personal appearance or even the mention of my real name.
I had so much wisdom as to sail under false colours in this foolish
jaunt of mine; my family would be extremely concerned if they had wind
of it; but at the same time, if the case of this Faa has terminated
fatally, and there are proceedings against Todd and Candlish, I am not
going to stand by and see them vexed, far less punished; and I authorise
you to give me up for trial if you think that best - or, if you think
it unnecessary, in the meanwhile to make preparations for their defence.
I hope, sir, that I am as little anxious to be Quixotic, as I am determined
to be just.’
‘Very fairly spoken,’ said Mr. Robbie. ‘It is
not much in my line, as doubtless your friend, Mr. Romaine, will have
told you. I rarely mix myself up with anything on the criminal
side, or approaching it. However, for a young gentleman like you,
I may stretch a point, and I dare say I may be able to accomplish more
than perhaps another. I will go at once to the Procurator Fiscal’s
office and inquire.’
‘Wait a moment, Mr. Robbie,’ said I. ‘You forget
the chapter of expenses. I had thought, for a beginning, of placing
a thousand pounds in your hands.’
‘My dear sir, you will kindly wait until I render you my bill,’
said Mr. Robbie severely.’
‘It seemed to me,’ I protested, ‘that coming to you
almost as a stranger, and placing in your hands a piece of business
so contrary to your habits, some substantial guarantee of my good faith
- ’
‘Not the way that we do business in Scotland, sir,’ he interrupted,
with an air of closing the dispute.
‘And yet, Mr. Robbie,’ I continued, ‘I must ask you
to allow me to proceed. I do not merely refer to the expenses
of the case. I have my eye besides on Todd and Candlish.
They are thoroughly deserving fellows; they have been subjected through
me to a considerable term of imprisonment; and I suggest, sir, that
you should not spare money for their indemnification. This will
explain,’ I added smiling, ‘my offer of the thousand pounds.
It was in the nature of a measure by which you should judge the scale
on which I can afford to have this business carried through.’
‘I take you perfectly, Mr. Ducie,’ said he. ‘But
the sooner I am off, the better this affair is like to be guided.
My clerk will show you into the waiting-room and give you the day’s
Caledonian Mercury and the last Register to amuse yourself
with in the interval.’
I believe Mr. Robbie was at least three hours gone. I saw him
descend from a cab at the door, and almost immediately after I was shown
again into his study, where the solemnity of his manner led me to augur
the worst. For some time he had the inhumanity to read me a lecture
as to the incredible silliness, ‘not to say immorality,’
of my behaviour. ‘I have the satisfaction in telling you
my opinion, because it appears that you are going to get off scot free,’
he continued, where, indeed, I thought he might have begun.
‘The man, Faa, has been discharged cured; and the two men, Todd
and Candlish, would have been leeberated lone ago if it had not been
for their extraordinary loyalty to yourself, Mr. Ducie - or Mr. St.
Ivey, as I believe I should now call you. Never a word would either
of the two old fools volunteer that in any manner pointed at the existence
of such a person; and when they were confronted with Faa’s version
of the affair, they gave accounts so entirely discrepant with their
own former declarations, as well as with each other, that the Fiscal
was quite nonplussed, and imaigined there was something behind it.
You may believe I soon laughed him out of that! And I had the
satisfaction of seeing your two friends set free, and very glad to be
on the causeway again.’
‘Oh, sir,’ I cried, ‘you should have brought them
here.’
‘No instructions, Mr. Ducie!’ said he. ‘How
did I know you wished to renew an acquaintance which you had just terminated
so fortunately? And, indeed, to be frank with you, I should have
set my face against it, if you had! Let them go! They are
paid and contented, and have the highest possible opinion of Mr. St.
Ivey! When I gave them fifty pounds apiece - which was rather
more than enough, Mr. Ducie, whatever you may think - the man Todd,
who has the only tongue of the party, struck his staff on the ground.
“Weel,” says he, “I aye said he was a gentleman!”
“Man, Todd,” said I, “that was just what Mr St. Ivey
said of yourself!”’
‘So it was a case of “Compliments fly when gentlefolk meet.”’
‘No, no, Mr. Ducie, man Todd and man Candlish are gone out of
your life, and a good riddance! They are fine fellows in their
way, but no proper associates for the like of yourself; and do you finally
agree to be done with all eccentricity - take up with no more drovers,
or tinkers, but enjoy the naitural pleesures for which your age, your
wealth, your intelligence, and (if I may be allowed to say it) your
appearance so completely fit you. And the first of these,’
quoth he, looking at his watch, ‘will be to step through to my
dining-room and share a bachelor’s luncheon.’
Over the meal, which was good, Mr. Robbie continued to develop the same
theme. ‘You’re, no doubt, what they call a dancing-man?’
said he. ‘Well, on Thursday night there is the Assembly
Ball. You must certainly go there, and you must permit me besides
to do the honours of the ceety and send you a ticket. I am a thorough
believer in a young man being a young man - but no more drovers or rovers,
if you love me! Talking of which puts me in mind that you may
be short of partners at the Assembly - oh, I have been young myself!
- and if ye care to come to anything so portentiously tedious as a tea-party
at the house of a bachelor lawyer, consisting mainly of his nieces and
nephews, and his grand-nieces and grand-nephews, and his wards, and
generally the whole clan of the descendants of his clients, you might
drop in to-night towards seven o’clock. I think I can show
you one or two that are worth looking at, and you can dance with them
later on at the Assembly.’
He proceeded to give me a sketch of one or two eligible young ladies’
whom I might expect to meet. ‘And then there’s my
parteecular friend, Miss Flora,’ said he. ‘But I’ll
make no attempt of a description. You shall see her for yourself.’
It will be readily supposed that I accepted his invitation; and returned
home to make a toilette worthy of her I was to meet and the good news
of which I was the bearer. The toilette, I have reason to believe,
was a success. Mr. Rowley dismissed me with a farewell: ‘Crikey!
Mr. Anne, but you do look prime!’ Even the stony Bethiah
was - how shall I say? - dazzled, but scandalised, by my appearance;
and while, of course, she deplored the vanity that led to it, she could
not wholly prevent herself from admiring the result.
‘Ay, Mr. Ducie, this is a poor employment for a wayfaring Christian
man!’ she said. ‘Wi’ Christ despised and rejectit
in all pairts of the world and the flag of the Covenant flung doon,
you will be muckle better on your knees! However, I’ll have
to confess that it sets you weel. And if it’s the lassie
ye’re gaun to see the nicht, I suppose I’ll just have to
excuse ye! Bairns maun be bairns!’ she said, with a sigh.
‘I mind when Mr. McRankine came courtin’, and that’s
lang by-gane - I mind I had a green gown, passementit, that was thocht
to become me to admiration. I was nae just exactly what ye would
ca’ bonny; but I was pale, penetratin’, and interestin’.’
And she leaned over the stair-rail with a candle to watch my descent
as long as it should be possible.
It was but a little party at Mr. Robbie’s - by which, I do not
so much mean that there were few people, for the rooms were crowded,
as that there was very little attempted to entertain them. In
one apartment there were tables set out, where the elders were solemnly
engaged upon whist; in the other and larger one, a great number of youth
of both sexes entertained themselves languidly, the ladies sitting upon
chairs to be courted, the gentlemen standing about in various attitudes
of insinuation or indifference. Conversation appeared the sole
resource, except in so far as it was modified by a number of keepsakes
and annuals which lay dispersed upon the tables, and of which the young
beaux displayed the illustrations to the ladies. Mr. Robbie himself
was customarily in the card-room; only now and again, when he cut out,
he made an incursion among the young folks, and rolled about jovially
from one to another, the very picture of the general uncle.
It chanced that Flora had met Mr. Robbie in the course of the afternoon.
‘Now, Miss Flora,’ he had said, ‘come early, for I
have a Phoenix to show you - one Mr. Ducie, a new client of mine that,
I vow, I have fallen in love with’; and he was so good as to add
a word or two on my appearance, from which Flora conceived a suspicion
of the truth. She had come to the party, in consequence, on the
knife-edge of anticipation and alarm; had chosen a place by the door,
where I found her, on my arrival, surrounded by a posse of vapid youths;
and, when I drew near, sprang up to meet me in the most natural manner
in the world, and, obviously, with a prepared form of words.
‘How do you do, Mr. Ducie?’ she said. ‘It is
quite an age since I have seen you!’
‘I have much to tell you, Miss Gilchrist,’ I replied.
‘May I sit down?’
For the artful girl, by sitting near the door, and the judicious use
of her shawl, had contrived to keep a chair empty by her side.
She made room for me, as a matter of course, and the youths had the
discretion to melt before us. As soon as I was once seated her
fan flew out, and she whispered behind it:
‘Are you mad?’
‘Madly in love,’ I replied; ‘but in no other sense.’
‘I have no patience! You cannot understand what I am suffering!’
she said. ‘What are you to say to Ronald, to Major Chevenix,
to my aunt?’
Your aunt?’ I cried, with a start. ‘Peccavi!
is she here?’
‘She is in the card-room at whist,’ said Flora.
‘Where she will probably stay all the evening?’ I suggested.
‘She may,’ she admitted; ‘she generally does!’
‘Well, then, I must avoid the card-room,’ said I, ‘which
is very much what I had counted upon doing. I did not come here
to play cards, but to contemplate a certain young lady to my heart’s
content - if it can ever be contented! - and to tell her some good news.’
‘But there are still Ronald and the Major!’ she persisted.
‘They are not card-room fixtures! Ronald will be coming
and going. And as for Mr. Chevenix, he - ’
‘Always sits with Miss Flora?’ I interrupted. ‘And
they talk of poor St. Ives? I had gathered as much, my dear; and
Mr. Ducie has come to prevent it! But pray dismiss these fears!
I mind no one but your aunt.’
‘Why my aunt?’
‘Because your aunt is a lady, my dear, and a very clever lady,
and, like all clever ladies, a very rash lady,’ said I.
‘You can never count upon them, unless you are sure of getting
them in a corner, as I have got you, and talking them over rationally,
as I am just engaged on with yourself! It would be quite the same
to your aunt to make the worst kind of a scandal, with an equal indifference
to my danger and to the feelings of our good host!’
‘Well,’ she said, ‘and what of Ronald, then?
Do you think he is above making a scandal? You must know
him very little!’
‘On the other hand, it is my pretension that I know him very well!’
I replied. ‘I must speak to Ronald first - not Ronald to
me - that is all!’
‘Then, please, go and speak to him at once!’ she pleaded.
He is there - do you see? - at the upper end of the room, talking to
that girl in pink.’
‘And so lose this seat before I have told you my good news?’
I exclaimed. ‘Catch me! And, besides, my dear one,
think a little of me and my good news! I thought the bearer of
good news was always welcome! I hoped he might be a little welcome
for himself! Consider! I have but one friend; and let me
stay by her! And there is only one thing I care to hear; and let
me hear it!’
‘Oh, Anne,’ she sighed, ‘if I did not love you, why
should I be so uneasy? I am turned into a coward, dear!
Think, if it were the other way round - if you were quite safe and I
was in, oh, such danger!’
She had no sooner said it than I was convicted of being a dullard.
‘God forgive me, dear!’ I made haste to reply.
‘I never saw before that there were two sides to this!’
And I told her my tale as briefly as I could, and rose to seek Ronald.
‘You see, my dear, you are obeyed,’ I said.
She gave me a look that was a reward in itself; and as I turned away
from her, with a strong sense of turning away from the sun, I carried
that look in my bosom like a caress. The girl in pink was an arch,
ogling person, with a good deal of eyes and teeth, and a great play
of shoulders and rattle of conversation. There could be no doubt,
from Mr. Ronald’s attitude, that he worshipped the very chair
she sat on. But I was quite ruthless. I laid my hand on
his shoulder, as he was stooping over her like a hen over a chicken.
‘Excuse me for one moment, Mr. Gilchrist!’ said I.
He started and span about in answer to my touch, and exhibited a face
of inarticulate wonder.
‘Yes!’ I continued, ‘it is even myself!
Pardon me for interrupting so agreeable a tête-à-tête,
but you know, my good fellow, we owe a first duty to Mr. Robbie.
It would never do to risk making a scene in the man’s drawing-room;
so the first thing I had to attend to was to have you warned.
The name I go by is Ducie, too, in case of accidents.’
‘I - I say, you know!’ cried Ronald. ‘Deuce
take it, what are you doing here?’
‘Hush, hush!’ said I. ‘Not the place, my dear
fellow - not the place. Come to my rooms, if you like, to-night
after the party, or to-morrow in the morning, and we can talk it out
over a segar. But here, you know, it really won’t do at
all.’
Before he could collect his mind for an answer, I had given him my address
in St. James Square, and had again mingled with the crowd. Alas!
I was not fated to get back to Flora so easily! Mr. Robbie was
in the path: he was insatiably loquacious; and as he continued to palaver
I watched the insipid youths gather again about my idol, and cursed
my fate and my host. He remembered suddenly that I was to attend
the Assembly Ball on Thursday, and had only attended to-night by way
of a preparative. This put it into his head to present me to another
young lady; but I managed this interview with so much art that, while
I was scrupulously polite and even cordial to the fair one, I contrived
to keep Robbie beside me all the time and to leave along with him when
the ordeal was over. We were just walking away arm in arm, when
I spied my friend the Major approaching, stiff as a ramrod and, as usual,
obtrusively clean.
‘Oh! there’s a man I want to know,’ said I, taking
the bull by the horns. ‘Won’t you introduce me to
Major Chevenix?’
‘At a word, my dear fellow,’ said Robbie; and ‘Major!’
he cried, ‘come here and let me present to you my friend Mr. Ducie,
who desires the honour of your acquaintance.’
The Major flushed visibly, but otherwise preserved his composure.
He bowed very low. ‘I’m not very sure,’ he said:
‘I have an idea we have met before?’
‘Informally,’ I said, returning his bow; ‘and I have
long looked forward to the pleasure of regularising our acquaintance.’
‘You are very good, Mr. Ducie,’ he returned. ‘Perhaps
you could aid my memory a little? Where was it that I had the
pleasure?’
‘Oh, that would be telling tales out of school,’ said I,
with a laugh, ‘and before my lawyer, too!’
‘I’ll wager,’ broke in Mr. Robbie, ‘that, when
you knew my client, Chevenix - the past of our friend Mr. Ducie is an
obscure chapter full of horrid secrets - I’ll wager, now, you
knew him as St. Ivey,’ says he, nudging me violently.
‘I think not, sir,’ said the Major, with pinched lips.
‘Well, I wish he may prove all right!’ continued the lawyer,
with certainly the worst-inspired jocularity in the world. ‘I
know nothing by him! He may be a swell mobsman for me with his
aliases. You must put your memory on the rack, Major, and when
ye’ve remembered when and where ye met him, be sure ye tell me.’
‘I will not fail, sir,’ said Chevenix.
‘Seek to him!’ cried Robbie, waving his hand as he departed.
The Major, as soon as we were alone, turned upon me his impassive countenance.
‘Well,’ he said, ‘you have courage.’
‘It is undoubted as your honour, sir,’ I returned, bowing.
‘Did you expect to meet me, may I ask?’ said he.
‘You saw, at least, that I courted the presentation,’ said
I.
‘And you were not afraid?’ said Chevenix.
‘I was perfectly at ease. I knew I was dealing with a gentleman.
Be that your epitaph.’
‘Well, there are some other people looking for you,’ he
said, ‘who will make no bones about the point of honour.
The police, my dear sir, are simply agog about you.’
‘And I think that that was coarse,’ said I.
‘You have seen Miss Gilchrist?’ he inquired, changing the
subject.
‘With whom, I am led to understand, we are on a footing of rivalry?’
I asked. ‘Yes, I have seen her.’
‘And I was just seeking her,’ he replied.
I was conscious of a certain thrill of temper; so, I suppose, was he.
We looked each other up and down.
‘The situation is original,’ he resumed.
‘Quite,’ said I. ‘But let me tell you frankly
you are blowing a cold coal. I owe you so much for your kindness
to the prisoner Champdivers.’
‘Meaning that the lady’s affections are more advantageously
disposed of?’ he asked, with a sneer. ‘Thank you,
I am sure. And, since you have given me a lead, just hear a word
of good advice in your turn. Is it fair, is it delicate, is it
like a gentleman, to compromise the young lady by attentions which (as
you know very well) can come to nothing?’
I was utterly unable to find words in answer.
‘Excuse me if I cut this interview short,’ he went on.
‘It seems to me doomed to come to nothing, and there is more attractive
metal.’
‘Yes,’ I replied, ‘as you say, it cannot amount to
much. You are impotent, bound hand and foot in honour. You
know me to be a man falsely accused, and even if you did not know it,
from your position as my rival you have only the choice to stand quite
still or to be infamous.’
‘I would not say that,’ he returned, with another change
of colour. ‘I may hear it once too often.’
With which he moved off straight for where Flora was sitting amidst
her court of vapid youths, and I had no choice but to follow him, a
bad second, and reading myself, as I went, a sharp lesson on the command
of temper.
It is a strange thing how young men in their teens go down at the mere
wind of the coming of men of twenty-five and upwards! The vapid
ones fled without thought of resistance before the Major and me; a few
dallied awhile in the neighbourhood - so to speak, with their fingers
in their mouths - but presently these also followed the rout, and we
remained face to face before Flora. There was a draught in that
corner by the door; she had thrown her pelisse over her bare arms and
neck, and the dark fur of the trimming set them off. She shone
by contrast; the light played on her smooth skin to admiration, and
the colour changed in her excited face. For the least fraction
of a second she looked from one to the other of her pair of rival swains,
and seemed to hesitate. Then she addressed Chevenix:-
‘You are coming to the Assembly, of course, Major Chevenix?’
said she.
‘I fear not; I fear I shall be otherwise engaged,’ he replied.
‘Even the pleasure of dancing with you, Miss Flora, must give
way to duty.’
For awhile the talk ran harmlessly on the weather, and then branched
off towards the war. It seemed to be by no one’s fault;
it was in the air, and had to come.
‘Good news from the scene of operations,’ said the Major.
‘Good news while it lasts,’ I said. ‘But will
Miss Gilchrist tell us her private thought upon the war? In her
admiration for the victors, does not there mingle some pity for the
vanquished?’
‘Indeed, sir,’ she said, with animation, ‘only too
much of it! War is a subject that I do not think should be talked
of to a girl. I am, I have to be - what do you call it? - a non-combatant?
And to remind me of what others have to do and suffer: no, it is not
fair!’
‘Miss Gilchrist has the tender female heart,’ said Chevenix.
‘Do not be too sure of that!’ she cried. ‘I
would love to be allowed to fight myself!’
‘On which side?’ I asked.
‘Can you ask?’ she exclaimed. ‘I am a Scottish
girl!’
‘She is a Scottish girl!’ repeated the Major, looking at
me. ‘And no one grudges you her pity!’
‘And I glory in every grain of it she has to spare,’ said
I. ‘Pity is akin to love.’
‘Well, and let us put that question to Miss Gilchrist. It
is for her to decide, and for us to bow to the decision. Is pity,
Miss Flora, or is admiration, nearest love?’
‘Oh come,’ said I, ‘let us be more concrete.
Lay before the lady a complete case: describe your man, then I’ll
describe mine, and Miss Flora shall decide.’
‘I think I see your meaning,’ said he, ‘and I’ll
try. You think that pity - and the kindred sentiments - have the
greatest power upon the heart. I think more nobly of women.
To my view, the man they love will first of all command their respect;
he will be steadfast - proud, if you please; dry, possibly - but of
all things steadfast. They will look at him in doubt; at last
they will see that stern face which he presents to all the rest of the
world soften to them alone. First, trust, I say. It is so
that a woman loves who is worthy of heroes.’
‘Your man is very ambitious, sir,’ said I, ‘and very
much of a hero! Mine is a humbler, and, I would fain think, a
more human dog. He is one with no particular trust in himself,
with no superior steadfastness to be admired for, who sees a lady’s
face, who hears her voice, and, without any phrase about the matter,
falls in love. What does he ask for, then, but pity? - pity for
his weakness, pity for his love, which is his life. You would
make women always the inferiors, gaping up at your imaginary lover;
he, like a marble statue, with his nose in the air! But God has
been wiser than you; and the most steadfast of your heroes may prove
human, after all. We appeal to the queen for judgment,’
I added, turning and bowing before Flora.
‘And how shall the queen judge?’ she asked. ‘I
must give you an answer that is no answer at all. “The wind
bloweth where it listeth”: she goes where her heart goes.’
Her face flushed as she said it; mine also, for I read in it a declaration,
and my heart swelled for joy. But Chevenix grew pale.
‘You make of life a very dreadful kind of lottery, ma’am,’
said he. ‘But I will not despair. Honest and unornamental
is still my choice.’
And I must say he looked extremely handsome and very amusingly like
the marble statue with its nose in the air to which I had compared him.
‘I cannot imagine how we got upon this subject,’ said Flora.
‘Madame, it was through the war,’ replied Chevenix.
‘All roads lead to Rome,’ I commented. ‘What
else would you expect Mr. Chevenix and myself to talk of?’
About this time I was conscious of a certain bustle and movement in
the room behind me, but did not pay to it that degree of attention which
perhaps would have been wise. There came a certain change in Flora’s
face; she signalled repeatedly with her fan; her eyes appealed to me
obsequiously; there could be no doubt that she wanted something - as
well as I could make out, that I should go away and leave the field
clear for my rival, which I had not the least idea of doing. At
last she rose from her chair with impatience.
‘I think it time you were saying good-night, Mr Ducie!’
she said.
I could not in the least see why, and said so.
Whereupon she gave me this appalling answer, ‘My aunt is coming
out of the card-room.’
In less time than it takes to tell, I had made my bow and my escape.
Looking back from the doorway, I was privileged to see, for a moment,
the august profile and gold eyeglasses of Miss Gilchrist issuing from
the card-room; and the sight lent me wings. I stood not on the
order of my going; and a moment after, I was on the pavement of Castle
Street, and the lighted windows shone down on me, and were crossed by
ironical shadows of those who had remained behind.
CHAPTER XXIX - EVENTS OF TUESDAY: THE TOILS CLOSING
This day began with a surprise. I found a letter on my breakfast-table
addressed to Edward Ducie, Esquire; and at first I was startled beyond
measure. ‘Conscience doth make cowards of us all!’
When I had opened it, it proved to be only a note from the lawyer, enclosing
a card for the Assembly Ball on Thursday evening. Shortly after,
as I was composing my mind with a segar at one of the windows of the
sitting-room, and Rowley, having finished the light share of work that
fell to him, sat not far off tootling with great spirit and a marked
preference for the upper octave, Ronald was suddenly shown in.
I got him a segar, drew in a chair to the side of the fire, and installed
him there - I was going to say, at his ease, but no expression could
be farther from the truth. He was plainly on pins and needles,
did not know whether to take or to refuse the segar, and, after he had
taken it, did not know whether to light or to return it. I saw
he had something to say; I did not think it was his own something; and
I was ready to offer a large bet it was really something of Major Chevenix’s.
‘Well, and so here you are!’ I observed, with pointless
cordiality, for I was bound I should do nothing to help him out.
If he were, indeed, here running errands for my rival, he might have
a fair field, but certainly no favour.
‘The fact is,’ he began, ‘I would rather see you alone.’
‘Why, certainly,’ I replied. ‘Rowley, you can
step into the bedroom. My dear fellow,’ I continued, ‘this
sounds serious. Nothing wrong, I trust.’
‘Well, I’ll be quite honest,’ said he. ‘I
am a good deal bothered.’
‘And I bet I know why!’ I exclaimed. ‘And I
bet I can put you to rights, too!’
‘What do you mean!’ he asked.
‘You must be hard up,’ said I, ‘and all I can say
is, you’ve come to the right place. If you have the least
use for a hundred pounds, or any such trifling sum as that, please mention
it. It’s here, quite at your service.’
‘I am sure it is most kind of you,’ said Ronald, ‘and
the truth is, though I can’t think how you guessed it, that I
really am a little behind board. But I haven’t come
to talk about that.’
‘No, I dare say!’ cried I. ‘Not worth talking
about! But remember, Ronald, you and I are on different sides
of the business. Remember that you did me one of those services
that make men friends for ever. And since I have had the fortune
to come into a fair share of money, just oblige me, and consider so
much of it as your own.’
‘No,’ he said, ‘I couldn’t take it; I couldn’t,
really. Besides, the fact is, I’ve come on a very different
matter. It’s about my sister, St. Ives,’ and he shook
his head menacingly at me.
‘You’re quite sure?’ I persisted. ‘It’s
here, at your service - up to five hundred pounds, if you like.
Well, all right; only remember where it is, when you do want it.’
‘Oh, please let me alone!’ cried Ronald: ‘I’ve
come to say something unpleasant; and how on earth can I do it, if you
don’t give a fellow a chance? It’s about my sister,
as I said. You can see for yourself that it can’t be allowed
to go on. It’s compromising; it don’t lead to anything;
and you’re not the kind of man (you must feel it yourself) that
I can allow my female relatives to have anything to do with. I
hate saying this, St. Ives; it looks like hitting a man when he’s
down, you know; and I told the Major I very much disliked it from the
first. However, it had to be said; and now it has been, and, between
gentlemen, it shouldn’t be necessary to refer to it again.’
‘It’s compromising; it doesn’t lead to anything; not
the kind of man,’ I repeated thoughtfully. ‘Yes, I
believe I understand, and shall make haste to put myself en règle.’
I stood up, and laid my segar down. ‘Mr. Gilchrist,’
said I, with a bow, ‘in answer to your very natural observations,
I beg to offer myself as a suitor for your sister’s hand.
I am a man of title, of which we think lightly in France, but of ancient
lineage, which is everywhere prized. I can display thirty-two
quarterings without a blot. My expectations are certainly above
the average: I believe my uncle’s income averages about thirty
thousand pounds, though I admit I was not careful to inform myself.
Put it anywhere between fifteen and fifty thousand; it is certainly
not less.’
‘All this is very easy to say,’ said Ronald, with a pitying
smile. ‘Unfortunately, these things are in the air.’
‘Pardon me, - in Buckinghamshire,’ said I, smiling.
‘Well, what I mean is, my dear St. Ives, that you can’t
prove them,’ he continued. ‘They might just as
well not be: do you follow me? You can’t bring us any third
party to back you.’
‘Oh, come!’ cried I, springing up and hurrying to the table.
‘You must excuse me!’ I wrote Romaine’s address.
‘There is my reference, Mr. Gilchrist. Until you have written
to him, and received his negative answer, I have a right to be treated,
and I shall see that you treat me, as a gentleman.’ He was
brought up with a round turn at that.
‘I beg your pardon, St. Ives,’ said he. ‘Believe
me, I had no wish to be offensive. But there’s the difficulty
of this affair; I can’t make any of my points without offence!
You must excuse me, it’s not my fault. But, at any rate,
you must see for yourself this proposal of marriage is - is merely impossible,
my dear fellow. It’s nonsense! Our countries are at
war; you are a prisoner.’
‘My ancestor of the time of the Ligue,’ I replied, ‘married
a Huguenot lady out of the Saintonge, riding two hundred miles through
an enemy’s country to bring off his bride; and it was a happy
marriage.’
‘Well!’ he began; and then looked down into the fire, and
became silent.
‘Well?’ I asked.
‘Well, there’s this business of - Goguelat,’ said
he, still looking at the coals in the grate.
‘What!’ I exclaimed, starting in my chair. ‘What’s
that you say?’
‘This business about Goguelat,’ he repeated.
‘Ronald,’ said I, ‘this is not your doing. These
are not your own words. I know where they came from: a coward
put them in your mouth.’
‘St. Ives!’ he cried, ‘why do you make it so hard
for me? and where’s the use of insulting other people? The
plain English is, that I can’t hear of any proposal of marriage
from a man under a charge like that. You must see it for yourself,
man! It’s the most absurd thing I ever heard of! And
you go on forcing me to argue with you, too!’
‘Because I have had an affair of honour which terminated unhappily,
you - a young soldier, or next-door to it - refuse my offer? Do
I understand you aright?’ said I.
‘My dear fellow!’ he wailed, ‘of course you can twist
my words, if you like. You say it was an affair of honour.
Well, I can’t, of course, tell you that - I can’t - I mean,
you must see that that’s just the point! Was it? I
don’t know.’
‘I have the honour to inform you,’ said I.
‘Well, other people say the reverse, you see!’
‘They lie, Ronald, and I will prove it in time.’
‘The short and the long of it is, that any man who is so unfortunate
as to have such things said about him is not the man to be my brother-in-law!’
he cried.
‘Do you know who will be my first witness at the court?
Arthur Chevenix!’ said I.
‘I don’t care!’ he cried, rising from his chair and
beginning to pace outrageously about the room. ‘What do
you mean, St. Ives? What is this about? It’s like
a dream, I declare! You made an offer, and I have refused it.
I don’t like it, I don’t want it; and whatever I did, or
didn’t, wouldn’t matter - my aunt wouldn’t bear of
it anyway! Can’t you take your answer, man?’
‘You must remember, Ronald, that we are playing with edged tools,’
said I. ‘An offer of marriage is a delicate subject to handle.
You have refused, and you have justified your refusal by several statements:
first, that I was an impostor; second, that our countries were at war;
and third - No, I will speak,’ said I; ‘you can answer
when I have done, - and third, that I had dishonourably killed - or
was said to have done so - the man Goguelat. Now, my dear fellow,
these are very awkward grounds to be taking. From any one else’s
lips I need scarce tell you how I should resent them; but my hands are
tied. I have so much gratitude to you, without talking of the
love I bear your sister, that you insult me, when you do so, under the
cover of a complete impunity. I must feel the pain - and I do
feel it acutely - I can do nothing to protect myself.’ He
had been anxious enough to interrupt me in the beginning; but now, and
after I had ceased, he stood a long while silent.
‘St. Ives,’ he said at last, ‘I think I had better
go away. This has been very irritating. I never at all meant
to say anything of the kind, and I apologise to you. I have all
the esteem for you that one gentleman should have for another.
I only meant to tell you - to show you what had influenced my mind;
and that, in short, the thing was impossible. One thing you may
be quite sure of: I shall do nothing against you. Will you shake
hands before I go away?’ he blurted out.
‘Yes,’ said I, ‘I agree with you - the interview has
been irritating. Let bygones be bygones. Good-bye, Ronald.’
‘Good-bye, St. Ives!’ he returned. ‘I’m
heartily sorry.’
And with that he was gone.
The windows of my own sitting-room looked towards the north; but the
entrance passage drew its light from the direction of the square.
Hence I was able to observe Ronald’s departure, his very disheartened
gait, and the fact that he was joined, about half-way, by no less a
man than Major Chevenix. At this, I could scarce keep from smiling;
so unpalatable an interview must be before the pair of them, and I could
hear their voices, clashing like crossed swords, in that eternal antiphony
of ‘I told you,’ and ‘I told you not.’
Without doubt, they had gained very little by their visit; but then
I had gained less than nothing, and had been bitterly dispirited into
the bargain. Ronald had stuck to his guns and refused me to the
last. It was no news; but, on the other hand, it could not be
contorted into good news. I was now certain that during my temporary
absence in France, all irons would be put into the fire, and the world
turned upside down, to make Flora disown the obtrusive Frenchman and
accept Chevenix. Without doubt she would resist these instances:
but the thought of them did not please me, and I felt she should be
warned and prepared for the battle.
It was no use to try and see her now, but I promised myself early that
evening to return to Swanston. In the meantime I had to make all
my preparations, and look the coming journey in the face. Here
in Edinburgh I was within four miles of the sea, yet the business of
approaching random fishermen with my hat in the one hand and a knife
in the other, appeared so desperate, that I saw nothing for it but to
retrace my steps over the northern counties, and knock a second time
at the doors of Birchell Fenn. To do this, money would be necessary;
and after leaving my paper in the hands of Flora I had still a balance
of about fifteen hundred pounds. Or rather I may say I had them
and I had them not; for after my luncheon with Mr. Robbie I had placed
the amount, all but thirty pounds of change, in a bank in George Street,
on a deposit receipt in the name of Mr. Rowley. This I had designed
to be my gift to him, in case I must suddenly depart. But now,
thinking better of the arrangement, I despatched my little man, cockade
and all, to lift the fifteen hundred.
He was not long gone, and returned with a flushed face, and the deposit
receipt still in his hand.
‘No go, Mr. Anne,’ says he.
‘How’s that?’ I inquired,
‘Well, sir, I found the place all right, and no mistake,’
said he. ‘But I tell you what gave me a blue fright!
There was a customer standing by the door, and I reckonised him!
Who do you think it was, Mr. Anne? W’y, that same Red-Breast
- him I had breakfast with near Aylesbury.’
‘You are sure you are not mistaken?’ I asked.
‘Certain sure,’ he replied. ‘Not Mr. Lavender,
I don’t mean, sir; I mean the other party. “Wot’s
he doing here?’ says I. It don’t look right.”’
‘Not by any means,’ I agreed.
I walked to and fro in the apartment reflecting. This particular
Bow Street runner might be here by accident; but it was to imagine a
singular play of coincidence that he, who had met Rowley and spoken
with him in the ‘Green Dragon,’ hard by Aylesbury, should
be now in Scotland, where he could have no legitimate business, and
by the doors of the bank where Rowley kept his account.
‘Rowley,’ said I, ‘he didn’t see you, did he?’
‘Never a fear,’ quoth Rowley. ‘W’y Mr.
Anne, sir, if he ’ad, you wouldn’t have seen me any
more! I ain’t a hass, sir!’
‘Well, my boy, you can put that receipt in your pocket.
You’ll have no more use for it till you’re quite clear of
me. Don’t lose it, though; it’s your share of the
Christmas-box: fifteen hundred pounds all for yourself.’
‘Begging your pardon, Mr. Anne, sir, but wot for!’ said
Rowley.
‘To set up a public-house upon,’ said I.
‘If you’ll excuse me, sir, I ain’t got any call to
set up a public-house, sir,’ he replied stoutly. ‘And
I tell you wot, sir, it seems to me I’m reether young for the
billet. I’m your body servant, Mr. Anne, or else I’m
nothink.’
‘Well, Rowley,’ I said, ‘I’ll tell you what
it’s for. It’s for the good service you have done
me, of which I don’t care - and don’t dare - to speak.
It’s for your loyalty and cheerfulness, my dear boy. I had
meant it for you; but to tell you the truth, it’s past mending
now - it has to be yours. Since that man is waiting by the bank,
the money can’t be touched until I’m gone.’
‘Until you’re gone, sir?’ re-echoed Rowley.
‘You don’t go anywheres without me, I can tell you that,
Mr. Anne, sir!’
‘Yes, my boy,’ said I, ‘we are going to part very
soon now; probably to-morrow. And it’s for my sake, Rowley!
Depend upon it, if there was any reason at all for that Bow Street man
being at the bank, he was not there to look out for you. How they
could have found out about the account so early is more than I can fathom;
some strange coincidence must have played me false! But there
the fact is; and Rowley, I’ll not only have to say farewell to
you presently, I’ll have to ask you to stay indoors until I can
say it. Remember, my boy, it’s only so that you can serve
me now.’
‘W’y, sir, you say the word, and of course I’ll do
it!’ he cried. ‘“Nothink by ’alves,”
is my motto! I’m your man, through thick and thin, live
or die, I am!’
In the meantime there was nothing to be done till towards sunset.
My only chance now was to come again as quickly as possible to speech
of Flora, who was my only practicable banker; and not before evening
was it worth while to think of that. I might compose myself as
well as I was able over the Caledonian Mercury, with its ill
news of the campaign of France and belated documents about the retreat
from Russia; and, as I sat there by the fire, I was sometimes all awake
with anger and mortification at what I was reading, and sometimes again
I would be three parts asleep as I dozed over the barren items of home
intelligence. ‘Lately arrived’ - this is what I suddenly
stumbled on - ‘at Dumbreck’s Hotel, the Viscount of Saint-Yves.’
‘Rowley,’ said I.
‘If you please, Mr. Anne, sir,’ answered the obsequious,
lowering his pipe.
‘Come and look at this, my boy,’ said I, holding out the
paper.
‘My crikey!’ said he. ‘That’s ’im,
sir, sure enough!’
‘Sure enough, Rowley,’ said I. ‘He’s on
the trail. He has fairly caught up with us. He and this
Bow Street man have come together, I would swear. And now here
is the whole field, quarry, hounds and hunters, all together in this
city of Edinburgh.’
‘And wot are you goin’ to do now, sir? Tell you wot,
let me take it in ’and, please! Gimme a minute, and I’ll
disguise myself, and go out to this Dum - to this hotel, leastways,
sir - and see wot he’s up to. You put your trust in me,
Mr. Anne: I’m fly, don’t you make no mistake about it.
I’m all a-growing and a-blowing, I am.’
‘Not one foot of you,’ said I. ‘You are a prisoner,
Rowley, and make up your mind to that. So am I, or next door to
it. I showed it you for a caution; if you go on the streets, it
spells death to me, Rowley.’
‘If you please, sir,’ says Rowley.
‘Come to think of it,’ I continued, ‘you must take
a cold, or something. No good of awakening Mrs. McRankine’s
suspicions.’
‘A cold?’ he cried, recovering immediately from his depression.
‘I can do it, Mr. Anne.’
And he proceeded to sneeze and cough and blow his nose, till I could
not restrain myself from smiling.
‘Oh, I tell you, I know a lot of them dodges,’ he observed
proudly.
‘Well, they come in very handy,’ said I.
‘I’d better go at once and show it to the old gal, ’adn’t
I?’ he asked.
I told him, by all means; and he was gone upon the instant, gleeful
as though to a game of football.
I took up the paper and read carelessly on, my thoughts engaged with
my immediate danger, till I struck on the next paragraph:-
‘In connection with the recent horrid murder in the Castle, we
are desired to make public the following intelligence. The soldier,
Champdivers, is supposed to be in the neighbourhood of this city.
He is about the middle height or rather under, of a pleasing appearance
and highly genteel address. When last heard of he wore a fashionable
suit of pearl-grey, and boots with fawn-coloured tops. He is accompanied
by a servant about sixteen years of age, speaks English without any
accent, and passed under the alias of Ramornie. A reward
is offered for his apprehension.’
In a moment I was in the next room, stripping from me the pearl-coloured
suit!
I confess I was now a good deal agitated. It is difficult to watch
the toils closing slowly and surely about you, and to retain your composure;
and I was glad that Rowley was not present to spy on my confusion.
I was flushed, my breath came thick; I cannot remember a time when I
was more put out.
And yet I must wait and do nothing, and partake of my meals, and entertain
the ever-garrulous Rowley, as though I were entirely my own man.
And if I did not require to entertain Mrs. McRankine also, that was
but another drop of bitterness in my cup! For what ailed my landlady,
that she should hold herself so severely aloof, that she should refuse
conversation, that her eyes should be reddened, that I should so continually
hear the voice of her private supplications sounding through the house?
I was much deceived, or she had read the insidious paragraph and recognised
the comminated pearl-grey suit. I remember now a certain air with
which she had laid the paper on my table, and a certain sniff, between
sympathy and defiance, with which she had announced it: ‘There’s
your Mercury for ye!’
In this direction, at least, I saw no pressing danger; her tragic countenance
betokened agitation; it was plain she was wrestling with her conscience,
and the battle still hung dubious. The question of what to do
troubled me extremely. I could not venture to touch such an intricate
and mysterious piece of machinery as my landlady’s spiritual nature:
it might go off at a word, and in any direction, like a badly-made firework.
And while I praised myself extremely for my wisdom in the past, that
I had made so much a friend of her, I was all abroad as to my conduct
in the present. There seemed an equal danger in pressing and in
neglecting the accustomed marks of familiarity. The one extreme
looked like impudence, and might annoy, the other was a practical confession
of guilt. Altogether, it was a good hour for me when the dusk
began to fall in earnest on the streets of Edinburgh, and the voice
of an early watchman bade me set forth.
I reached the neighbourhood of the cottage before seven; and as I breasted
the steep ascent which leads to the garden wall, I was struck with surprise
to hear a dog. Dogs I had heard before, but only from the hamlet
on the hillside above. Now, this dog was in the garden itself,
where it roared aloud in paroxysms of fury, and I could hear it leaping
and straining on the chain. I waited some while, until the brute’s
fit of passion had roared itself out. Then, with the utmost precaution,
I drew near again; and finally approached the garden wall. So
soon as I had clapped my head above the level, however, the barking
broke forth again with redoubled energy. Almost at the same time,
the door of the cottage opened, and Ronald and the Major appeared upon
the threshold with a lantern. As they so stood, they were almost
immediately below me, strongly illuminated, and within easy earshot.
The Major pacified the dog, who took instead to low, uneasy growling
intermingled with occasional yelps.
‘Good thing I brought Towzer!’ said Chevenix.
‘Damn him, I wonder where he is!’ said Ronald; and he moved
the lantern up and down, and turned the night into a shifting puzzle-work
of gleam and shadow. ‘I think I’ll make a sally.’
‘I don’t think you will,’ replied Chevenix.
‘When I agreed to come out here and do sentry-go, it was on one
condition, Master Ronald: don’t you forget that! Military
discipline, my boy! Our beat is this path close about the house.
Down, Towzer! good boy, good boy - gently, then!’ he went on,
caressing his confounded monster.
‘To think! The beggar may be hearing us this minute!’
cried Ronald.
‘Nothing more probable,’ said the Major. ‘You
there, St. Ives?’ he added, in a distinct but guarded voice.
‘I only want to tell you, you had better go home. Mr. Gilchrist
and I take watch and watch.’
The game was up. ‘Beaucoup de plaisir!’ I replied,
in the same tones. ‘Il fait un peu froid pour veiller;
gardez-vous des engelures!’
I suppose it was done in a moment of ungovernable rage; but in spite
of the excellent advice he had given to Ronald the moment before, Chevenix
slipped the chain, and the dog sprang, straight as an arrow, up the
bank. I stepped back, picked up a stone of about twelve pounds
weight, and stood ready. With a bound the beast landed on the
cope-stone of the wall; and, almost in the same instant, my missile
caught him fair in the face. He gave a stifled cry, went tumbling
back where he had come from, and I could hear the twelve-pounder accompany
him in his fall. Chevenix, at the same moment, broke out in a
roaring voice: ‘The hell-hound! If he’s killed my
dog!’ and I judged, upon all grounds, it was as well to be off.
CHAPTER XXX - EVENTS OF WEDNESDAY; THE UNIVERSITY OF CRAMOND
I awoke to much diffidence, even to a feeling that might be called the
beginnings of panic, and lay for hours in my bed considering the situation.
Seek where I pleased, there was nothing to encourage me and plenty to
appal. They kept a close watch about the cottage; they had a beast
of a watch-dog - at least, unless I had settled it; and if I had, I
knew its bereaved master would only watch the more indefatigably for
the loss. In the pardonable ostentation of love I had given all
the money I could spare to Flora; I had thought it glorious that the
hunted exile should come down, like Jupiter, in a shower of gold, and
pour thousands in the lap of the beloved. Then I had in an hour
of arrant folly buried what remained to me in a bank in George Street.
And now I must get back the one or the other; and which? and how?
As I tossed in my bed, I could see three possible courses, all extremely
perilous. First, Rowley might have been mistaken; the bank might
not be watched; it might still be possible for him to draw the money
on the deposit receipt. Second, I might apply again to Robbie.
Or, third, I might dare everything, go to the Assembly Ball, and speak
with Flora under the eyes of all Edinburgh. This last alternative,
involving as it did the most horrid risks, and the delay of forty-eight
hours, I did but glance at with an averted head, and turned again to
the consideration of the others. It was the likeliest thing in
the world that Robbie had been warned to have no more to do with me.
The whole policy of the Gilchrists was in the hands of Chevenix; and
I thought this was a precaution so elementary that he was certain to
have taken it. If he had not, of course I was all right: Robbie
would manage to communicate with Flora; and by four o’clock I
might be on the south road and, I was going to say, a free man.
Lastly, I must assure myself with my own eyes whether the bank in George
Street were beleaguered.
I called to Rowley and questioned him tightly as to the appearance of
the Bow Street officer.
‘What sort of looking man is he, Rowley?’ I asked, as I
began to dress.
‘Wot sort of a looking man he is?’ repeated Rowley.
‘Well, I don’t very well know wot you would say, Mr. Anne.
He ain’t a beauty, any’ow.’
‘Is he tall?’
‘Tall? Well, no, I shouldn’t say tall Mr. Anne.’
‘Well, then, is he short?’
‘Short? No, I don’t think I would say he was what
you would call short. No, not piticular short, sir.’
‘Then, I suppose, he must be about the middle height?’
‘Well, you might say it, sir; but not remarkable so.’
I smothered an oath.
‘Is he clean-shaved?’ I tried him again.
‘Clean-shaved?’ he repeated, with the same air of anxious
candour.
‘Good heaven, man, don’t repeat my words like a parrot!’
I cried. ‘Tell me what the man was like: it is of the first
importance that I should be able to recognise him.’
‘I’m trying to, Mr. Anne. But clean-shaved?
I don’t seem to rightly get hold of that p’int. Sometimes
it might appear to me like as if he was; and sometimes like as if he
wasn’t. No, it wouldn’t surprise me now if you was
to tell me he ’ad a bit o’ whisker.’
‘Was the man red-faced?’ I roared, dwelling on each syllable.
‘I don’t think you need go for to get cross about it, Mr.
Anne!’ said he. ‘I’m tellin’ you every
blessed thing I see! Red-faced? Well, no, not as you would
remark upon.’
A dreadful calm fell upon me.
‘Was he anywise pale?’ I asked.
‘Well, it don’t seem to me as though he were. But
I tell you truly, I didn’t take much heed to that.’
‘Did he look like a drinking man?’
‘Well, no. If you please, sir, he looked more like an eating
one.’
‘Oh, he was stout, was he?’
‘No, sir. I couldn’t go so far as that. No,
he wasn’t not to say stout. If anything, lean rather.’
I need not go on with the infuriating interview. It ended as it
began, except that Rowley was in tears, and that I had acquired one
fact. The man was drawn for me as being of any height you like
to mention, and of any degree of corpulence or leanness; clean-shaved
or not, as the case might be; the colour of his hair Rowley ‘could
not take it upon himself to put a name on’; that of his eyes he
thought to have been blue - nay, it was the one point on which he attained
to a kind of tearful certainty. ‘I’ll take my davy
on it,’ he asseverated. They proved to have been as black
as sloes, very little and very near together. So much for the
evidence of the artless! And the fact, or rather the facts, acquired?
Well, they had to do not with the person but with his clothing.
The man wore knee-breeches and white stockings; his coat was ‘some
kind of a lightish colour - or betwixt that and dark’; and he
wore a ‘mole-skin weskit.’ As if this were not enough,
he presently haled me from my breakfast in a prodigious flutter, and
showed me an honest and rather venerable citizen passing in the Square.
‘That’s him, sir,’ he cried, ‘the very
moral of him! Well, this one is better dressed, and p’r’aps
a trifler taller; and in the face he don’t favour him noways at
all, sir. No, not when I come to look again, ’e don’t
seem to favour him noways.’
‘Jackass!’ said I, and I think the greatest stickler for
manners will admit the epithet to have been justified.
Meanwhile the appearance of my landlady added a great load of anxiety
to what I already suffered. It was plain that she had not slept;
equally plain that she had wept copiously. She sighed, she groaned,
she drew in her breath, she shook her head, as she waited on table.
In short, she seemed in so precarious a state, like a petard three times
charged with hysteria, that I did not dare to address her; and stole
out of the house on tiptoe, and actually ran downstairs, in the fear
that she might call me back. It was plain that this degree of
tension could not last long.
It was my first care to go to George Street, which I reached (by good
luck) as a boy was taking down the bank shutters. A man was conversing
with him; he had white stockings and a moleskin waistcoat, and was as
ill-looking a rogue as you would want to see in a day’s journey.
This seemed to agree fairly well with Rowley’s signalement:
he had declared emphatically (if you remember), and had stuck to it
besides, that the companion of the great Lavender was no beauty.
Thence I made my way to Mr. Robbie’s, where I rang the bell.
A servant answered the summons, and told me the lawyer was engaged,
as I had half expected.
‘Wha shall I say was callin’?’ she pursued; and when
I had told her ‘Mr. Ducie,’ ‘I think this’ll
be for you, then?’ she added, and handed me a letter from the
hall table. It ran:
‘DEAR MR. DUCIE,
‘My single advice to you is to leave quam primum for the
South.
Yours, T. ROBBIE.’
That was short and sweet. It emphatically extinguished hope in
one direction. No more was to be gotten of Robbie; and I wondered,
from my heart, how much had been told him. Not too much, I hoped,
for I liked the lawyer who had thus deserted me, and I placed a certain
reliance in the discretion of Chevenix. He would not be merciful;
on the other hand, I did not think he would be cruel without cause.
It was my next affair to go back along George Street, and assure myself
whether the man in the moleskin vest was still on guard. There
was no sign of him on the pavement. Spying the door of a common
stair nearly opposite the bank, I took it in my head that this would
be a good point of observation, crossed the street, entered with a businesslike
air and fell immediately against the man in the moleskin vest.
I stopped and apologised to him; he replied in an unmistakable English
accent, thus putting the matter almost beyond doubt. After this
encounter I must, of course, ascend to the top story, ring the bell
of a suite of apartments, inquire for Mr. Vavasour, learn (with no great
surprise) that he did not live there, come down again and, again politely
saluting the man from Bow Street, make my escape at last into the street.
I was now driven back upon the Assembly Ball. Robbie had failed
me. The bank was watched; it would never do to risk Rowley in
that neighbourhood. All I could do was to wait until the morrow
evening, and present myself at the Assembly, let it end as it might.
But I must say I came to this decision with a good deal of genuine fright;
and here I came for the first time to one of those places where my courage
stuck. I do not mean that my courage boggled and made a bit of
a bother over it, as it did over the escape from the Castle; I mean,
stuck, like a stopped watch or a dead man. Certainly I would go
to the ball; certainly I must see this morning about my clothes.
That was all decided. But the most of the shops were on the other
side of the valley, in the Old Town; and it was now my strange discovery
that I was physically unable to cross the North Bridge! It was
as though a precipice had stood between us, or the deep sea had intervened.
Nearer to the Castle my legs refused to bear me.
I told myself this was mere superstition; I made wagers with myself
- and gained them; I went down on the esplanade of Princes Street, walked
and stood there, alone and conspicuous, looking across the garden at
the old grey bastions of the fortress, where all these troubles had
begun. I cocked my hat, set my hand on my hip, and swaggered on
the pavement, confronting detection. And I found I could do all
this with a sense of exhilaration that was not unpleasing, and with
a certain crânerie of manner that raised me in my own esteem.
And yet there was one thing I could not bring my mind to face up to,
or my limbs to execute; and that was to cross the valley into the Old
Town. It seemed to me I must be arrested immediately if I had
done so; I must go straight into the twilight of a prison cell, and
pass straight thence to the gross and final embraces of the nightcap
and the halter. And yet it was from no reasoned fear of the consequences
that I could not go. I was unable. My horse baulked, and
there was an end!
My nerve was gone: here was a discovery for a man in such imminent peril,
set down to so desperate a game, which I could only hope to win by continual
luck and unflagging effrontery! The strain had been too long continued,
and my nerve was gone. I fell into what they call panic fear,
as I have seen soldiers do on the alarm of a night attack, and turned
out of Princes Street at random as though the devil were at my heels.
In St. Andrew Square, I remember vaguely hearing some one call out.
I paid no heed, but pressed on blindly. A moment after, a hand
fell heavily on my shoulder, and I thought I had fainted. Certainly
the world went black about me for some seconds; and when that spasm
passed I found myself standing face to face with the ‘cheerful
extravagant,’ in what sort of disarray I really dare not imagine,
dead white at least, shaking like an aspen, and mowing at the man with
speechless lips. And this was the soldier of Napoleon, and the
gentleman who intended going next night to an Assembly Ball! I
am the more particular in telling of my breakdown, because it was my
only experience of the sort; and it is a good tale for officers.
I will allow no man to call me coward; I have made my proofs; few men
more. And yet I (come of the best blood in France and inured to
danger from a child) did, for some ten or twenty minutes, make this
hideous exhibition of myself on the streets of the New Town of Edinburgh.
With my first available breath I begged his pardon. I was of an
extremely nervous disposition, recently increased by late hours; I could
not bear the slightest start.
He seemed much concerned. ‘You must be in a devil of a state!’
said he; ‘though of course it was my fault - damnably silly, vulgar
sort of thing to do! A thousand apologies! But you really
must be run down; you should consult a medico. My dear sir, a
hair of the dog that bit you is clearly indicated. A touch of
Blue Ruin, now? Or, come: it’s early, but is man the slave
of hours? what do you say to a chop and a bottle in Dumbreck’s
Hotel?’
I refused all false comfort; but when he went on to remind me that this
was the day when the University of Cramond met; and to propose a five-mile
walk into the country and a dinner in the company of young asses like
himself, I began to think otherwise. I had to wait until to-morrow
evening, at any rate; this might serve as well as anything else to bridge
the dreary hours. The country was the very place for me: and walking
is an excellent sedative for the nerves. Remembering poor Rowley,
feigning a cold in our lodgings and immediately under the guns of the
formidable and now doubtful Bethiah, I asked if I might bring my servant.
‘Poor devil! it is dull for him,’ I explained.
‘The merciful man is merciful to his ass,’ observed my sententious
friend. ‘Bring him by all means!
“The harp, his sole remaining joy,
Was carried by an orphan boy;”
and I have no doubt the orphan boy can get some cold victuals in the
kitchen, while the Senatus dines.’
Accordingly, being now quite recovered from my unmanly condition, except
that nothing could yet induce me to cross the North Bridge, I arranged
for my ball dress at a shop in Leith Street, where I was not served
ill, cut out Rowley from his seclusion, and was ready along with him
at the trysting-place, the corner of Duke Street and York Place, by
a little after two. The University was represented in force: eleven
persons, including ourselves, Byfield the aeronaut, and the tall lad,
Forbes, whom I had met on the Sunday morning, bedewed with tallow, at
the ‘Hunters’ Rest.’ I was introduced; and we
set off by way of Newhaven and the sea beach; at first through pleasant
country roads, and afterwards along a succession of bays of a fairylike
prettiness, to our destination - Cramond on the Almond - a little hamlet
on a little river, embowered in woods, and looking forth over a great
flat of quicksand to where a little islet stood planted in the sea.
It was miniature scenery, but charming of its kind. The air of
this good February afternoon was bracing, but not cold. All the
way my companions were skylarking, jesting and making puns, and I felt
as if a load had been taken off my lungs and spirits, and skylarked
with the best of them.
Byfield I observed, because I had heard of him before, and seen his
advertisements, not at all because I was disposed to feel interest in
the man. He was dark and bilious and very silent; frigid in his
manners, but burning internally with a great fire of excitement; and
he was so good as to bestow a good deal of his company and conversation
(such as it was) upon myself, who was not in the least grateful.
If I had known how I was to be connected with him in the immediate future,
I might have taken more pains.
In the hamlet of Cramond there is a hostelry of no very promising appearance,
and here a room had been prepared for us, and we sat down to table.
‘Here you will find no guttling or gormandising, no turtle or
nightingales’ tongues,’ said the extravagant, whose name,
by the way, was Dalmahoy. ‘The device, sir, of the University
of Cramond is Plain Living and High Drinking.’
Grace was said by the Professor of Divinity, in a macaronic Latin, which
I could by no means follow, only I could hear it rhymed, and I guessed
it to be more witty than reverent. After which the Senatus
Academicus sat down to rough plenty in the shape of rizzar’d
haddocks and mustard, a sheep’s head, a haggis, and other delicacies
of Scotland. The dinner was washed down with brown stout in bottle,
and as soon as the cloth was removed, glasses, boiling water, sugar,
and whisky were set out for the manufacture of toddy. I played
a good knife and fork, did not shun the bowl, and took part, so far
as I was able, in the continual fire of pleasantry with which the meal
was seasoned. Greatly daring, I ventured, before all these Scotsmen,
to tell Sim’s Tale of Tweedie’s dog; and I was held to have
done such extraordinary justice to the dialect, ‘for a Southron,’
that I was immediately voted into the Chair of Scots, and became, from
that moment, a full member of the University of Cramond. A little
after, I found myself entertaining them with a song; and a little after
- perhaps a little in consequence - it occurred to me that I had had
enough, and would be very well inspired to take French leave.
It was not difficult to manage, for it was nobody’s business to
observe my movements, and conviviality had banished suspicion.
I got easily forth of the chamber, which reverberated with the voices
of these merry and learned gentlemen, and breathed a long breath.
I had passed an agreeable afternoon and evening, and I had apparently
escaped scot free. Alas! when I looked into the kitchen, there
was my monkey, drunk as a lord, toppling on the edge of the dresser,
and performing on the flageolet to an audience of the house lasses and
some neighbouring ploughmen.
I routed him promptly from his perch, stuck his hat on, put his instrument
in his pocket, and set off with him for Edinburgh.
His limbs were of paper, his mind quite in abeyance; I must uphold and
guide him, prevent his frantic dives, and set him continually on his
legs again. At first he sang wildly, with occasional outbursts
of causeless laughter. Gradually an inarticulate melancholy succeeded;
he wept gently at times; would stop in the middle of the road, say firmly
‘No, no, no,’ and then fall on his back: or else address
me solemnly as ‘M’lord’ and fall on his face by way
of variety. I am afraid I was not always so gentle with the little
pig as I might have been, but really the position was unbearable.
We made no headway at all, and I suppose we were scarce gotten a mile
away from Cramond, when the whole Senatus Academicus was heard
hailing, and doubling the pace to overtake its.
Some of them were fairly presentable; and they were all Christian martyrs
compared to Rowley; but they were in a frolicsome and rollicking humour
that promised danger as we approached the town. They sang songs,
they ran races, they fenced with their walking-sticks and umbrellas;
and, in spite of this violent exercise, the fun grew only the more extravagant
with the miles they traversed. Their drunkenness was deep-seated
and permanent, like fire in a peat; or rather - to be quite just to
them - it was not so much to be called drunkenness at all, as the effect
of youth and high spirits - a fine night, and the night young, a good
road under foot, and the world before you!
I had left them once somewhat unceremoniously; I could not attempt it
a second time; and, burthened as I was with Mr. Rowley, I was really
glad of assistance. But I saw the lamps of Edinburgh draw near
on their hill-top with a good deal of uneasiness, which increased, after
we had entered the lighted streets, to positive alarm. All the
passers-by were addressed, some of them by name. A worthy man
was stopped by Forbes. ‘Sir,’ said he, ‘in the
name of the Senatus of the University of Cramond, I confer upon you
the degree of LL.D.,’ and with the words he bonneted him.
Conceive the predicament of St. Ives, committed to the society of these
outrageous youths, in a town where the police and his cousin were both
looking for him! So far, we had pursued our way unmolested, although
raising a clamour fit to wake the dead; but at last, in Abercromby Place,
I believe - at least it was a crescent of highly respectable houses
fronting on a garden - Byfield and I, having fallen somewhat in the
rear with Rowley, came to a simultaneous halt. Our ruffians were
beginning to wrench off bells and door-plates!
‘Oh, I say!’ says Byfield, ‘this is too much of a
good thing! Confound it, I’m a respectable man - a public
character, by George! I can’t afford to get taken up by
the police.’
‘My own case exactly,’ said I.
‘Here, let’s bilk them,’ said he.
And we turned back and took our way down hill again.
It was none too soon: voices and alarm bells sounded; watchmen here
and there began to spring their rattles; it was plain the University
of Cramond would soon be at blows with the police of Edinburgh!
Byfield and I, running the semi-inanimate Rowley before us, made good
despatch, and did not stop till we were several streets away, and the
hubbub was already softened by distance.
‘Well, sir,’ said he, ‘we are well out of that!
Did ever any one see such a pack of young barbarians?’
‘We are properly punished, Mr. Byfield; we had no business there,’
I replied.
‘No, indeed, sir, you may well say that! Outrageous!
And my ascension announced for Friday, you know!’ cried the aeronaut.
‘A pretty scandal! Byfield the aeronaut at the police-court!
Tut-tut! Will you be able to get your rascal home, sir?
Allow me to offer you my card. I am staying at Walker and Poole’s
Hotel, sir, where I should be pleased to see you.’
‘The pleasure would be mutual, sir,’ said I, but I must
say my heart was not in my words, and as I watched Mr. Byfield departing
I desired nothing less than to pursue the acquaintance
One more ordeal remained for me to pass. I carried my senseless
load upstairs to our lodging, and was admitted by the landlady in a
tall white nightcap and with an expression singularly grim. She
lighted us into the sitting-room; where, when I had seated Rowley in
a chair, she dropped me a cast-iron courtesy. I smelt gunpowder
on the woman. Her voice, tottered with emotion.
‘I give ye nottice, Mr. Ducie,’ said she. ‘Dacent
folks’ houses . . .’
And at that apparently temper cut off her utterance, and she took herself
off without more words.
I looked about me at the room, the goggling Rowley, the extinguished
fire; my mind reviewed the laughable incidents of the day and night;
and I laughed out loud to myself - lonely and cheerless laughter!.......
[As this point the Author’s manuscript breaks off]
*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK, ST IVES ***
******This file should be named stive10h.htm or stive10h.zip****** Corrected EDITIONS of our EBooks get a new NUMBER, stive11h.htm VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, stive10ah.htm Project Gutenberg eBooks are often created from several printed editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the US unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we usually do not keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition. We are now trying to release all our eBooks one year in advance of the official release dates, leaving time for better editing. Please be encouraged to tell us about any error or corrections, even years after the official publication date. Please note neither this listing nor its contents are final til midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement. The official release date of all Project Gutenberg eBooks is at Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment and editing by those who wish to do so. Most people start at our Web sites at: http://gutenberg.net or http://promo.net/pg These Web sites include award-winning information about Project Gutenberg, including how to donate, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to subscribe to our email newsletter (free!). Those of you who want to download any eBook before announcement can get to them as follows, and just download by date. This is also a good way to get them instantly upon announcement, as the indexes our cataloguers produce obviously take a while after an announcement goes out in the Project Gutenberg Newsletter. http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/etext04 or ftp://ftp.ibiblio.org/pub/docs/books/gutenberg/etext04 Or /etext03, 02, 01, 00, 99, 98, 97, 96, 95, 94, 93, 92, 92, 91 or 90 Just search by the first five letters of the filename you want, as it appears in our Newsletters. Information about Project Gutenberg (one page) We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The time it takes us, a rather conservative estimate, is fifty hours to get any eBook selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. Our projected audience is one hundred million readers. If the value per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $2 million dollars per hour in 2002 as we release over 100 new text files per month: 1240 more eBooks in 2001 for a total of 4000+ We are already on our way to trying for 2000 more eBooks in 2002 If they reach just 1-2% of the world's population then the total will reach over half a trillion eBooks given away by year's end. The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away 1 Trillion eBooks! This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers, which is only about 4% of the present number of computer users. Here is the briefest record of our progress (* means estimated): eBooks Year Month 1 1971 July 10 1991 January 100 1994 January 1000 1997 August 1500 1998 October 2000 1999 December 2500 2000 December 3000 2001 November 4000 2001 October/November 6000 2002 December* 9000 2003 November* 10000 2004 January* The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been created to secure a future for Project Gutenberg into the next millennium. We need your donations more than ever! As of February, 2002, contributions are being solicited from people and organizations in: Alabama, Alaska, Arkansas, Connecticut, Delaware, District of Columbia, Florida, Georgia, Hawaii, Illinois, Indiana, Iowa, Kansas, Kentucky, Louisiana, Maine, Massachusetts, Michigan, Mississippi, Missouri, Montana, Nebraska, Nevada, New Hampshire, New Jersey, New Mexico, New York, North Carolina, Ohio, Oklahoma, Oregon, Pennsylvania, Rhode Island, South Carolina, South Dakota, Tennessee, Texas, Utah, Vermont, Virginia, Washington, West Virginia, Wisconsin, and Wyoming. We have filed in all 50 states now, but these are the only ones that have responded. As the requirements for other states are met, additions to this list will be made and fund raising will begin in the additional states. Please feel free to ask to check the status of your state. In answer to various questions we have received on this: We are constantly working on finishing the paperwork to legally request donations in all 50 states. If your state is not listed and you would like to know if we have added it since the list you have, just ask. While we cannot solicit donations from people in states where we are not yet registered, we know of no prohibition against accepting donations from donors in these states who approach us with an offer to donate. International donations are accepted, but we don't know ANYTHING about how to make them tax-deductible, or even if they CAN be made deductible, and don't have the staff to handle it even if there are ways. Donations by check or money order may be sent to: Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation PMB 113 1739 University Ave. Oxford, MS 38655-4109 Contact us if you want to arrange for a wire transfer or payment method other than by check or money order. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been approved by the US Internal Revenue Service as a 501(c)(3) organization with EIN [Employee Identification Number] 64-622154. Donations are tax-deductible to the maximum extent permitted by law. As fund-raising requirements for other states are met, additions to this list will be made and fund-raising will begin in the additional states. We need your donations more than ever! You can get up to date donation information online at: http://www.gutenberg.net/donation.html *** If you can't reach Project Gutenberg, you can always email directly to: Michael S. Hart hart@pobox.com Prof. Hart will answer or forward your message. We would prefer to send you information by email. **The Legal Small Print** (Three Pages) ***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS**START*** Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers. They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with your copy of this eBook, even if you got it for free from someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how you may distribute copies of this eBook if you want to. *BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS EBOOK By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this eBook by sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person you got it from. If you received this eBook on a physical medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request. ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM EBOOKS This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBooks, is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor Michael S. Hart through the Project Gutenberg Association (the "Project"). Among other things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this eBook under the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark. Please do not use the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark to market any commercial products without permission. To create these eBooks, the Project expends considerable efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain works. Despite these efforts, the Project's eBooks and any medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other eBook medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment. LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below, [1] Michael Hart and the Foundation (and any other party you may receive this eBook from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook) disclaims all liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES. If you discover a Defect in this eBook within 90 days of receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that time to the person you received it from. If you received it on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement copy. If you received it electronically, such person may choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to receive it electronically. THIS EBOOK IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS TO THE EBOOK OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A PARTICULAR PURPOSE. Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you may have other legal rights. INDEMNITY You will indemnify and hold Michael Hart, the Foundation, and its trustees and agents, and any volunteers associated with the production and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm texts harmless, from all liability, cost and expense, including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following that you do or cause: [1] distribution of this eBook, [2] alteration, modification, or addition to the eBook, or [3] any Defect. DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm" You may distribute copies of this eBook electronically, or by disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this "Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg, or: [1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the eBook or this "small print!" statement. You may however, if you wish, distribute this eBook in machine readable binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form, including any form resulting from conversion by word processing or hypertext software, but only so long as *EITHER*: [*] The eBook, when displayed, is clearly readable, and does *not* contain characters other than those intended by the author of the work, although tilde (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may be used to convey punctuation intended by the author, and additional characters may be used to indicate hypertext links; OR [*] The eBook may be readily converted by the reader at no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent form by the program that displays the eBook (as is the case, for instance, with most word processors); OR [*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the eBook in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC or other equivalent proprietary form). [2] Honor the eBook refund and replacement provisions of this "Small Print!" statement. [3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Foundation of 20% of the gross profits you derive calculated using the method you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are payable to "Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation" the 60 days following each date you prepare (or were legally required to prepare) your annual (or equivalent periodic) tax return. Please contact us beforehand to let us know your plans and to work out the details. WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO? Project Gutenberg is dedicated to increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be freely distributed in machine readable form. The Project gratefully accepts contributions of money, time, public domain materials, or royalty free copyright licenses. Money should be paid to the: "Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation." If you are interested in contributing scanning equipment or software or other items, please contact Michael Hart at: hart@pobox.com [Portions of this eBook's header and trailer may be reprinted only when distributed free of all fees. Copyright (C) 2001, 2002 by Michael S. Hart. Project Gutenberg is a TradeMark and may not be used in any sales of Project Gutenberg eBooks or other materials be they hardware or software or any other related product without express permission.] *END THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS*Ver.02/11/02*END*